<?xml version="1.0" encoding="UTF-8"?>
<rss version="2.0"
	xmlns:content="http://purl.org/rss/1.0/modules/content/"
	xmlns:wfw="http://wellformedweb.org/CommentAPI/"
	xmlns:dc="http://purl.org/dc/elements/1.1/"
	xmlns:atom="http://www.w3.org/2005/Atom"
	xmlns:sy="http://purl.org/rss/1.0/modules/syndication/"
	xmlns:slash="http://purl.org/rss/1.0/modules/slash/"
	>

<channel>
	<title>Sinful Tales Blog &#187; erotic sex letter</title>
	<atom:link href="http://sinfultalesblog.com/category/erotic-sex-letter/feed/" rel="self" type="application/rss+xml" />
	<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com</link>
	<description>sinful stories from adult stories sex site pics and smut story with pictures</description>
	<lastBuildDate>Tue, 19 Jan 2010 15:27:23 +0000</lastBuildDate>
	<generator>http://wordpress.org/?v=2.9.1</generator>
	<language>en</language>
	<sy:updatePeriod>hourly</sy:updatePeriod>
	<sy:updateFrequency>1</sy:updateFrequency>
			<item>
		<title>Bored babes</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/bored-babes/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/bored-babes/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Sat, 02 Aug 2008 15:55:25 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[how to write a sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex story text only]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex text repository]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/?p=54</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[     The mild winter began to recline into the arms of an anxious
spring. Jim opened the door to approach his car for the trip to
his office, as his nostrils were welcomed by the fragrance of the
changing season. His heart was light, and he had a bounce in his
step. The conversation that [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>     The mild winter began to recline into the arms of an anxious<br />
spring. Jim opened the door to approach his car for the trip to<br />
his office, as his nostrils were welcomed by the fragrance of the<br />
changing season. His heart was light, and he had a bounce in his<br />
step. The conversation that occupied the previous evening was<br />
music to his ears.</p>
<p>     Marilyn, a computer bulletin board friend had agreed to meet<br />
him for the first time. She wanted to know more about the use of<br />
hypnosis in sex. They had shared many thoughts on previous evenings. Some were simply warm and friendly, and others were<br />
downright steaming. They had discussed everything from children<br />
and pets to jumping one another&#8217;s bones.<span id="more-54"></span></p>
<p>     Jim and Marilyn had become rather close friends without ever<br />
having met one another. They had each teased from time to time<br />
about meeting one day, but Jim never really expected Marilyn to<br />
meet with him. Now she had agreed, and they were scheduled to see<br />
each other this evening in a local night spot at eight o&#8217;clock.<br />
They had some idea of how one another looked and a very good idea<br />
of what one another thought. He was anxious and hoped that she<br />
shared his excitement.</p>
<p>     The day seemed to last forever. Everything appeared to be<br />
moving in slow motion. His productivity for the day was, as a<br />
result, outstanding as he tried to occupy the struggling moments<br />
toward the end of the work day. Fridays were somewhat traditional<br />
in that he never went directly home after the work day&#8217;s end. He<br />
would generally frequent a local downtown watering hole until<br />
about seven; remove to one of his favorite restaurants for a bite<br />
to eat; and visit one of several of the local hot spots around<br />
town.</p>
<p>     Jim arrived at the cafe at about five o&#8217;clock and sat in his<br />
favorite chair at the far corner of the bar. He greeted several<br />
friends as they entered and exchanged comments about the grueling<br />
week. He had a difficult time concentrating on the various con-<br />
versations because his mind was on Marilyn. Would she find him<br />
exciting?</p>
<p>     Seven-thirty had arrived. Jim paid his bill and rose to<br />
leave. His mind was dissecting the possibilities of the evening<br />
as he drove to Rascal&#8217;s lounge. As he pulled into the broken<br />
black-topped parking lot he had visions of Marilyn&#8217;s lovely nude<br />
body resting on his chest. He almost didn&#8217;t see the attendant<br />
provided to direct him to available parking. His car rested well<br />
between two other chariots as he entered the lounge.</p>
<p>     Jim went through the doorway with eyes wide, searching for<br />
the evening&#8217;s target. There was no single lady at the bar, so Jim<br />
selected a seat with a view of the entry way and ordered a drink.<br />
He noticed that his hands seemed to have a life of their own.<br />
They were shaking as he attempted to stir his grog. Furtive eyes<br />
continued to paint the doorway to the lounge and still no<br />
Marilyn. It was only ten minutes to eight and no need for con-<br />
cern. She would show.</p>
<p>     In a nonchalant manner, Jim allowed his eyes to travel<br />
throughout the bar. He wasn&#8217;t sure but thought that a lovely<br />
young lady sitting with another man was checking him out rather<br />
well. Bright eyes sparkled from an angelic face. Jim couldn&#8217;t<br />
help but notice her deep, dark and warm cleavage floating in<br />
waves, hugged by the material of a blood-red dress, as her<br />
shoulders moved back and forth. The curl of her generous lips and<br />
her bright smile teased Jim as she continued her conversation<br />
with the man next to her. Just his luck; here was a hot, sexy<br />
woman that seemed to have interest in him. Not only was she with<br />
another man, Jim was waiting for a woman that he had no idea of<br />
how she looked.</p>
<p>     He had trouble watching the entrance in anticipation of<br />
Marilyn. Each time his eyes moved to the door he was distracted<br />
by the lovely woman&#8217;s breasts. They seemed to be calling to him.<br />
He continued to try to get this woman out of his mind, but she<br />
wouldn&#8217;t stop sneaking glances as him. Suddenly, she rose from<br />
her bar stool and began walking toward the rest room. Jim&#8217;s eyes<br />
were now drawn to her magnetic buttocks. The material of her<br />
dress seemed to massage each cheek of her undulating ass. Damn!<br />
He would love to drink her bath water just to see her dry off.<br />
Few times had he ever gotten an erection just looking at a woman<br />
in a bar. This was one of them.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s eyes returned to the door once again and he noticed<br />
the man that had been sitting with the object of his new interest<br />
was walking out of the lounge; apparently leaving. Jim almost<br />
hurt his neck as he spun his head back to see where the lovely<br />
lady in red was. Soon she returned from the rest room, leaned<br />
forward, said something to the bartender and began walking<br />
directly toward Jim.</p>
<p>     Her lovely breasts continued to dance slightly as she ap-<br />
proached. Jim wanted to look behind him to see if she was ap-<br />
proaching someone behind him but thought that would be obvious<br />
and make him look ridiculous. His eyes riveted on the rim of his<br />
glass to prevent him from looking like an idiot. Soon he heard a<br />
whispered, &#8220;is this seat taken?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Nn nnno! Please do sit down. There isn&#8217;t anyone sitting<br />
there,&#8221; Jim heard himself fumble through the words. Damn, why did<br />
he sound like such a fool.</p>
<p>     The red dressed lady eased up to the bar and pulled her seat<br />
after her. After she was obviously well settled, Jim made half a<br />
motion to get up and fix her chair for her. Too late, he thought.<br />
&#8220;Are you waiting for someone?&#8221; she breathed to Jim.</p>
<p>     Now what was he going to say? The fragrance of her scent<br />
captured him, and he wanted to tell her that he had been waiting<br />
for her ever since the doctor first slapped his ass, forty-three<br />
years ago. He gagged on his words slightly, and then his mind<br />
snapped back to his intended purpose. He almost felt guilty that<br />
he was even thinking of this new lady, and he said, &#8220;Yes. I,m<br />
waiting for a friend.&#8221;</p>
<p>     She rolled her shoulders once again and asked, &#8220;What is your<br />
friend&#8217;s name Jim?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Her name is&#8230;but&#8230; How did you know my name was Jim?&#8221; he<br />
returned, and then it began to sink in. &#8220;You can&#8217;t be Marilyn!&#8221;<br />
He stuttered.</p>
<p>     Her smile grew to a full blown show of pearl delight. &#8220;When<br />
I left the house my name was Marilyn,&#8221; she stated emphatically.<br />
&#8220;You&#8217;re probably wondering what I was doing with that man that<br />
was sitting next to me. That was my cousin. I have to confess<br />
that I asked him to stop and have a drink with me so I would have<br />
a way out if you turned out to be a wild looking, sex-crazed<br />
maniac.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim chuckled and nodded his head in a knowing way. &#8220;Well<br />
then, I have to assume that my looks didn&#8217;t scare you too much.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Her eyes diverted to the rim of the glass that the bartender<br />
brought over for her in a somewhat embarrassed fashion. &#8220;I&#8217;m<br />
sorry. I just never did anything like this before and didn&#8217;t know<br />
what to expect.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;No apologies necessary. If you were my cousin, I wouldn&#8217;t<br />
want you to take any chances either. I&#8217;m glad you used your head,<br />
but you still don&#8217;t know whether I&#8217;m a nut case or not,&#8221; Jim of-<br />
fered.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Now that I have seen you, and I couple that with all of the<br />
conversations we&#8217;ve had, I feel pretty comfortable. You are a<br />
very attractive man. And I know you&#8217;re a good man. I was just ap-<br />
prehensive, and now I&#8217;m not,&#8221; she said softly. &#8221;</p>
<p>     There was music playing softly as they continued to get to<br />
know one another better. Suddenly, half way through an explana-<br />
tion of the repairs her car had undergone in the past week, she<br />
stopped and asked Jim if he would like to dance. Jim readily<br />
agreed and they approached the dance floor. As she preceded him,<br />
Jim couldn&#8217;t help but to notice the rise and fall of each but-<br />
tock. He felt his manhood stir once again. The red material rose<br />
and fell as the ripple of each cheek pushed and pulled at the<br />
fabric.</p>
<p>     Having arrived at the small space offered for dancing,<br />
Marilyn turned and opened her arms to receive Jim. He could see<br />
her breasts rise to accentuate her cleavage. Her scent continued<br />
to arouse him. His hands encircled her lovely body and were<br />
blessed by the soft touch. She didn&#8217;t waste any time getting<br />
close to Jim. Her curves melted into his body as they moved to<br />
the music. Marilyn pressed her ample breasts against his chest,<br />
and he could feel the heat of her pussy against his leg. It<br />
seemed as though she was trying to turn him on. Well, whether or<br />
not she was trying, it was happening.</p>
<p>     It became obvious to Marilyn that Jim was getting excited.<br />
His cock began to grow thick and long. He felt it pressing<br />
against his clothing almost to the point of embarrassment. He was<br />
intoxicated with the fact that as his thick cock grew, Marilyn<br />
was pressing herself harder against it. His courage grew with<br />
this thought, and he allowed his hand to drop to Marilyn&#8217;s full<br />
buttocks. He smoothed the material of her dress and returned to<br />
the flesh of her ass to squeeze. As he did, a soft moan escaped<br />
Marilyn&#8217;s lips and her pussy pressed against him once again. Soon<br />
the music came to an end, and they were forced to separate.</p>
<p>     Jim began to show signs of embarrassment as they returned to<br />
the bar, and then his pride took over. He hoped that some of the<br />
other patrons saw his rock-hard cock as he returned. He was proud<br />
of it. Marilyn stopped abruptly as they returned, and Jim ran<br />
into her tight ass with his erection. She looked over her<br />
shoulder and smiled. &#8220;I just wanted to make sure that you were<br />
still there.&#8221;</p>
<p>     After they took their seats Jim indicated that it might be<br />
nice if they were able to go someplace that would be a little bit<br />
more private. Marilyn agreed. They finished their drinks, and Jim<br />
pulled her chair out so they could exit.</p>
<p>     &#8220;The kids are at my mom&#8217;s, and I would love it if you would<br />
come over for a while Jim,&#8221; Marilyn offered.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Are you sure it won&#8217;t be any problem?&#8221; Jim inquired. Im-<br />
mediately he knew that he should have merely said that he would<br />
love to. Why would he take a chance like that? She might have<br />
re-thought the matter.</p>
<p>     &#8220;No. It&#8217;s not a problem. I&#8217;m anxious to learn more about<br />
hypnosis and your adventures. It&#8217;s pretty obvious that you have<br />
become rather proficient at snake charming,&#8221; she offered with a<br />
cute smile as her eyes riveted on the front of his trousers.</p>
<p>     After assisting Marilyn into her car, Jim got into his and<br />
followed her. His mind was racing. He couldn&#8217;t remember the last<br />
time that someone turned him on this much. He could almost see<br />
her dress rising over her head as she removed it for his intrud-<br />
ing gaze. He thought of her lovely buns, draped with only the<br />
sheerest of panties. He envisioned her soft pubic hairs furtively<br />
escaping the edge of her sex-soaked panties. He could smell her<br />
womanhood as her excitement increased. He wanted to make this<br />
woman part of him.</p>
<p>     Marilyn interrupted his mental adventure as she pulled into<br />
a driveway. Christ! He didn&#8217;t even know which street he was on.<br />
His mind had obviously been elsewhere. He felt his heart begin-<br />
ning to beat more rapidly as he put his car in park and extin-<br />
guished his lights. After a quick check in the mirror to make<br />
sure that his hair didn&#8217;t look like a squirrel he was out of the<br />
car and walking behind this lovely creature.</p>
<p>     She fitted the key into the lock and looked back over her<br />
shoulder in an inviting manner. Marilyn lowered her coat to a<br />
waiting chair and told Jim to make himself at home. &#8220;I think a<br />
drink would be in order. Why don&#8217;t you see if you can put some<br />
nice music on. The CD&#8217;s are right next to the player.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;You must enjoy classical music. Three quarters of what you<br />
have is classical,&#8221; Jim raised his voice to assure that Marilyn<br />
heard him. He selected several pieces, placed them into the CD<br />
changer and pushed the play button. Looking around the room, he<br />
was gratified to see that Marilyn&#8217;s taste extended to her lovely<br />
furnishings. Soon she returned with a bottle of wine and two<br />
glasses.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;ve always been partial to classical music Jim. I think<br />
you&#8217;ll enjoy this wine. It&#8217;s kind of hard to come by &#8217;round these<br />
parts partner,&#8221; she teased with a country drawl as she seated<br />
herself close to him. &#8220;Now how does this hypnosis work that you<br />
have talked so much about?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim explained that almost anything was possible with the use<br />
of hypnosis if the subject had the ability. The ability generally<br />
was referred to as somnambulism. Many people were very suggest-<br />
ible and could achieve wonderful results through hypnosis.</p>
<p>     &#8220;What kind of results Jim?&#8221; was her next question as she<br />
moved closer yet to him. He seemed to be trying to formulate an<br />
answer but encountered difficulty due to the closeness of her<br />
soft ample breasts.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You can be anyone you want. You can be with anyone you want<br />
to be with. You can be anywhere you want to be and feel as you<br />
wish for as long as you can physically stand it,&#8221; he explained as<br />
his arm encircled her shoulders.</p>
<p>     &#8220;If I wanted to be with you, on a secluded beach, in the hot<br />
sun, with gulls overhead and waves lapping at the shore, could<br />
you make that happen?&#8221; she questioned with interest.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I really can&#8217;t make anything happen for you Marilyn. You<br />
actually make what happens occur. Each of us has the ability, to<br />
one degree or another, to hypnotize ourselves. I would only be<br />
helping you through the process you don&#8217;t quite understand,&#8221; Jim<br />
explained.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Let&#8217;s give it our best shot Jim. I would like to experience<br />
the scenario just as I outlined it. I want to be with you. I want<br />
it to be great and I want it to last,&#8221; Marilyn pleaded.</p>
<p>     Jim took her through various relaxation stages and success-<br />
fully helped her to a deep trance state. He indicated to her that<br />
they had been marooned on a dessert island and that on a portable<br />
radio they heard that a rescue party was two days away from<br />
bringing them back to civilization. It would be night time and a<br />
nice camp fire had been built. When he snapped his fingers once,<br />
it would soon be daylight and the sun would be glorious; they<br />
would be totally alone. He gave her the suggestion that they had<br />
been attracted to one another during their sea voyage but hadn&#8217;t<br />
the opportunity to connect.</p>
<p>     He further gave her a suggestion that she hadn&#8217;t had sex in<br />
over six months and that she was absolutely insane with desire.<br />
Even if she masturbated she could not quench her thirst for sex.<br />
Jim told her that at the count of three she would awaken, find<br />
herself on an old boat seat that washed ashore and be a little<br />
cold from the night winds blowing off the water.</p>
<p>     She would experience a desire unlike she ever felt before.<br />
Each time she had an orgasm, it would take violent hold of her<br />
and last three times longer that she had ever experienced before.<br />
Her nipples would be so sensitive that she would shudder with the<br />
least touch. When she placed his cock in her mouth she would feel<br />
this intense pressure on her clitoris. The deeper she placed his<br />
rigid penis in her throat, the more intense the feeling in her<br />
hole would be.</p>
<p>     Jim asked her if she understood everything that he told her,<br />
and she acknowledged that she had with a nod of her head. He also<br />
told her that when he placed her head between his hands and<br />
kissed her on the forehead, she would awaken, feel wonderful and<br />
more satisfied than she had ever felt before. The next time that<br />
he snapped his fingers twice, while looking into her eyes, she<br />
would fall into a fast, deep sleep. So he began, &#8220;one, two,<br />
three.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Marilyn sat on the couch that she perceived to be the boat<br />
seat. She had an utterly lost look on her face. Her arms crossed<br />
her chest in an effort to ward off the cold. She sheepishly in-<br />
quired, &#8220;do you think we will be OK until they arrive Jim?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;m sure we will be just fine. I don&#8217;t think there are any<br />
dangerous animals on the prowl, I have built a nice fire and it<br />
will be daylight soon,&#8221; he said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Would you mind if I get out of these wet things and try to<br />
warm myself by the fire Jim. I&#8217;m a little embarrassed, but I<br />
don&#8217;t want to get pneumonia,&#8221; she pleaded shyly.</p>
<p>     Jim could only nod his consent. He had been waiting to see<br />
this lovely body all of his life. Marilyn got up and turned so<br />
that he could release her zipper. She removed the red dress, and<br />
Jim noticed the visible goose flesh as she did so. He had ob-<br />
viously helped her attain temperature hallucination. She was ac-<br />
tually chilly. Jim went over to a near-by arm chair and retrieved<br />
an afghan to place around her. By this time she had removed her<br />
bra but modestly kept her back to Jim. He placed the afghan<br />
around her shivering shoulders and drew her to him.</p>
<p>     Marilyn melted back into his arms and could feel his meat<br />
pressed against her warming buttocks. He felt her fumble a little<br />
and turn to look into his eyes. &#8220;You have been so very kind to<br />
me. This is absolutely frightening not knowing exactly when they<br />
will come for us,&#8221; Marilyn whispered.</p>
<p>     Jim eased her down on the &#8220;boat seat&#8221; and gathered her to<br />
him to increase her warmth. His nose was blessed with the scent<br />
of her hair and the warmth of her body. Again their eyes met. Her<br />
mouth opened ever so slightly as her eyes began to close. Closer<br />
and closer their lips came to touching. At last he could feel her<br />
hot breath bleeding into his own lungs; a kiss of gratitude<br />
turned quickly into a kiss of passion and need. The afghan fell<br />
from her shoulders.</p>
<p>     Moments later his strong hands were on her body. Touching<br />
softly and moving on. Her back flexed as his hands moved slowly<br />
up and down its spine resting on her buttocks. She considered<br />
stopping, but she couldn&#8217;t make herself. Her own hands began to<br />
experiment with the muscles of his body. She felt them ripple to<br />
her touch as a soft moan escaped his lips. This slight sound lit<br />
off lovely explosions in her head. His hands were on her thighs<br />
touching every inch as softly as an angel&#8217;s kiss. She knew she<br />
was wet with anticipation and hunger. Uncontrollably, her hand<br />
soon found the hardness of the staff in his pants. Her control<br />
was gone and she didn&#8217;t care.</p>
<p>     His hands were under her heavy breasts cupping and teasing<br />
her ripe, hard nipples. Once when she was a child she experienced<br />
a fever that was accompanied by a shivering phenomenon. As his<br />
fingers touched her dark pink nipples, this experience was<br />
relived. She began to press her wet, hairy mound into the seat<br />
for some simple relief from the mounting frustration. His tongue<br />
was on her neck tracing love notes. It then moved to her heaving<br />
swollen breasts.</p>
<p>     She felt teeth and lips on her blood-engorged nipples. Again<br />
a shivering took control of her body, and ripples of excitement<br />
thundered through her body. His hand traveled down to that moist,<br />
fragrant hole of her womanhood. Explosions went off in her head<br />
as his hand crept inside her panties to feel her slippery cunt.<br />
He inserted one finger inside her body and then another. In cir-<br />
cular motions he soon brought her to heaven. The bone shaking<br />
convulsions continued on and on. She had never experienced such<br />
an orgasm. Would there never be an end to this joy? She prayed<br />
there would not. Her jerking and moaning brought yet additional<br />
growth to his throbbing cock.</p>
<p>     As if drawn by a magnet, her lips traversed the distance be-<br />
tween his hairy chest and his huge staff. Soon she brought that<br />
gentle monster inside she mouth and teased it with delight. He<br />
was bone hard and bursting with excitement. Her soft mouth sucked<br />
him deep inside to her waiting throat. Something was happening to<br />
her. Up and down went her hungry mouth as her tongue gave him yet<br />
new pleasures. She couldn&#8217;t seem to get enough of this warrior<br />
spear into her throat. Deeper and deeper she sucked the huge cock<br />
into her mouth until her lips brushed the depths of his public<br />
wire. With each inch her moans grew in volume and intensity.</p>
<p>     His head was spinning as he whispered in her ear that he had<br />
never had such tender bliss. The heat rising from her cunt was<br />
quite amazing. He took her swollen sex lips in his mouth and<br />
sucked and nibbled for minutes, his tongue teasing and probing.<br />
All the while, one of his hands was squeezing her buttocks with<br />
such strength it doubled her excitement. His other hand gently<br />
twisted one of her hard nipples. He sucked her sweet love juice<br />
and drank from her wriggling body, swallowing the divine cream<br />
with animal-like relish.</p>
<p>     Her soft pussy was going into spasms now, and he felt the<br />
muscles in her vagina grab for his teasing tongue as he lanced it<br />
into her tense body. Her smooth, rounded hips were jerking up and<br />
down as she attempted to shove as much cunt into his mouth as she<br />
possible could. Spreading her legs wide apart, he raised her but-<br />
tocks in his hands and kissed at her dripping fanny, his nose<br />
completely buried and lost in the dark, springy hairs of her<br />
mound.</p>
<p>     The lips of her sweet cunt were now spread very wide apart,<br />
in a way that completely exposed her deep, hot cavern, the soft<br />
lips of her slit parting and pulsing with desire. The pinkish<br />
flesh gleamed with her love juice, which trickled and oozed down<br />
her tunnel and greased everything ready for the fuck that she was<br />
dying for.</p>
<p>     Taking his fat, throbbing weapon in both hands, he took the<br />
tip and rubbed it all over the slippery opening of her slit,<br />
smearing it with her juices. She had the look of a hungry animal.<br />
She didn&#8217;t want fucked any longer; she needed it. Lowering him-<br />
self on her body, he slid seven inches of cock into her eager<br />
hole. Her cunt swallowed every hot, steaming inch of it, the<br />
membranes inside her gripped his penis as he rammed it deeper and<br />
deeper into the liquid cauldron. The walls of her inner cunt con-<br />
tracted tightly around this invading rod.</p>
<p>     This deprived love tunnel seemed to quiver and clutch,<br />
enclosing the unyielding bulk of his cock in a loving grasp. The<br />
tip of his prick was pressing against her cavity. He enjoyed the<br />
depth of penetration for a few seconds more then grunted with<br />
pleasure as her vaginal muscles squeezed his cock in a milking<br />
action. In a motion that didn&#8217;t dislodge his towering piston, he<br />
swung her over and placed her above him. Her heavy glistening<br />
breasts swayed in his pleasure-filled face. His tongue reached up<br />
to thank each rock-hard nipple in its own way for presenting such<br />
an erotic view.</p>
<p>     He began to see-saw in and out of her as she began to lever<br />
herself up and down the long, thick pole which impaled her. Her<br />
juices were soaking her pubic hair and the slopping, slushing,<br />
slurping sounds from her clasping cunt were erotic music to their<br />
ears. As she cried for it he bucked his hips even faster, match-<br />
ing her up and down motion, her belly smacking against his with<br />
audible slaps of flesh as she clung to him. He hung on to her,<br />
trying to steady her, staring avidly at her bouncing tits when<br />
she pulled away to view the penetration. A wail of ecstasy ripped<br />
from her mouth as the violent explosion of her climax pushed<br />
through the membranes of her passion pit, milking his cock with<br />
the loving vise of her wet sheath.</p>
<p>     With one last frantic thrust, his cock exploded; shooting<br />
his cream in a steady stream of fantastic release. She had never<br />
had such excitement. It was new, wonderful and needed. It went on<br />
and on with such convulsive pleasure that she was sure she would<br />
pass out. She could have easily taken more of what that cock<br />
promised. Jim snapped his fingers, and Marilyn saw the bright<br />
orange sun rise over a sleepy horizon. Around her were the<br />
loveliest trees she had ever seen. Sea gulls sang sweet melodies<br />
as she closed her eyes and welcomed the heat of a new tropical<br />
day.</p>
<p>     Jim gently placed his hands around her resting face and<br />
kissed her on the forehead. He told her to awake and remember<br />
everything. This was one of the most wonderful times he had ever<br />
had, and he was sure that Marilyn was pleased with the outcome.<br />
The most wondrous thing about it was the fact that another<br />
pleasure trip was just a snap of the fingers away. Maybe next<br />
weekend.</p>
<p>                     CHAPTER THREE &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     &#8220;You are now more deeply asleep than you have ever been.<br />
Your body is weightless and seems to float among the clouds. You<br />
can&#8217;t feel your arms or legs. All tension has bled from your<br />
muscles, and you are at complete peace. You are traveling down an<br />
escalator. As the moments pass, you are going deeper and deeper<br />
into a warm and satisfying trance. You feel more safe and com-<br />
fortable than you ever have.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Am I correct when I say that you are interested in mentally<br />
living through a fantasy as a spy in Russia?&#8221; Jim inquired of his<br />
subject Maggie.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Yesss. I want to live my fantasy of being a sexy fem fatale<br />
sent into Russia to extract secrets from a Russian munitions<br />
scientist. I want it to be the sexiest and more exciting ex-<br />
perience of my life,&#8221; Maggie explained in a slow, far-away voice.</p>
<p>     Jim continued, &#8220;You have been sent to Russia under the<br />
pretense of developing trade between the U.S.A. and the Soviet<br />
Union. You work for World Trade Developers in Moscow. You are the<br />
sexiest woman in the city. You have been moving in the upper<br />
crust society of the Soviet Union in an effort to promote<br />
products for the United States and surreptitiously obtain the<br />
plans for a powerful laser weapon for your government.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You are at a cocktail party sponsored by the Kremlin to<br />
enhance new markets of world trade. Around you are hundreds of<br />
people, many of which you are sure work for the K.G.B. You have<br />
to be careful. If your cover is blown, you will have your own<br />
personal tour of Siberia.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You have just met Aleksei Vladimirovich a week ago, a supe-<br />
rior looking young man of thirty-five years of age. You are<br />
hoping that you will see him at this party. The intelligence net-<br />
work assures you that Vladimirovich has top security clearance,<br />
and the plans for the laser weapon are at his flat.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Alex, as you affectionately refer to him, is very well<br />
built, 6&#8242;4&#8243;, 210 pounds, works out every day and has a face that<br />
looks like it was chiseled out of marble. His hair is blond and<br />
his eyes are a deep azure blue. He showed a great deal of inter-<br />
est in you last week when you were at his office on another mat-<br />
ter. You can imagine the size of his cock by the lovely bulge<br />
resting in his trousers, and you are grateful for the opportunity<br />
to work on this project.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You glide through the room in your well-fitted sapphire<br />
blue dress. It clings to you, accenting your lovely breasts and<br />
rolling buttocks. Every person&#8217;s eyes are on you, and each step<br />
you take excites you more. You are casually looking for Alex as<br />
you enjoy the attention that both men and women are showering you<br />
with. Your eye catches a glimpse of him standing on the other<br />
side of the room speaking with a beautiful young Russian girl.<br />
Your heart sinks to think that your plans may be delayed by this<br />
union.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Jorgi, a chemical engineer for one of the companies you<br />
have been dealing with, asks you to dance. Your eyes remain glued<br />
to Alex and his conversation partner as you agree to dance with<br />
Jorgi. If he is not a strong dance leader, you may be able to<br />
sway him closer to Alex to overhear his conversation. Jorgi is a<br />
strong young man with more than a casual interest in you. It<br />
feels good to be in his arms and feel his body against yours. You<br />
can feel yourself responding to the excitement you feel from him<br />
as your bodies move more closely together with the soft music.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Jorgi holds your breasts close to his chest with his hot<br />
hand at the curve of your soft hip. Gradually his left leg moves<br />
between your legs to feel the heat of your womanhood. All the<br />
while you are moving closer to Alex with ease, as Jorgi&#8217;s mind is<br />
preoccupied with the feel of your soft yielding body. You can<br />
feel new strength and size as Jorgi&#8217;s growing, climbing staff<br />
kisses your leg in its travels upward. You are finding it in-<br />
creasingly more difficult to concentrate on Alex&#8217;s conversation.<br />
Jorgi&#8217;s stiff penis is not shy. It has become a hard wad of male<br />
meat nestled in your tightening belly.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Your concentration holds; you are a professional, and you<br />
are encouraged that your ability to control is increasing. The<br />
music ends, and Jorgi doesn&#8217;t seem to want to let go of you. He<br />
asks if he can call you from time to time in his broken, but sexy<br />
English. You assure him that it would be wonderful to hear from<br />
him and notice that Alex is looking at you. You try not to give<br />
Jorgi the &#8216;bum&#8217;s rush&#8217; but can&#8217;t take the chance of Alex direct-<br />
ing his attention elsewhere. &#8216;Excuse me,&#8217; you direct to Jorgi, &#8216;I<br />
have to speak with Alex. Please do call, I&#8217;d love to see you<br />
again&#8217; as you walk casually toward Alex.</p>
<p>     &#8220;A server walks by with a tray of champagne and offers a<br />
glass. You take the drink as a prop and find that you are a bit<br />
thirsty. Suddenly the glass is empty. &#8216;Has champagne glass with<br />
hole in it for you?&#8217; Alex queried with his version of English.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You offer your best seductive smile as you respond, &#8216;I sup-<br />
pose the warmth of the night has joined hands with the majesty of<br />
your lovely country to dry out the old pipes.&#8217; Alex looks at you<br />
with confusion about what your answer means. &#8216;Yes,&#8217; you simplify,<br />
&#8216;I was very thirsty. The glass was with hole in it for me,&#8217; you<br />
smile.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Now, at the count of three, you will wake up and be with<br />
Alex in his car. He has graciously offered to escort you to your<br />
hotel room. You will try to convince him that it would be better<br />
to go elsewhere. You must get into his flat. When he snaps his<br />
fingers once, you will be alone with him in his flat.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You are beginning to feel more sexy than you ever have<br />
before. Your senses are heightened, and every touch will send<br />
waves of sensuous excitement through your body. You know that you<br />
must give Alex more pleasure than he has known in order to escape<br />
with the secrets you have come for. If Alex puts his tongue in<br />
the crook of your neck and his penis is inside your body, you<br />
will feel his cock grow inside of you. It will expand to a full<br />
ten inches in length, stretching the walls of your hot cunt, and<br />
two and a half inches in girth pressing the sensitive lips of<br />
your womanhood outward. Each time his tongue enters your body,<br />
you will have a small climax. You can have hundreds of orgasms.<br />
When he holds your face in his hands, looks into your eyes and<br />
kisses you on the forehead, you will fall back into a deep sleep<br />
but you will remember everything when you do wake up. Do you<br />
understand?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Yes, I understand,&#8221; she said in the far-away voice of the<br />
sleeping.</p>
<p>     Jim began, &#8220;One, two, three. Wake up feeling sexier than you<br />
ever have before. You are hot and mysterious and bursting with<br />
excitement.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Alex, it was good of you to offer to take me home, but<br />
there are so many people at my hotel that will tease me if I show<br />
up with you. You know how cruel fellow workers can be. Would you<br />
mind if we went someplace else instead?&#8221; Maggie asked in a plead-<br />
ing fashion with her cleavage giving yet additional messages.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You would want for to go to Aleksei&#8217;s flat? I have wonder-<br />
ful musik and compelling wine. We will get knowing each another<br />
more best. And crowds make uncomfortable most for me also,&#8221; Alex<br />
commented in his sexiest voice as his hand rested provocatively<br />
on Maggie&#8217;s upper thigh.</p>
<p>     &#8220;That would be great Alex. It&#8217;s early and we have the whole<br />
night to get to know each other better. Drive on,&#8221; Maggie sug-<br />
gested with a hungry smile.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Alex&#8221; snapped his fingers and they were in his flat. &#8220;I<br />
will put musik to play and get blood of grape for I and you,&#8221; Jim<br />
played the part with no little relish. &#8220;Make comfortable and<br />
relax yourself.&#8221; Maggie&#8217;s eyes began photographing the room, not<br />
forgetting that in addition to her building lust, she must find<br />
the plans for the laser weapon.</p>
<p>     Maggie watched Jim&#8217;s muscles ripple as he walked across the<br />
room. He felt her eyes glued to him everywhere he walked. Jim<br />
knew that his body was merely average and that Maggie didn&#8217;t see<br />
it as average. He knew that with her mind she was able to make<br />
&#8220;Alex&#8221; look anyway that she wanted him to look. She would ob-<br />
viously make him look great. Her libido was working overtime, and<br />
the heat developing in the center of loins only served to improve<br />
the situation. Jim&#8217;s cock began to tingle, and he developed a<br />
heaviness in his groin that would require release before too<br />
long.</p>
<p>     Maggie soon began to tingle all over her throbbing body. The<br />
excitement of what she hoped would soon happen sent shivers<br />
through her beautiful body. Jim left the room, went down the hall<br />
and returned in a pair of sweat pants and sweat shirt with the<br />
sleeves removed. There was some writing on the shirt, but she<br />
couldn&#8217;t figure out what it said. The music began to play softly<br />
as he returned with a tray of wine with two glasses. The cork was<br />
removed, and he poured two half glasses; seating himself next to<br />
Maggie, he offered a glass to her extended hand.</p>
<p>     With little time having passed, the empty glasses found<br />
their respective place on the huge, glass-topped cocktail table<br />
and Maggie found herself in Alex&#8217;s arms. She offered her lips to<br />
his hungry mouth, and the tingling increased dramatically. Her<br />
fingers and hands painted his arms and chest with a fervor as her<br />
lust continued to build. Shivers drove through her as his fingers<br />
began to release the buttons to her &#8220;sapphire blue dress.&#8221; She<br />
felt the material tease her soft shoulders and back as it was<br />
slowly drawn over her skin. With a snap maneuver that surprised<br />
her, her bra fell away in one motion exposing her undulating<br />
breasts and erect nipples to Alex&#8217;s gaze and touch. The heat in<br />
her brain became almost unbearable. &#8216;Fuck, Fuck, Fuck&#8217; were the<br />
only words repeated in her mind.</p>
<p>     She began envisioning the muscles of his strong ass flexing<br />
as he drove his bone deep into her wet sheath. She imagined the<br />
hair surrounding his erect staff mingling with her own pubic gar-<br />
den as the rain of the combined love juices served to grease<br />
their journey to eruption. She could see the tip of his engorged<br />
fuck tool, glowing with her pussy juice; a huge purple knob rest-<br />
ing atop a thick, rigid pole adorned with bulging veins feeding<br />
the strength and length of his hardness. She could feel the<br />
weight of his hairy balls on her tight anal button, glistening<br />
with the milk of her natural lubrication. She could see the hair<br />
lying deep and low in the crack between her wiggling buttocks;<br />
wet and clinging as he drove his cock meat into the center of her<br />
being.</p>
<p>     As Jim moved his hands to and from heaving tits, rigid<br />
nipples, glistening buttocks and wet cavern, his mind also embel-<br />
lished the moments and searched for erotic sights, sounds and<br />
smells. He could imagine her hands gently cradling his hairy cum<br />
nuts. He could feel her lips begin to move on his throbbing,<br />
straining penis. First she teased; soon she devoured his broad<br />
column.</p>
<p>     The time for imagining was gone. Jim ran his tongue from one<br />
nipple to another circling each and gently nipping at each. Down<br />
between the cleft of her wiggling titties his tongue traveled.<br />
Down her stomach the wet tongue set fires until it rested in her<br />
panting navel. His teeth bared themselves and bit at her hip<br />
bones sending new shivers up and down her spine as his hands<br />
filled with the fleshy meat of her tight buttocks. Closer and<br />
closer his mouth moved toward her feminine, and fragrant hole.</p>
<p>     Bang! Jim&#8217;s tongue entered Maggie&#8217;s love tunnel and she<br />
began to quiver in climax. She had never felt anything quite like<br />
this. It wasn&#8217;t a roaring, earth-shaking orgasm. It was as if she<br />
had been plugged into and electrical outlet. She could feel<br />
electric shocks traveling between her pussy, her ass hole and her<br />
marble-hard nipples and back again. It came again, and again, and<br />
again. She became dizzy and drove her fuck box against Jim&#8217;s<br />
intruding face. After the first few jolts, Maggie began trying to<br />
count the eruptions to herself. &#8216;One, two, three, four, fiiiive,<br />
holy shit, that was a great one, six, seven, eiggggg, Oh fuck,<br />
can it get better than this?&#8217; Maggie wondered.</p>
<p>     Jim withdrew his tongue and turned her over. His tongue<br />
moved slowly up the back of her thighs, nipping at the taunt back<br />
of her knees. Painting the back of her thighs with his saliva,<br />
Jim soon drove his tongue into the crack of her ass. Maggie threw<br />
her ass up in the air, and Jim&#8217;s tongue drove deep into her cunt<br />
hole once again. Bang! Another electric shock fired through her<br />
wiggling frame. Teasing it&#8217;s way up Maggie&#8217;s back, Jim&#8217;s tongue<br />
played on her shoulder blades and dipped into her glistening arm<br />
pits. She could now feel his hard meat resting in the gully be-<br />
tween the balls of her ass cheeks. She knew she needed that bone<br />
deep in her guts.</p>
<p>     Now Maggie took the offensive. Pushing Jim over to lie on<br />
his back, she was on him with hands and tongue. Licking his swol-<br />
len balls, she saw his huge staff grow again. Her hand stroked<br />
his love pole, and she saw the fluid begin to come to the tip of<br />
his lust weapon. Her hungry eyes danced from rippling belly, to<br />
hairy chest, to the purple tip of his spear. In one motion his<br />
cock was driven deep into her throat. It was stopped when it met<br />
resistance from the throat muscles, but only briefly. Given the<br />
chance to adjust, her throat opened even further, and the cock<br />
finished its journey and was embedded deep in her throat. She had<br />
taken it all, and her lips rested in his wiry public hair. Driv-<br />
ing it in and out gave Jim a wonderful sensation as the head of<br />
his cock was systematically squeezed and released by the involun-<br />
tary muscles of her throat. He would soon cum if he didn&#8217;t stop<br />
now, and he wanted to squirt his load into Maggie&#8217;s hot pussy.</p>
<p>     Turning her over in one quick motion, Jim spread her legs to<br />
expose her soaked honey pot. Resting on his knees, he lowered his<br />
face once again to her pit. Bang! The shock provided yet addi-<br />
tional orgasms. She drove her hot pussy against his face like a<br />
crazed animal, grunting and crying, &#8220;Oh fuck, fuck me, fuck my<br />
deep hole, spread my hairy cunt and fuck it deep. Shove your<br />
great cum stick into my quim and dump your hot load.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;No! I want to see you play with your body. I want to see<br />
you fuck yourself and pinch your hard nipples. I want to see you<br />
finger fuck your hole and cum for me,&#8221; Jim insisted.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Don&#8217;t make me wait, Alex. I need your cock in my hole. I<br />
need you to squeeze my ass cheeks as you drive your thick cock<br />
into my pussy. Please!&#8221; Maggie begged.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Do it baby! Show me your beautiful titties. Pinch your<br />
rock-hard nipples. Dig in your hole with your hand and show me<br />
how you are going to cum hard for me. Show me how much you want<br />
my bone in your hole,&#8221; Jim demanded as she began to moan and<br />
comply with his demands.</p>
<p>     Maggie filled her hands with her own heavy, yet firm breasts<br />
and squeezed hard. Filling her hands with tit flesh, she offered<br />
her raised and tight nipples to Jim&#8217;s glance. Sliding her hands<br />
toward the center of each breast, she grabbed each nipple between<br />
forefinger and thumb and began to pinch and roll the puckered<br />
nipple flesh. This sent waves of additional excitement through<br />
her lust-racked body.</p>
<p>     Her hips began to bounce on the bed as if there was an im-<br />
aginary cock driving deep inside of her. Releasing one ripe<br />
nipple, her hand traveled down her stomach, pressing as it went<br />
to delve into her waiting, wet bush. Nervous fingers separate the<br />
lips of her cunt hole to cover them with the slick juice of her<br />
desire. Jim watched as her glistening fingers moved to her love<br />
button, pinching and pulling she was forced to grunt deeply and<br />
begin shaking her breast with her other hand.</p>
<p>     Releasing her clit, her middle finger slipped effortlessly<br />
into her wet cunt. She began pumping this single digit in and<br />
out. Soon a second finger was introduced to the hot cavern, and<br />
then a third. Deeper and deeper she drove her hand into her<br />
steaming cunt. She released her other breast and used the other<br />
hand to help pump her womanhood and furiously rub her clit. As<br />
both hands were centered mindlessly on her loins, her breasts<br />
were squeezed together as two huge mounds of shaking flesh<br />
adorned by hot pink nipples reaching for the ceiling. Jim&#8217;s hand<br />
continued to slowly stroke his organ as he watched Maggie pound-<br />
ing her pussy deeply. He was positioned between her outstretched<br />
legs and she was beginning to climax. Her beautiful face<br />
tightened as her lips were pulled taunt across it. Her eyes were<br />
closed tightly, leaving wrinkles to frame them. The tendons in<br />
her neck rose as if straining to keep her head on her shoulders.<br />
Her head twisted back and forth, from side to side.</p>
<p>     Reaching toward her, Jim grabbed her wet hands and placed<br />
them against his lips. He tasted this woman and smelled the<br />
fragrance of her orgasm. If only he could bottle this scent!<br />
Moving to one side of her, Jim rolled her over. He began massag-<br />
ing the muscles of her back to reduce the tension she had built<br />
up. His hands found her rubbery ass cheeks and deeply moved these<br />
mounds of flesh. Maggie began to moan once again. He massaged the<br />
muscles of her neck and began kissing her ear lobes and neck. She<br />
began to stir again.</p>
<p>     Jim placed one of his knees between her legs into the wet<br />
pit of her hot snatch and continued to rub her back. Ever-so-<br />
slowly, Maggie began grinding her groin into his hard knee and<br />
thigh. Jim pressed ahead as his eyes were blessed with the vision<br />
of her buttocks wrapped around his leg and the sides of her<br />
breasts pushed out by the pressure of the mounds resting on the<br />
bed.</p>
<p>     Turning her over once again, Jim laid next to her and kissed<br />
her gently on her hot lips. His lips traveled to her resting<br />
nipples bringing them to life again. He again placed himself be-<br />
tween her legs and kissed her navel. Soon his face was resting<br />
over her fragrant pussy. Bang! His tongue dove into her depths<br />
and sent her convulsing again. Before Maggie knew what was hap-<br />
pening, Jim fell forward in one motion and his dick effortlessly<br />
found its mark. It was deep inside of Maggie&#8217;s grasping cunt but<br />
it remained motionless. She tried to move under his weight to<br />
drive the pole in and out, but Jim did not move. He nuzzled his<br />
nose into the crook of her neck and allowed his tongue to dart<br />
against her skin.</p>
<p>     With this move, Maggie felt something she did not know she<br />
could feel. &#8220;Alex&#8221; had a great cock. It must be eight inches in<br />
length and two inches wide. However, it was growing. She could<br />
feel it getting longer and spreading her cunt lips farther apart.<br />
She felt as if she would explode, but didn&#8217;t care if she did.<br />
When Jim&#8217;s cock has reached it&#8217;s full &#8220;ten inches in length and<br />
two and a half inches in girth,&#8221; Maggie felt completely full of<br />
cock. Jim now began to move this monster pole into Maggie&#8217;s<br />
depths. Each stroke seemed to bring another climax. She didn&#8217;t<br />
know anyone could fit this much fuck bone into a cunt no matter<br />
how big or lubricated it was.</p>
<p>     Jim continued to move his raging penis into Maggie&#8217;s love<br />
tunnel until he could hold off no longer. He could feel the cum<br />
boiling in his balls. The feeling was so intense that he thought<br />
that he could feel the cum traveling from the bottom of his legs<br />
and from his very brain. He reached under Maggie and filled his<br />
hands with her quaking ass cheeks as his cock continued to drive<br />
deep into her being. Her breasts and belly were now soaked with<br />
his perspiration and covered with his dislodged hair as he lifted<br />
himself to watch his glistening penis drive into Maggie&#8217;s body.<br />
Her grunts resembled those of an animal driven by primordial<br />
lust.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s cock exploded with one wave after another. His thick<br />
cream came in gobs painting the walls of Maggie&#8217;s greasy cunt.<br />
She could feel the overflow of cum  pressing out of her hole<br />
around his shaft, flowing down and cooling her hot ass hole. She<br />
continued to buck hard against Jim, pulling his thick cock into<br />
her with her heals pounding his flexing ass muscles.</p>
<p>     Maggie&#8217;s explosion was so intense that she either passed out<br />
or lost her sight for a short time. She could see nothing with<br />
her eyes, but the vision of Jim&#8217;s hard driving cock was burned<br />
into her mind&#8217;s eye. As her ecstasy subsided, she laid there and<br />
continued to feel tingling throughout her spent body. Jim<br />
couldn&#8217;t or did not want to move.</p>
<p>     He was almost asleep when he sensed Maggie moving about the<br />
room. &#8216;Shit! He thought to himself. She is probably trying to<br />
find the plans. I better not let this go any farther. &#8220;Maggie!<br />
Did you need something?&#8221; Jim inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;No Alex. I was just looking for a towel,&#8221; she responded as<br />
she returned to the side of the bed.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Sit here next to me for a moment,&#8221; Jim requested patting<br />
the bed next to him. She sat but looked a bit nervous. Jim placed<br />
his hands on either side of her face, looked into her eyes and<br />
kissed her on the forehead. Maggie melted back onto the bed and<br />
fell into a deep sleep once again. &#8220;You have found the plans<br />
while Alex was sleeping, dressed and slipped out of the flat<br />
without being detected. You are now safely away, back in your own<br />
country, feeling wonderful and well rested. When I snap my<br />
fingers you will begin to wake up slowly and remember everything<br />
that happened. Do you understand?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Again, the far away response of &#8220;yes&#8221; came from her lips.<br />
She was lovely laying there on the bed. Jim was reluctant to wake<br />
her up because she looked so peaceful and angelic.</p>
<p>     Time was getting late, and Jim knew that Maggie would want<br />
to get tidied up. Snapping his fingers, Jim said gently, &#8220;wake up<br />
now feeling refreshed and comfortable. Maggie opened her eyes<br />
slowly and allowed her glance to travel the room. Her glance<br />
finally rested on Jim at the side of the bed.</p>
<p>     &#8220;That was absolutely the most exciting time I&#8217;ve even spent.<br />
I have never been that hot, and I know I never came that many<br />
times in a month. Thank you so much for teaching me a great deal<br />
about myself and my own sexuality, Jim. Promise me we will take<br />
other trips together,&#8221; she pleaded.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Trips are my specialty Maggie. If you have the gas, I can<br />
drive. I too enjoyed it more than I can say. Jorgi did feel a<br />
little left out. Maybe you&#8217;ll have a chance to spend some time<br />
with him in the future. I plan to teach you how to accomplish<br />
that with or without me. But that&#8217;ll be another story,&#8221; Jim con-<br />
cluded with a smile.</p>
<p>                      CHAPTER FOUR &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     It was Sunday evening, and Jim was tripping through the<br />
channels with his trusty remote. Low and behold, Captain James T.<br />
Kirk of the Starship Enterprise was listening to Bones explaining<br />
that he was a doctor and not a miracle worker. Spock was sharp-<br />
ening his ears to deal with the next catastrophe, and it dawned<br />
on Jim that one of his computer correspondent pals was a Sci Fi<br />
aficionado.</p>
<p>     Jim had the opportunity to communicate frequently with her<br />
over the phone lines, through the computer, but had never met<br />
her. Her computer handle was Star; not an uncommon name for a Sci<br />
Fi buff. He had seen a photo of her, that he downloaded in what<br />
is referred to as a GIF format; a digitized representation of a<br />
photo that has been scanned into a computer. The photo was, as<br />
she suggested, somewhat old, but all of the same characteristics<br />
must still be present. She was an exciting-looking woman sporting<br />
shoulder length brown hair, a lovely smile, large breasts and a<br />
well-defined waist. Her wit assured Jim that she was someone that<br />
he would enjoy being with.</p>
<p>     She had indicated some interest in hypnosis, but said that<br />
it had been tried before with her to no avail. Further, she<br />
shared that she had a very vivid imagination and did love sex a<br />
great deal. Her main interest was in satisfying her partner.<br />
&#8220;Would you be willing to have me try working with you one day to<br />
determine if you have the ability to go into a trance?&#8221; Jim asked<br />
during one of their frequent conversations.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Well, I think we have gotten to know one another well<br />
enough. I wouldn&#8217;t be opposed to it, but I really don&#8217;t think<br />
that it will do any good. Do you think Thursday will be good for<br />
you,&#8221; she asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t think I have anything pressing. I&#8217;ll double check<br />
and leave a message for you on the system. Just leave your ad-<br />
dress and the time you want me to show up. If there&#8217;s a problem,<br />
I&#8217;ll let you know, and we can make it another time,&#8221; Jim urged.</p>
<p>     Star&#8217;s mind began to question. &#8216;Wouldn&#8217;t it be great to make<br />
love in a space ship? I wonder what kind of a guy this Jim really<br />
is? Could I really be hypnotized? I wonder how it would feel to<br />
have a Romulan&#8217;s thick cock inside of me? Does a Romulan have a<br />
cock?&#8217; The questions continued to flow with no distinct result in<br />
mind. The thought of it, none-the-less was making her horny. She<br />
hoped that Thursday would bring some interesting answers.</p>
<p>     Jim returned home from the office and turned on his com-<br />
puter. In only seconds he was on line with the bulletin board<br />
system and found that there was a message for him. His eyes lit<br />
up when he saw that Star had left him the information about her<br />
address, general directions and the time of eight o&#8217;clock. He im-<br />
mediately keyed in the information advising her that the date and<br />
time were fine, and that he would be happy to be there.</p>
<p>     Method would be the difficulty. Jim knew that if Star was<br />
intelligent and had a vivid imagination, she should be very sus-<br />
ceptible to hypnosis. Her problem was likely that no one took<br />
enough time to relax her sufficiently to allow the suggestions to<br />
do their work. Jim had devised a method that had worked several<br />
times in the past and would introduce Star to it when they met.</p>
<p>     Thursday arrived and Jim started to drive over to Star&#8217;s<br />
house. He was about fifteen minutes early so he decided to just<br />
ride about the neighborhood. At 8:00 o&#8217;clock he drew together the<br />
courage to approach Star&#8217;s door. After a brief wait the door<br />
opened to reveal a lovely woman with a warm smile and look of<br />
slight apprehension. &#8220;Jim?&#8221; she asked, wondering if this could be<br />
her previously unseen friend. A wordless smile assured her that<br />
this was indeed Jim, and she invited him to enter. &#8220;Please made<br />
yourself comfortable, Jim. I thought I would get us a drink.<br />
Would you like a glass of white wine?, she queried.</p>
<p>     &#8220;That would be great Star; but please don&#8217;t go to any<br />
trouble,&#8221; Jim pleaded in his best manner. He walked into the<br />
living room and settled in what appeared to be a comfortable<br />
chair. Soon Star returned with a tray bearing a bottle of chilled<br />
wine, a cork screw and two stemmed glasses. He couldn&#8217;t help but<br />
to notice her warm body as it swayed into the room. She appealed<br />
to him in several respects. He already knew that she had a<br />
pleasant enough personality, and now he saw that she was also<br />
physically appealing. &#8220;Would you like to begin right away, Star?&#8221;<br />
he asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Whenever you&#8217;re ready, Jim,&#8221; she responded. Jim asked her<br />
to pour herself a glass of wine and have a seat in a comfortable<br />
chair. She did so and selected a chair close to Jim. She sipped<br />
on the wine and leaned back to become comfortable. Jim slowly<br />
took her through a series of relaxation exercises and noticed<br />
that she was making fine progress. He decided to deepen the<br />
trance and see what happened. She was indeed imaginative and<br />
seemed to be a good subject. The trance was deepened once again.<br />
She was mentally brought down deeper and deeper by visualizing an<br />
escalator reaching to the depths of her mind. Jim could see the<br />
muscles of her body begin to relax as she sunk into the chair.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You are now in a deeper sleep than you have ever been<br />
before, Star. You are a very sensual woman, and you can feel<br />
yourself tingling all over. There is a warmth spreading<br />
throughout your lovely body, teasing your full breasts and paint-<br />
ing your womanhood. It merely serves to make you more comfortable<br />
and relaxed. You have often shared an interest in Science Fic-<br />
tion. I am going to take you on a journey that will enable you to<br />
experience things that you have never felt before. From time to<br />
time you will perceive yourself to be in danger, but I stress<br />
that at no time will I allow anything to happen to you. If at any<br />
time you become too concerned, you may fall into a natural sleep<br />
and awaken slowly; unafraid and well rested. You are not com-<br />
pelled to do anything against your will. If you encounter any-<br />
thing that you are uncomfortable with, feel free to share that<br />
with me. Do you understand?&#8221; Jim asked. Star nodded slowly, and<br />
Jim continued.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You will become the character in this story, and you will<br />
see, hear and feel everything that the character does.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Star finds herself in a strange land. There are colors she<br />
has never seen, sounds she&#8217;s never heard and smells that have<br />
never touched her senses. There is an abundance of lovely trees<br />
and flowers that blend to offer her eyes the most wondrous gift.<br />
She can hear a waterfall close by and smell the moisture in the<br />
air. Her heart is racing in anticipation of what experience she<br />
may meet.</p>
<p>     &#8220;She is science officer and has just ridden a light beam to<br />
this strange planet&#8217;s surface. Star is under orders of the Cap-<br />
tain of the vessel which has brought her to this strange globe.<br />
She is on a mission to discover if there exists intelligent life<br />
on this planet. She looks about and sees Maagnex, a citizen of<br />
Szinval. Earth and Szinval have entered into an alliance of joint<br />
adventure to search the galaxy for other potential allies in<br />
their common battle against an evil galactic empire. Maagnex is<br />
neither man nor woman. Szinvalites have the ability to self<br />
reproduce and re-generate themselves.</p>
<p>     &#8220;As she exchanges wary glances with her new partner, sud-<br />
denly she sees a slow flash of bluish energy strike Maagnex<br />
squarely in the chest. It drops to the reddish ground, and she<br />
immediately pulls her ultra-sound weapon. Her eyes flash from<br />
colorful rock to unrecognized tree in an effort to locate the<br />
source of the assassin. She sees movement to the left, and<br />
quickly turns and trains her weapon on the area of movement. A<br />
scale-covered creature peeks out from behind a green rock and<br />
takes aim. Star&#8217;s weapon is discharged, and an inhuman sound<br />
issues forth from behind the rock.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Cautiously, she approaches the spot where the sound came<br />
from. Her eyes fix on what appears to be a monster of regal<br />
proportions. He must have stood eight feet tall. He was com-<br />
pletely naked and covered with reptilian scales. She believes<br />
that it must have been a male because of the rather large sex or-<br />
gans that resembled those of a human man. In the distance, she<br />
hears animal-like sounds and see several similar creatures ap-<br />
proaching. She is grateful that they don&#8217;t look too bright.<br />
Quickly she returns to Maagnex and begins to usher it into what<br />
appears to be a cave off to her left. As she drags Maagnex into<br />
the cave, she feels a slight upward pull.</p>
<p>     &#8220;She enters further into the cave and Maagnex soon feels al-<br />
most weightless. Suddenly, she feels herself rising up into the<br />
air in the interior of the cave. Maagnex is following her. She<br />
settles gently onto the ceiling of the cave. She is only twenty<br />
feet into the cave, and she feels almost weightless. The whole<br />
world seems to be up side down. As she pulls Maagnex further into<br />
the cave, her weight seems to increase. There was never anything<br />
like this in her star manual. Gravity becomes reversed in this<br />
bizarre cave.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Her journey continues as she attempts to find a place where<br />
she can administer aid to Maagnex and notify her Captain. Soon<br />
she finds a small pool of water, resting comfortably in the ceil-<br />
ing of the cave. Maagnex groans, and she harbors some hope that<br />
it will recover sufficiently to return to the ship&#8217;s medical<br />
staff. Its wounds are dressed to such an extent to stop the<br />
slight bleeding that occurred, and she reaches for her communica-<br />
tion device. &#8216;Star to Command,&#8217; she hails the ship.</p>
<p>     &#8220;There is no answer and her concern increases that the<br />
reverse field that she has encountered has hampered her ability<br />
to reach her ship. She must return to the mouth of the cave in an<br />
effort to contact the ship. She decides to wait in hopes that her<br />
unwanted visitors outside the cave will take their fallen warrior<br />
and leave the area. If the crew of the ship does not hear from<br />
Star soon, they will surely investigate.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Minutes passed like lazy hours. She decides to approach the<br />
entrance to the cave to try again to communicate with the ship.<br />
Stealthily, she moves across the ceiling of the cave. She begins<br />
to feel more weightless again. Just as she sees the opening, she<br />
feels a presence and smells an odor that she can not identify.<br />
Her weapon is advanced before her. Instantly, her arm is in the<br />
cold grip of something or someone unidentifiable. The pressure on<br />
her wrist is so severe that her weapon floats away. In one swift,<br />
powerful motion she feels her suit stripped from her to expose<br />
her bountiful breasts and vacillating thighs.</p>
<p>     &#8220;It was one of the creatures that she had encountered upon<br />
arrival. Her heart pounds as she fights this frightening crea-<br />
ture. His cold, scaled hands gently but menacingly reach for her<br />
curving breasts and strokes her taunt buttocks wiggling toward<br />
freedom. Suddenly her panties disappear in one movement exposing<br />
a tuft of soft hair which protects her velvety pussy lips. Her<br />
mind is racing. This creature is trying to rape her. She sees his<br />
engorged, towering member standing in an erect fashion. It has<br />
increased in size and must now be twenty inches in length and a<br />
full four inches wide. His balls are like two soft coconuts,<br />
devoid of hair.</p>
<p>     &#8220;There is no possible way that she can survive such an as-<br />
sault. Star reaches deep within herself to muster all of her<br />
strength and lashes out with her foot at his huge balls. After<br />
the thud which sounded foreboding, she looks into his eyes to<br />
determine what damage is done. It appeared as though he smiled.<br />
Her concern turns to panic. As they float through the air, she is<br />
helpless to stop his drive. His cold hand reaches into the<br />
crevice of her ass, and he spreads her legs with his strong<br />
finger-like extensions. His other hand is around her waist, and<br />
he draws her to him. Closer and closer his huge cock comes to her<br />
straining pussy. It touches the lips of her pussy, and she fights<br />
him away once again. Her strength is quickly subsiding, and she<br />
knows that only moments stand between her and agony.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Zap&#8230; the report of a ultra-sound weapon steals through<br />
the cave. Star looks into the face of her assailant to find a<br />
stupid, confused look which seemed to linger motionless. The<br />
creature relaxed and seemed to float over into the corner of the<br />
cavern. Star remained floating in the cave, and soon her eyes<br />
fell upon Captain Jim Mandrel standing at the entrance to the<br />
grotto. Star&#8217;s relief was beyond words. &#8216;Are you OK, Star?&#8217; asked<br />
Jim.</p>
<p>     &#8220;&#8216;Yes Captain. I&#8217;ve never been so glad to see anyone in my<br />
life; in the life I almost didn&#8217;t have any more. Thank you.&#8217;</p>
<p>     &#8220;&#8216;I&#8217;ve never seen a reverse gravity cave before. Is Maagnex<br />
in there with you?&#8217; the Captain inquired as he attempted to<br />
divert his eyes out of deference to Star&#8217;s nakedness.</p>
<p>     &#8220;&#8216;Yes Captain. I don&#8217;t know what kind of shape it&#8217;s in. It<br />
took a pretty bad shot to the chest,&#8217; she responded as she sud-<br />
denly realized that she didn&#8217;t have a stitch of clothing on.</p>
<p>     &#8220;The Captain explains that their is a security team outside.<br />
He asks them to wait so that Star will not be embarrassed. He<br />
enters the cave and she feels his eyes on her body as she<br />
modestly attempts to cover herself as well as she may with her<br />
hands. The Captain sees her heavy breasts floating in the air.<br />
Her buttocks wiggle nicely as she moves her legs in an effort to<br />
maintain balance. He indicates that he will need some help get-<br />
ting Maagnex to the entrance to the cave. She puts her modesty on<br />
the back burner and follows him to the rear of the cavern. She<br />
feels her weight shift as the gravity once again begins to pull<br />
on her breasts and buttocks. This is one of the strangest feel-<br />
ings she has ever had. It is exciting. It is equally exciting how<br />
the Captain looks at her body and tries to pretend not to see it.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Star assists Captain Mandrel carry Maagnex to the entrance<br />
to the cavern. He indicates that she should stay well within the<br />
cave until he returns with a new uniform for her. He helped her<br />
locate her weapon and left the cavern with Maagnex into the hands<br />
of the security team waiting to assist,&#8221; Jim instructed Star.</p>
<p>     As Jim was giving the suggestions to Star as she reclined in<br />
the chair, he noticed that she was becoming excited from time to<br />
time. She seemed to enjoy the weightless feeling that she found<br />
in the cave. He decided to help her capitalize on the feeling.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You are still in the cavern, warm but naked. You remain in<br />
the weightless area of the cave and are enjoying a feeling that<br />
you have never felt before. Your breasts are large but seem to<br />
float in the air. It is almost similar to swimming in the buff.<br />
You can feel the warm, damp air all around you; kissing your<br />
thighs, teasing your nipples and separating your buttocks. You<br />
enjoy the thought of Captain Mandrel sneaking peeks at your<br />
lovely body. You enjoyed the feeling as you brushed up against<br />
him as you assisted him removing Maagnex from the cave. You begin<br />
to think how it would be to make love in mid-air.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Almost uncontrollably, your hands reach up and caress your<br />
breasts and tweak you nipples as you wait for the Captain to<br />
return. Suspended in the air you reach behind you to feel the<br />
texture of your buttocks. As you cup one breast with one hand,<br />
the other dips into your own cave to feel its wetness. You are<br />
not sure whether it was the fear of the creature or the excite-<br />
ment that Captain Mandrel offered that made you as wet as you<br />
are. You slip one finger inside of your honey pot; then another<br />
and yet another. You begin to pinch and pull at your nipples.</p>
<p>     &#8220;When I snap my fingers once, you will open your eyes. You<br />
will be in the cavern in a weightless state. You will notice that<br />
the Captain has returned and has been watching you from the<br />
shadows. You may feel free to deal with this in any way you see<br />
fit. When I snap my fingers again, you will wake up completely<br />
and feel wonderfully rested and completely relaxed. The next time<br />
that I snap my fingers twice and tell you to relax, you will fall<br />
into a deep sleep just as you have this time. Do you understand<br />
all that I have told you, Star?&#8221; Jim asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Yes. I understand,&#8221; Star said in an almost imperceptible<br />
voice.</p>
<p>     Jim snapped his fingers and Star opened her eyes. She jumped<br />
as if she were startled and immediately covered herself with her<br />
hands. She sheepishly looked at Jim and began searching for<br />
words.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;m sorry Captain. It was just a strange feeling; something<br />
that I have never felt before. I don&#8217;t usually touch myself. I<br />
prefer to leave that to someone else,&#8221; Star offered.</p>
<p>     Jim returned, &#8220;with a body like that, I think I would touch<br />
it as often as I could. I&#8217;m kind of sorry now that I never paid<br />
more attention to you. This atmosphere is exciting. It must be<br />
something like skinny-dipping. I brought a new uniform for you. I<br />
hope that I got the size right.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I was just thinking the same thing.. about skinny-dipping I<br />
mean. It is uncanny how wonderful it feels. If you don&#8217;t think<br />
you&#8217;ll be missed for a while, we could always explore this cave a<br />
little more closely. That would give you a chance to see what it<br />
feels like,&#8221; Star said.</p>
<p>     The Captain returned to the mouth of the cave, said some-<br />
thing on the communicator and returned. He began removing his<br />
uniform with a rather shy smile on his face. &#8220;You only live once.<br />
Right?&#8221; he said to Star.</p>
<p>     She smiled and opened her arms to his naked body. Their lips<br />
met in a warm kiss that seemed to melt with their heat. His hands<br />
reached to touch her large, but weightless breasts. She could<br />
feel her nipples harden to a marble-like quality as they tingled<br />
in his hands. Star felt his cock begin to make the journey from<br />
its resting place to what must be new heights. His tool was not<br />
just floating at this point; it was straining. She could feel it<br />
leave a trail of fluid on her thigh as it increased in both<br />
length and girth. Her hands reached for his buttocks to feel the<br />
hair that uniformly covered his muscular globes. His hand, in<br />
turn, found the cleft between her own ass cheeks, and he<br />
separated these soft, tight mounds.</p>
<p>     Her lovely, woolly cunt was dripping with anticipation. The<br />
lips of her pussy began to pout and fold out in anticipation of<br />
his inevitable entrance. Jim placed the tip of his raging organ<br />
into the opening and allowed it to tease. First an inch went into<br />
the depths; then another. He then pulled it out, covered with her<br />
hot cream. He pressed further into her slippery love hole with<br />
four inches and again withdrew. In his next effort, he slip all<br />
eight inches of his fuck tube into her hot cunt until his balls<br />
were well seated against her puckered ass hole. At this depth he<br />
remained, savoring the involuntary convulsions of her hot tunnel.</p>
<p>     Lowering his head, he began to suck relentlessly on her ripe<br />
nipples; feeling the spongy texture of her large breasts. It<br />
seemed to Star as if his thick penis began to grow again. &#8220;Fuck<br />
my sweet hole Jim. Fuck it hard and deep. Fuck me in the air. Put<br />
your cock deeper into me than you have ever put it in any one,&#8221;<br />
she almost screamed.</p>
<p>     Jim drove his diamond hard cock into Star with wild abandon.<br />
They floated in the air as Star bucked and road this fiery rod.<br />
Her breasts floated effortlessly, and she could feel the air sur-<br />
rounding them. Suddenly, she could feel a new rigidity enter<br />
Jim&#8217;s cock. He grunted deeply and began to shoot hot loads of<br />
cream into Star&#8217;s waiting hole. She too, felt a tingling begin in<br />
her toes and move throughout her body. It seemed as if it would<br />
last forever. Again and again a new orgasm visited her.</p>
<p>     Soon, they were both spent; drifting in the air. They<br />
relaxed into a cuddling position and continued to touch one<br />
another. Jim broke the silence, &#8220;I do hope that you enjoyed it as<br />
much as I did.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Wonderful! Absolutely wonderful, Captain,&#8221; she responded.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t doubt that this is one of the most exciting caves<br />
that I have ever explored. I hope that I will have the oppor-<br />
tunity to explore with you once again, Star,&#8221; Jim said as he<br />
snapped his fingers.</p>
<p>                      CHAPTER FIVE &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     Would his mind ever quit gravitating to thoughts of gut-<br />
twisting climaxes, beautiful bodies and the dizzying aroma of<br />
sex? Jim sat thinking of the excitement associated with some of<br />
his recent adventures with hypnosis and sex. He had used hypnosis<br />
on his lovely wife Peggy on several occasions in scenarios rang-<br />
ing from a massage by a hunk of a man to actually fucking he and<br />
a friend at the same time. Their sex had never been so good. He<br />
wasn&#8217;t sure whether Peggy would ever have broken fear&#8217;s icy grip<br />
had he not used hypnosis, but he was glad that she did. Now she<br />
was free to experiment with her own sexuality without concern for<br />
traditional guilt or jealousy.</p>
<p>     Jim did have to deal with his own guilt however. He<br />
developed the usual arguments about allowing his wife to be<br />
promiscuous. They included reputation, children, jealousy and<br />
relationship. He felt quite confident that, as long as they were<br />
discrete, neither his nor Peggy&#8217;s reputation would suffer. Their<br />
children were all but grown now. Both daughters were away at col-<br />
lege. On the topic of jealousy, they had seen too many of their<br />
friends break up or divorce because they were jealous of another<br />
person. He was confident that no man or woman could challenge<br />
their emotional commitments. If that were possible, they<br />
shouldn&#8217;t be together in the first place.</p>
<p>     Before Jim ever committed to involve himself in the life-<br />
style of sexual freedom, he searched his heart. If Peggy never<br />
had a sexy thought about another man, she probably wouldn&#8217;t be<br />
normal. Should he allow himself to be jealous of that? Did he<br />
want Peggy to become enraged if he wanted another woman? Vir-<br />
tually every man he knew strayed from time to time. When it was<br />
done with deception it was always negative and sometimes resulted<br />
in broken relationships. Had they not been broad-minded enough,<br />
he was sure that they would have lost one another long ago. It<br />
would have been a terrible waste, because in all other matters<br />
they were the best of friends and excellent partners in life.<br />
Guilt and jealousy, as a result, were not valid issues. Their<br />
life had been vastly enhanced with no danger of deception ruining<br />
their relationship.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s mind began to work on sharing these principals with<br />
others with two motives in mind. The first motive was, quite<br />
naturally, to locate other individuals that turned him on. The<br />
next was to promote the use of hypnosis in sex and the lifestyle<br />
of sexual freedom. The day didn&#8217;t go by that he didn&#8217;t sign on to<br />
the computer bulletin board service. They had a great x-rated<br />
section that permitted him to chat with others about sex<br />
anonymously. Obviously, most of the people that he chatted with<br />
were women. They would share their sexual fantasies with him and<br />
he with them.</p>
<p>     Jim had also left public messages on the system suggesting<br />
that if anyone cared to discuss a swinging lifestyle or hypnosis<br />
in the bed room that they should feel free to contact him. One<br />
day after logging on to the system, he heard his computer beep.<br />
This was accompanied by a message indicating that Don wanted to<br />
chat with him. Jim responded to the page and welcomed the caller.<br />
Don, a computer communicator from Western Illinois, inquired<br />
whether or not Jim was serious about the use of hypnosis in the<br />
bed room. Jim indicated that he was and explained some of the<br />
uses of hypnosis to improve sexual relationships.</p>
<p>     Excitement was evident in Don&#8217;s responses. Jim asked whether<br />
Don and his lady had ever experimented with other persons outside<br />
of their relationship. Don indicated that he had not, but would<br />
not be opposed if Donna would consent. He went on to say that she<br />
would likely not be interested, but that he would discuss the<br />
topic with her. Jim suggested that Don allow Donna to read one of<br />
the stories that he wrote on the topic. If she demonstrated any<br />
interest, they could pursue the matter further. Don thanked Jim<br />
for his information, indicated that the conversation had really<br />
turned him on and assured Jim that he would get back to him.</p>
<p>     A few days went by and Jim heard nothing further from Don.<br />
Then one day as Jim was jumping around the bulletin board system<br />
he was again paged. He responded to the page and found Don wait-<br />
ing to continue the previous conversation. Don indicated that he<br />
had offered Jim&#8217;s article to Donna and that she had found it very<br />
interesting. Additionally he and Donna had discussed the topic of<br />
&#8220;hypnosex&#8221; at length, became very aroused at the many doors that<br />
this would open for them and fucked each other&#8217;s brains out af-<br />
terward. Jim got a smile on his face as his mind turned to mo-<br />
ments gone by. He had similar experiences and could identify with<br />
the other couple.</p>
<p>     Don asked Jim if he would ever be willing to travel to Il-<br />
linois to put on a demonstration of hypnosis. As he heard this<br />
request, he could feel the warmth begin to develop in his pants.<br />
Jim&#8217;s cock began to grow thinking about the prospect of teaching<br />
yet others to reach the heights that he and Peggy did. He indi-<br />
cated that it was possible that he could take a long weekend and<br />
visit with them. Jim also told Don that there would be no obliga-<br />
tion to continue to pursue such avenues if after they met him<br />
they did not feel comfortable. Don told Jim that he would leave<br />
some electronic mail for him explaining how to reach Don&#8217;s house<br />
and other incidentals. They bid each other good bye and signed<br />
off the system.</p>
<p>     Jim was an accomplished hypnotist. He had been using hyp-<br />
nosis clinically for years helping police departments interview<br />
witnesses for recall of events. He had never had the occasion to<br />
use hypnosis on anyone other than Peggy for purposes of improved<br />
sex. This was indeed exciting. He would be able to teach Donna<br />
how to improve and intensify her climaxes. He would be able to<br />
teach her mind how to fly to a secluded beach with her lover,<br />
shape her lover into any person she wanted and have the best sex<br />
she had ever known. Don would also benefit by the same abilities.<br />
He could stay harder longer, turn Donna into anyone he wanted to,<br />
be more responsive to his partner&#8217;s needs and generally enjoy all<br />
of his adventures much better. His cock was hard just thinking of<br />
all of the possibilities.</p>
<p>     The date was set. Jim had arranged for an extended weekend.<br />
He would go to Chicago to attend a trade show for his business<br />
and then scurry over to Western Illinois. As he drove, his<br />
thoughts turned to his own sexuality and many of the experiences<br />
he had over the years. He was getting a little older, but was<br />
pleased that he had stayed in shape. As he hit the Indiana line a<br />
smile appeared on his face. He was remembering several of his<br />
friends and his children teasing him about how much he resembled<br />
Indiana Jones. It wasn&#8217;t only his appearance; he even acted like<br />
him from time to time. The road continued to disappear under the<br />
hood of his car as his mind turned to many of the hot times he<br />
had experienced.</p>
<p>     His Chicago trip was basically routine. He pulled out of the<br />
Holiday Inn Merchandise Mart and began moving westward. He<br />
snapped in a cassette that responded with soft tunes designed to<br />
invite thought. Invite it they did. Jim&#8217;s mind again returned to<br />
visions of previous hot moments; Peggy&#8217;s unbridled excitement the<br />
first time she thought she was being touched by another man. Of<br />
course this was Jim, but Peggy&#8217;s mind and body reacted as if it<br />
were another man. New hands on her heavy breasts, a strange penis<br />
poised at the lips of her quivering pussy, a sharp, warm tongue<br />
pressed against her tight buttocks were the moments that traveled<br />
through Jim&#8217;s mind. He was becoming so rigid that he thought his<br />
zipper would burst. Then there was the time that Peggy had ac-<br />
tually touched another man for the first time. Jim could see this<br />
as sure as if it were happening here, in the car, before his very<br />
eyes. The miles clicked by on the odometer as visions of hot,<br />
sweet encounters danced through his memory.</p>
<p>     The message and directions that Jim had received from Don<br />
suggested that they meet at the lounge of a local hotel at eight<br />
in the evening. Jim didn&#8217;t have a problem with that. These people<br />
didn&#8217;t know him and would obviously be skeptical. What if Jim<br />
were a gargoyle type with warts on his nose and rolls of fat<br />
hanging from a copious frame? It was only prudent for them to<br />
want to meet Jim in a neutral location so they could excuse them-<br />
selves if they were uncomfortable with him. Jim checked into the<br />
hotel, got settled, cleaned up and headed for the restaurant to<br />
get a bite to eat.</p>
<p>     Dining alone was an interesting experience. You don&#8217;t<br />
usually get bogged down in a conversation that distracts you, so<br />
you can often analyze people a little better. You eat at your<br />
leisure, scan the room for interesting people, and enjoy an un-<br />
common solace. Jim was convinced that his libido was in rare form<br />
as his eyes locked on to a waitress with an usually great-looking<br />
ass. As she moved across the room her buttocks rolled with such<br />
grace that Jim could feel himself stiffen. Her uniform was cut in<br />
such a way that her small but well-shaped breasts danced nicely.<br />
He memorized her curves and her pretty face so that he might use<br />
self hypnosis at a later date to make love with her.</p>
<p>     Dinner being history, Jim lit a cigarette and sipped on his<br />
after-dinner drink. He continued to evaluate the inhabitants of<br />
the room. Now wouldn&#8217;t it be great if that couple sitting at the<br />
table next to the aquarium were Don and Donna. The lady had<br />
beautiful brown hair, sparkling brown eyes, about 5&#8242;5&#8243; tall, with<br />
a very lovely shape. She appeared to be blessed with full breasts<br />
that seemed to be about a 34 C. She had the loveliest smile and<br />
winning manner. They were enjoying their dinner and one another.<br />
Jim was incredulous when he thought about all of the couples that<br />
seemed to be in competition with one another as opposed to being<br />
partners and friends. This couple seemed to be the type that<br />
would not let jealousy get in the way of their friendship. Jim<br />
could see their genuine laughter tickle through the room from<br />
time to time. They looked at one another with respect, and Jim<br />
liked that.</p>
<p>     Jim paid the check and got up from the table. As he began<br />
walking away from the table his foot caught one leg of the chair<br />
next to him and over it went. Nothing like being embarrassed to<br />
tears as the room came to a silent halt. Putting on his red face,<br />
he smiled at the couple next to the aquarium and exited the room.<br />
The lounge, called &#8220;The Hound,&#8221; was an interesting place. It<br />
resembled a victorian scene. There were old British gas lights<br />
throughout the room providing the only lighting. The floor was<br />
made to resemble cobblestones, and there was piped in hansom cab<br />
and other street sounds. He expected Sherlock Holmes and Dr. Wat-<br />
son to come through the door at any minute. He walked over to a<br />
rough hewn table and pulled out one of the heavy wooden chairs to<br />
sit down.</p>
<p>     This decor was wonderful. The walls were graced with two<br />
mounted deer heads and one huge moose head. In another corner was<br />
a suit of armor complete with shield and sword. Old pottery and<br />
pewter tableware accented the room. While glancing around the<br />
room, he was startled by someone standing next to him. He gave a<br />
slight jump in response to Bridgit&#8217;s request to assist him. What<br />
a great looking waitress. She was dressed in the costume of an<br />
english barmaid. He bodice was very low cut and her cleavage<br />
seemed to speak to him. He had difficulty removing his eyes from<br />
her breasts to answer her. When he finally did look up he saw<br />
that Bridgit was also possessed of an absolutely beautiful face<br />
with slightly overlapping front teeth. She smiled and again re-<br />
quested his order handing him what appeared to be a british five<br />
pound note. She also told him that the specials were on the<br />
reverse of what appeared to be english currency. He ordered a<br />
tall rum and coke.</p>
<p>     As Bridgit walked away, Jim&#8217;s eyes were glued to her lovely<br />
buttocks as they swayed playfully toward the bar. He watcher her<br />
as she placed the drink on a tray and returned to his table. As<br />
she bent over to set a napkin in front of him Jim&#8217;s eyes were<br />
again treated to a cock-wrenching view of her ample breasts. Once<br />
again she bent over and placed his drink in front of him. Jim<br />
said, &#8220;Good god almighty, if you continue to serve drinks to me<br />
like that, I&#8217;ll be ordering one every minute.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Bridgit grinned at him and told him that it was early and<br />
that it would be best if he paced himself. &#8220;Only if you promise<br />
that one day before I die you will fall passionately in love with<br />
me and let me drink a small cup of your bath water,&#8221; Jim teased.</p>
<p>     The lovely waitress again chuckled and bounced away from the<br />
table. Jim was enamored by Bridgit to say the least. She made him<br />
want to ask the one about, what&#8217;s a nice girl like you etc. Jim<br />
was thinking that it was rather slow in the lounge as he heard<br />
the sound of what appeared to be Big Ben sounding seven o&#8217;clock.<br />
Just another hour to kill, thought Jim. He wanted to gulp his<br />
drink just so Bridgit would return with another. Ten minutes went<br />
by, and he could feel the lovely waitress sneaking peeks at him<br />
from time to time. He wasn&#8217;t peeking; he was staring, and Bridgit<br />
didn&#8217;t seem to mind.</p>
<p>     She returned to his table and asked if there was anything<br />
that she could do for him. She quickly caught what she had said<br />
and stumbled with the words, &#8220;well you know what I mean.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Unfortunately, young lady, I do. However, I would like<br />
another drink if you wouldn&#8217;t mind,&#8221; Jim responded. She again<br />
smiled and danced off to acquire another rum and coke. She<br />
returned more quickly this time as the bartender wasn&#8217;t very<br />
busy. Once again her lovely globes bounced in front of Jim&#8217;s<br />
eyes. This time he was not quite so obvious in his appreciation.<br />
He thought it would be better to be cool and collected and not<br />
seem too anxious.</p>
<p>     Bridgit stood and talked with him for a while about the ob-<br />
vious interests before she was called away to another table. Jim<br />
had learned that she was twenty-nine years of age. She had a four<br />
year old daughter. She had returned to school in an effort to get<br />
her degree in computer science, and she had only been working<br />
here for about three days. Bridgit had recently broken up with<br />
her boyfriend, but she really didn&#8217;t care to discuss that in any<br />
detail. Jim felt comfortable that she had some interest in him.<br />
He indicated that he was married and filled her in on the other<br />
usual details.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s lovely waitress returned several times and offered him<br />
a smile every time their glance met. At about 7:50 the couple<br />
that was sitting next to the aquarium in the restaurant walked<br />
into the lounge. They glanced at Jim, and his discomfort returned<br />
about almost falling on his ass in front of them. They selected a<br />
table three tables over from Jim and were seated. Bridgit was<br />
soon there to take their orders. Again they demonstrated their<br />
mutual excitement and interest. Things began to perk up a little.<br />
Two other couples entered and were seated. Several single men and<br />
women came in and gravitated to the bar. When the music began to<br />
play the atmosphere was somewhat changed. No longer did Jim feel<br />
as though he were trapped in a time warp. He was a little sad-<br />
dened at the loss of the victorian era.</p>
<p>     Now the hard part came. There were several couples in the<br />
lounge and many singles. How in the hell would Jim be able to<br />
determine who Don and Donna were? His eyes traveled the room,<br />
hoping that someone would offer some signal. One of the new<br />
couples who had entered seemed to be making more than usual eye<br />
contact with Jim. He got up from his chair and went over to their<br />
table. He approached the man and asked if his name was Don. &#8220;No,<br />
I&#8217;m sorry, you got the wrong guy,&#8221; responded the man. Christ, did<br />
he ever feel like an ass hole. Why couldn&#8217;t he have agreed on a<br />
signal that they could use? He excused himself and returned to<br />
his table. No sooner did he get re-seated, the man from res-<br />
taurant aquarium approached him. &#8220;You look as if you could be<br />
Jim,&#8221; he said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You have to think me a real klutz,&#8221; Jim smiled as he rose<br />
to shake Don&#8217;s hand.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Oh, you mean the chair in the dining room. No, don&#8217;t worry<br />
about it. I slipped on my ass getting out of the car to come in<br />
here. There wasn&#8217;t anyone around so I didn&#8217;t feel so bad. Why<br />
don&#8217;t you come over and join us,&#8221; said Don.</p>
<p>     Jim gathered up his glass and followed Don over to his<br />
table. He was very pleasantly surprised that this was the couple<br />
that he would get to know. Donna was even lovelier up close. She<br />
had such a pleasant voice and demure handshake. Jim enjoyed the<br />
way she continued to hold his hand while they were being intro-<br />
duced.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Can you really accomplish all of the wonderful things that<br />
I read about through hypnosis Jim?&#8221; inquired Donna.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I hesitate saying &#8216;yes&#8217; without reservation. You can do<br />
many things and do them quickly if you are a good subject. If you<br />
are not what is referred to as a somnambulist, it may take prac-<br />
tice and the necessary time would be increase,&#8221; offered Jim.</p>
<p>     Don asked, &#8220;how do you determine whether or not someone is a<br />
good subject?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim explained, &#8220;it is often a matter of trial and error.<br />
Some methods work better with one person than another. One thing<br />
is for sure, each of us can experience hypnosis to one degree or<br />
another. Your sexual experiences can always be improved. If you<br />
feel comfortable, after we finish our drinks, we can go to the<br />
room or to your place and experiment. If you become uncomfort-<br />
able, we can stop and return for a leisurely chat.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Don and Donna looked at one another, smiled and agreed to<br />
give it a shot. They indicated that they would feel more comfort-<br />
able if they were to go to Jim&#8217;s room. He assured them that it<br />
was fine with him, that he would pay his tab and see them in room<br />
338 as soon as they were ready.</p>
<p>     Jim walked up to Bridgit, tapped her on the shoulder and<br />
asked for his bill. She seemed a little disappointed that he was<br />
leaving. He told her that he had a meeting and may be able to<br />
return later. She didn&#8217;t respond; she merely smiled. Jim turned<br />
to walk away when he heard her say, &#8220;I hope you can make it back.<br />
We&#8217;re open till 2:30.&#8221; Jim smiled and exited the lounge.</p>
<p>     As he walked toward the room, he felt a shiver of excitement<br />
run through him. He hoped that both of the subjects would be deep<br />
trance subjects. He would interview them about what they hope to<br />
accomplish when they got to the room.</p>
<p>     It didn&#8217;t take long for Jim to hear a knock at the door. He<br />
quickly opened the door and was faced with a couple that had a<br />
look on their face as if they were at the door of a house party.<br />
Jim immediately asked them for their coats and secured them.<br />
&#8220;Come in and make yourselves comfortable. I&#8217;m sorry I can&#8217;t offer<br />
you anything to drink right now. After we talk for a little while<br />
we can have a cocktail or some wine.</p>
<p>     The interview proved interesting and gave him a good idea of<br />
what the couple hoped to accomplish. Donna indicated that she was<br />
very nervous, but added that she was raised to believe that it<br />
was sinful to wander from one&#8217;s intended or chosen partner. Don<br />
was surprised to hear her say that she had had thoughts about<br />
other men just as any other woman would. She indicated that she<br />
would likely not want fear or jealousy to threaten her relation-<br />
ship.</p>
<p>     Jim was able to determine that her orgasms were generally<br />
standard, and she was in good physical and psychological health.<br />
She thought that it would be great to be able to fantasize about<br />
making love in another, more adventurous time. She wanted to be a<br />
girl on the Spanish Gold Coast who had been kidnaped by pirates<br />
aboard a frigate and rescued by a dashing swashbuckler who looked<br />
very much like Richard Gear. She thought that he was one of the<br />
most sexy men she had ever seen.</p>
<p>     Don was then interviewed, and Jim was satisfied that he too<br />
was sound and had normal fantasies. All of this excited Jim. He<br />
was happy that he had established a rapport with this lovely<br />
couple. Jim then said, &#8220;let&#8217;s now get down to business. Donna, I<br />
am first going to show you how to relax so you can enjoy the<br />
experience.&#8221; He moved a chair away from the table and placed it<br />
facing a blind corner of the room. Donna was instructed to sit in<br />
the chair and focus on a point on the wall. Jim began speaking to<br />
Donna and showed her how to relax more completely. Soon it was<br />
apparent to Jim that Donna would be a good subject. He put her<br />
into a light trance and continued to speak to her. Deeper and<br />
deeper she went. Soon she was very deeply asleep.</p>
<p>     Jim instructed her to remain in a deep trance and not to<br />
awaken until she was told to wake up. Don was simply amazed as he<br />
asked, &#8220;do you mean to tell me that she is completed hypnotized?&#8221;<br />
Jim assured him that she was. He went on to explain that he would<br />
do a few experiments to better illustrate what was happening. Jim<br />
turned to Donna and gave her a post-hypnotic suggestion that when<br />
she heard the words &#8220;the rain in Spain falls mainly in the<br />
plane,&#8221; she would find herself on a desert island all alone. She<br />
would be on the beach. She could hear the gulls and the waves<br />
rolling against the shore. She would have the desire to take her<br />
clothing off and bask in the warm rays of the sun. She would be<br />
completely alone and could then do anything that she wanted.</p>
<p>     The suggestions was also give that from now on, when Jim<br />
snapped his fingers twice, she would fall into a very deep hyp-<br />
notic trance. He also gave her the ability to create any dream<br />
that she wanted to. All she had to do was to envision the person<br />
she wanted to be with, where she wanted to be and what she wanted<br />
to be doing; she would then say the word &#8220;Alpha&#8221; to herself,<br />
close her eyes, and she would fall into a deep sleep for ten<br />
minutes and have the dream she fashioned.</p>
<p>     At this point Donna was woken up slowly and told that she<br />
would remember nothing of the experience. She was also told that<br />
she would feel very refreshed and rested, as well as very sexy.<br />
&#8220;Now wake up feeling wonderful,&#8221; Jim urged.</p>
<p>     Donna told Jim and Don that she felt good but really didn&#8217;t<br />
think that it had worked. Jim had a self assured smile on his<br />
face and indicated to the couple that this was often the case but<br />
she really was very deeply asleep. She disagreed with Jim, but<br />
did indicate that she was grateful for being taught how to so<br />
deeply relax. She hadn&#8217;t felt this good in a long time. Jim asked<br />
her if she would like a demonstration of post-hypnotic suggest-<br />
ion. She indicated that it would interest her. &#8220;The rain in Spain<br />
falls mainly in the plane,&#8221; were Jim&#8217;s next words.</p>
<p>     Donna got up from the chair as her eyes seemed to be focused<br />
on something far away. She kicked off her shoes as her fingers<br />
started to unbutton her blouse. Don couldn&#8217;t believe his eyes.<br />
Donna was normally very modest about such things. Her thumbs<br />
hooked themselves inside of her slacks and down they came. She<br />
curled her arms up behind her back and unfasten her bra. There<br />
was a look of embarrassment and excitement on both men&#8217;s faces.<br />
Don opened his mouth to speak not knowing whether he should do<br />
so. Jim looked at Don and said, &#8220;feel free to talk if you want<br />
to. She can&#8217;t hear or see you.&#8221;</p>
<p>     As her bra fell to the ground, she slipped her panties off<br />
and discarded them also. There she was in all of her lovely nude<br />
splendor. Her bold breasts spreading across her chest as she<br />
stretched feeling the warmth of the sun lick her body. Her but-<br />
tocks were flexed tight as she stood on her tip toes trying to<br />
get closer to the sun. She let out an appreciative moan as she<br />
lowered herself to the bed. Jim and Don watched as she lay there<br />
soaking up the sun. She soon turned over to offer her backside to<br />
the warmth. Jim&#8217;s cock was hard now. Not only was he very excited<br />
sexually with this vision, he was excited that he was able to<br />
share this wonder with Donna and Don.</p>
<p>     Jim explained much of what was happening to Don. Soon Donna<br />
rolled over and began to squirm. Her hands went to her breasts<br />
and the thumb and forefinger of each hand were rolling her<br />
nipples gently. She squeezed her thighs together and began moan-<br />
ing. Don was very excited as he told Jim that he had never seen<br />
Donna touch herself. He was amazed at how erotic it was. Donna&#8217;s<br />
left hand suddenly dropped to her soft public hair and her legs<br />
opened slightly. She was searching in the folds of her pussy. Her<br />
fingers were now wet with excitement.</p>
<p>     She gently ran her slippery fingers over the lips of her<br />
swollen pussy. Don was convinced that this was likely the hottest<br />
he had ever been. He wanted to rip his clothes off and fuck her<br />
like he had never fucked her before. Jim calmed him down and ad-<br />
vised him that there would be time for that later. The experiment<br />
should continue. Don agreed, but could not take his hand off of<br />
his rock-hard cock.</p>
<p>     Jim walked over to the bed and snapped his fingers twice. As<br />
soon as he did, Donna returned to her deep sleep. Jim instructed<br />
her that he would wake her soon. When she woke up, she would<br />
remember everything that occurred. She would remember it without<br />
embarrassment and feel very pleased with herself. Additionally<br />
when she heard the word &#8220;Beta&#8221; she would feel a mini climax and a<br />
tingling in her nipples. She was instructed to place herself un-<br />
der the sheets and wake up slowly.</p>
<p>     Soon Donna was awake. She simply starred at both men. &#8220;I<br />
can&#8217;t believe it. It was one of the nicest dreams I ever had. It<br />
was so sexy. I didn&#8217;t know I could get that turned on. Holly<br />
christ! My clothes are off. What happened to my clothes?&#8221; Donna<br />
asked.</p>
<p>     Don responded to her first, &#8220;you took them off when you were<br />
on the beach honey. It wasn&#8217;t just a dream. It really happened.<br />
We saw everything. Do you feel OK?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Yes I feel great, but I can hardly believe that I took my<br />
clothes off in front of Jim. I don&#8217;t even &#8230;.&#8221; Donna began.</p>
<p>     &#8220;&#8230;Know me?&#8221; asked Jim. &#8220;No you don&#8217;t, but apparently you<br />
felt comfortable enough with me to do just that. You can now do<br />
other wonderful things. Do you remember the post-hypnotic sug-<br />
gestion that I gave you about creating your own dreams?&#8221;</p>
<p>     She indicated that she did, and Jim urged her to try it now.<br />
Donna thought for a minute and said the word &#8220;Alpha&#8221; out loud.<br />
She soon fell into a deep sleep. Don and Jim watched what ap-<br />
peared to be a fitful sleep, but the looks on Donna&#8217;s face were<br />
those of ecstasy and lust. They watched slight movements of her<br />
body as if she were having a wonderful sexy dream. In exactly ten<br />
minutes she woke up and sat bolt upright in the bed. She clutched<br />
the bed sheet to her breasts, but walked on her knees over to the<br />
two men. Both men had large smiles on their faces. She reached up<br />
and kissed Don. &#8220;It was absolutely wonderful honey,&#8221; were her<br />
words.</p>
<p>     She offered her lips to Jim who hungrily accepted them. She<br />
have him a big kiss and said, &#8220;I don&#8217;t know how to thank you Jim.<br />
These feelings are probably the best I&#8217;ve ever had. I am still so<br />
hot I don&#8217;t know what to do with myself.&#8221; Jim&#8217;s cock hardened<br />
even more as Donna pressed her sheet-covered breasts against him.<br />
As she hugged him, he was offered the greatest view of her but-<br />
tocks over her shoulder.</p>
<p>     Jim, trying to keep his wits about him said, &#8220;and the nice<br />
thing about it is that you can do this anytime you want. I want<br />
to show you something else Donna. &#8216;Beta!&#8217;&#8221; Donna sank back onto<br />
the bed and let the sheet fall from her body. Her eyes rolled<br />
slightly as the small climax began to diminish. &#8220;Anytime you want<br />
to get to small nut, just say the word &#8216;Beta,&#8217;&#8221; Jim assured her.<br />
&#8220;Now I&#8217;m going to ask you both to come back tomorrow night if you<br />
would like. I want to work with Don and teach you both how to do<br />
some other amazing things.&#8221; Donna got dressed, and she and Don<br />
thanked Jim as they left the room.</p>
<p>     The clock at the side of the bed read 11:37. Jim didn&#8217;t<br />
really feel tired, and he wanted to see Bridgit again, so he<br />
freshened up and headed for the lounge. The lovely waitress<br />
seemed awfully happy to see him return. She came quickly over to<br />
his table and asked him if he needed anything. This time he told<br />
her, &#8220;you&#8217;ll never know, but I&#8217;ll settle for another drink.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Bridgit said, &#8220;I&#8217;ll get you the drink, but I would like to<br />
know.&#8221; She pranced away with what appeared to be an extra effort<br />
at swinging her fanny. It didn&#8217;t go unnoticed by Jim. He was so<br />
aroused after having seen the experience that Donna just had that<br />
he badly wanted to make love with Bridgit. He could think of<br />
little else.</p>
<p>     Soon she returned with his drink. This time when she placed<br />
it in front of him she intentionally lingered to expose her large<br />
breasts to his gaze. He took full advantage of it and said,<br />
&#8220;please tell me that you have fallen passionately in love with me<br />
and can&#8217;t live without me.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t know that that is the case, but I would like to<br />
spend some time getting to know you better. It&#8217;s a little slow<br />
right now. Would you like me to see if I can get off a little<br />
early,&#8221; she asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I would love that,&#8221; Jim hastened. He was wondering whether<br />
or should just be straight forward and ask her to his room, or if<br />
he should offer to take her someplace for a drink or coffee.</p>
<p>     He didn&#8217;t have to wonder long. She returned to say that she<br />
could leave in fifteen minutes. &#8220;Would you like to just go up to<br />
your room and we could have something sent up?&#8221; she inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;That would be great. What if I go up and get the drinks or-<br />
dered so we won&#8217;t have a wait? What do you like to drink?&#8221; Jim<br />
asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Scotch and water is fine. No, make is white wine. See you<br />
soon. I got the room number from the restaurant. OK, so I was a<br />
little curious,&#8221; she said with a smile.</p>
<p>     Jim hurried to the room and placed the order for room serv-<br />
ice. He also ordered a sea food snack tray. The time wouldn&#8217;t<br />
pass quickly enough. In a short time there was a knock at the<br />
door. He jumped to answer it. It was room service. He admitted<br />
the server, signed the check and quickly offered the tip. No<br />
sooner did he get the tray over to the table, he heard another<br />
knock at the door. His blood began to run more quickly. It was<br />
Bridgit. She was dressed in a lovely pastel sweater that provided<br />
sufficient accent to her lovely breasts and dark slacks that<br />
gratefully hugged her rounded buttocks. &#8220;Please make yourself<br />
comfortable,&#8221; Jim offered.</p>
<p>     She sat at the table and told Jim that he shouldn&#8217;t have<br />
gone to all this trouble. He assured her it was no trouble and<br />
joined her. They enjoyed some interesting small talk as they com-<br />
pleted the snacks. Bridgit asked Jim if he would mind if she<br />
freshened up a bit. Jim told her that his place was her place.<br />
She gave him a little kiss and moved toward the bath room. Jim<br />
was anxious to hold her in his arms. Soon he heard the water run-<br />
ning in the bath tub. He hadn&#8217;t thought that she was this serious<br />
about freshening up. Apparently she was. Well, he could wait. He<br />
poured himself another glass of wine and settled down for the<br />
wait. Soon Bridgit called his name. He approached the door and<br />
asked if she needed anything. She asked him if he would object to<br />
washing her back. The smile spread across his face as he entered<br />
the bath room.</p>
<p>     She twisted to hang up the last remnant of her clothing and<br />
Jim was treated to a view of her exciting buttocks. Naked, they<br />
were even more exciting with the deep groove separating them.</p>
<p>     She turned to him and came toward him, and he watched<br />
shocked  and fascinated as the twin breasts swayed from side to<br />
side, making the nipples dance. With a cute smile she stepped<br />
into the tub, bringing her hot sweet flesh within inches of his<br />
throbbing cock.</p>
<p>     He couldn&#8217;t take his eyes off of her as she slid into the<br />
water and urged him to join her. His clothes fell like rain.<br />
Somehow they managed to twist their limbs so that they both fit<br />
well into the tub, her legs resting neatly on his and curled<br />
around his hips. She handed him the soap and asked him to wash<br />
her. His initial attempt was on her back, but soon the temptation<br />
proved too much for him and he concentrated on her bountiful<br />
breasts, covering them in lather.</p>
<p>     She giggled as his hands massaged the firm flesh and tweaked<br />
the hard nipples. He had an overwhelming urge to suck her begging<br />
nipples, but decided that the lather would likely not be to his<br />
liking. He confined himself to running his hands over her<br />
breasts, tweaking her nipples with his thumbs, making her shudder<br />
with excitement. Her red lips were parted and she was breathing<br />
heavily while her sensuous eyes were hooded, making her look like<br />
a feline predator waiting to spring on its prey.</p>
<p>     Jim knelt up and washed her flat stomach, taking his time,<br />
tantalizing himself until he could hold back no longer. He<br />
reached down into the forest that obscured the new object of his<br />
desire. He soaped the thick fur and then, using the soap he<br />
pushed the hair aside to reveal her rosy slit. He parted the<br />
puffy lips gently and eased a finger inside her volcanic hole.</p>
<p>     Bridgit moaned out loud and laced an arm around his neck and<br />
brought his face towards hers in a deep hungry kiss. Her tongue<br />
forced itself between his lips and into his mouth. It was fran-<br />
tic, agile and quick as it searched for Jim&#8217;s tongue. He was<br />
still sliding his finger in and out of her hot cunt while his<br />
thumb rubbed her growing clit. His other hand was still squeezing<br />
her breasts and nipples. Their embrace became more and more pas-<br />
sionate and his cock was jerking around like a taunt fire hose.</p>
<p>     Finally they broke apart, both of them flushed with erotic<br />
desire. Bridgit stood up and stepped out of the tub grabbing a<br />
towel and began to dry herself off. She pulled Jim to his feet<br />
and wiped him dry. He couldn&#8217;t remember the last time someone<br />
dried him. I reminded him of his childhood, but there was nothing<br />
child-like about the raging erection which she also paid atten-<br />
tion to.</p>
<p>     She dropped the towel to the floor as their warm, moist<br />
bodies met in a new embrace, and they kissed deeply once again.<br />
His stiff bone was pressed up against her hard belly as Jim<br />
noticed the bed which seemed to beckon to him. When they got to<br />
the bed, she again took the initiative. She pushed him back on<br />
the bed. He felt awkward as his legs dangled off the end of the<br />
bed. Her hands had found Jim&#8217;s erect pole and were gently strok-<br />
ing it up and down. Bridgit held the hard cock upright as her<br />
lips lowered to meet it. He felt her lips close around it.</p>
<p>     His cock was getting wetter and wetter as she left a trail<br />
of warm saliva with each plunge, and his organ was jerking power-<br />
fully in the sheath of her lips. He could hear the erotic slurp-<br />
ing noises as she eagerly and expertly swallowed his pulsating<br />
ramrod to the back of her throat. Jim&#8217;s hips were responding to<br />
her rhythm by lifting to meet her attack, penetrating her more<br />
deeply. Deeper and harder she sucked. Jim knew that he would not<br />
be able to withstand much more without loosing control. Jim<br />
stopped her with a groan of passion. &#8220;Wait, wait Bridgit. I don&#8217;t<br />
want it to end yet,&#8221; Jim pleaded.</p>
<p>     Jim began kissing her body. He sucked on her nipples as her<br />
moans came in harmony with his efforts. He reluctantly let a<br />
nipples escape as his lips traveled down her body, kissing and<br />
licking every inch of her flesh as he slowly slid down to his<br />
target area. He could feel her hands trying to hurry his journey,<br />
but he resisted and took his time, savoring the texture and taste<br />
of her flesh. Soon he reached the forest of public hair from<br />
which rose an intoxicating aroma of pussy juices. Her legs parted<br />
and he could see the pink, puffy lips nestled in the patch of<br />
hair, glistening with arousal.</p>
<p>     His tongue plunged into the hot lava of her love volcano. He<br />
knew that she would not release her grip on him until he sucked,<br />
licked and lapped her hot cunt to explosion. With his hands<br />
firmly holding her wiggling buttocks, he furiously drove his hard<br />
tongue into her body massaging the walls of her cunt, darting<br />
from side to side and gathering up the love juices. Soon<br />
Bridgit&#8217;s cunt exploded and poured its cream inside Jim&#8217;s waiting<br />
mouth. He drank her womanly nectar as if he would never have the<br />
chance to do this again. She screamed as her climax broke and<br />
seemed to swallow her up.</p>
<p>     Jim didn&#8217;t want her to loose all of the excitement of her<br />
climax as he swiftly mounted her, and using his fist aimed the<br />
head of his eight inch rod into her very slippery pussy, parting<br />
the puffy lips and scouring through the hot liquids until his<br />
cock was fully embedded in her. He eased his hands under her<br />
ample ass cheeks and grasped the resilient flesh, pulling her up-<br />
ward as he shoved his cock yet deeper into her tunnel. Her body<br />
immediately responded and the embers of her previous climax<br />
flared into life. She started to meet every thrust with an upward<br />
heave of her hips.</p>
<p>     It was Bridgit&#8217;s body that first broke the stride. Suddenly,<br />
her hips froze the rhythm and then started to jerk up and down<br />
very fast, thrusting her cunt more fiercely over Jim&#8217;s huge or-<br />
gan. Her greasy pussy was endeavoring to swallow his cock whole<br />
and keep it in the greedy clutch of her vaginal muscles. She<br />
screamed in jolts. The fierce clutch of her wet cunt on his cock<br />
was too much for him to take. His back stiffened and arched while<br />
his cock attempted to find new depths. Very soon his cock pole<br />
began to erupt furiously into Bridgit&#8217;s tight, hairy cunt hole.<br />
They slipped into sleep almost immediately afterward.</p>
<p>     The next morning when Jim awoke, Bridgit was gone. He found<br />
a note on hotel stationary wherein she excused herself and told<br />
him that she hoped to see him again soon. Jim read the note as he<br />
tried to blink away his sleep. He rolled around the bed remember-<br />
ing the wonderful evening. After a time of lovely thought, he got<br />
up and took a shower. He dressed and went down to the dining room<br />
to have some breakfast. When he returned, the red message light<br />
was flashing on his phone. He called down to the desk to find<br />
that there was a message for him to call Don.</p>
<p>     After speaking with Don, it was decided that they would<br />
again meet this afternoon at about two o&#8217;clock. Jim had brought<br />
his lap top computer with him and was able to get a little writ-<br />
ing in. He also wiled away part some of the day shopping and<br />
reading. He was anxious to meet with Don and Donna to see what<br />
other successes they could achieve.</p>
<p>     Two o&#8217;clock soon arrived and shortly thereafter there came a<br />
knock at the door. Jim went to the door and opened it with a<br />
smile. Donna&#8217;s brown eyes were staring into his own, and Don was<br />
standing just behind her.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Please do come in,&#8221; Jim said as he stepped aside. &#8220;Did you<br />
have a good evening last night?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Don hastened to respond, &#8220;I don&#8217;t think we ever had such an<br />
exciting day in our lives. When we got home we continued to talk<br />
about the experience and conducted several experiments ourselves.<br />
Donna was able to have several dreams. I merely watched, and it<br />
was a very hot time. I was also able to use the post-hypnotic<br />
suggestion &#8220;Beta&#8221; to give her multiple minor orgasms. It served<br />
as a remarkable addition to our regular foreplay,&#8221; said Don.<br />
Donna seemed a little embarrassed by the descriptive narrative.</p>
<p>     Jim explained that it was now Don&#8217;s turn to experience the<br />
trance state. Don was asked to take a seat, and they got im-<br />
mediately under way. Jim helped Don relax through a method that<br />
requires the subject to flex and relax various parts of his body.<br />
Soon Don was completely relaxed, and Jim began speaking softly<br />
and clearly. After a short while Don was in the trance state. Jim<br />
continued to work with him and deepen the trance.</p>
<p>     In the minutes that passed, Jim taught Don how to use auto-<br />
hypnosis to hallucinate visually. He was able to change the<br />
sight, sound, taste and feel of his partner. His post-hypnotic<br />
suggestion was precipitated by the words &#8220;hypnosex partner.&#8221; When<br />
he said or heard the words &#8220;come back&#8221; all of his senses would<br />
return to normal. He was also given the suggestion that whenever<br />
he heard the words &#8220;rock-hard cock,&#8221; he would get an immediate<br />
erection. He was also told that when he said or hear the words,<br />
&#8220;relax it,&#8221; his erection would subside. Jim woke him up slowly,<br />
assuring him that he would feel wonderful and well rested.</p>
<p>     As Don opened his eyes his head dropped to his hands. When<br />
asked how he felt, he answered that he felt great and wanted to<br />
know how he did. He was told that he did very well and was now<br />
capable of doing some remarkable things. &#8220;Go ahead and try it<br />
out,&#8221; said Donna.</p>
<p>     Don repeated, &#8220;hypnosex partner,&#8221; and stared at Donna in<br />
shear surprise. He got up and walked over to her, putting his<br />
hands around her waist. His lips sought hers as his right hand<br />
dropped to the cleft of her buttocks. They were beginning to get<br />
carried away when Jim spoke the words, &#8220;come back.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Don was shocked at who he found in his arms. &#8220;I almost feel<br />
guilty Donna. You were someone else. I was kissing someone else<br />
and feeling her ass,&#8221; Don said in wonder.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Was it exciting?&#8221; Donna asked. Don assured her that it was<br />
and told Jim that it was unbelievable.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Rock-hard cock,&#8221; were the next words out of Jim&#8217;s mouth.<br />
Immediately the front of Don&#8217;s pants developed a huge bulge. Don<br />
was again amazed. He couldn&#8217;t believe that his penis could be<br />
this hard on demand. He wanted to know how this was possible.</p>
<p>     Jim went on to draw an analogy for them. He inquired as to<br />
whether or not Don ever woke up in the morning, not necessarily<br />
horny, with a huge stiff. Don told him that he had. Jim continued<br />
to explain that an erection was merely blood rushing into the<br />
penis. There is a part in the brain that directs blood to the<br />
penis upon arousal. The mind controls so many of our functions.<br />
It is a simple matter to control this when all conditions are<br />
right. He also explained that often men question themselves about<br />
impotence because even when they want to get an erection, they<br />
sometimes can&#8217;t. They begin to question themselves. If you ever<br />
get an erection upon waking up in the morning, your mind was<br />
likely relaxed and thinking about sex. We all have mental images<br />
that can make us aroused. Sometimes we don&#8217;t know exactly what<br />
they are. Don&#8217;s cock remained hard as Jim explained. The words<br />
&#8220;relax it,&#8221; were then spoken, and Don&#8217;s erection began to go<br />
down.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Now, let&#8217;s work with Donna some more. OK with you Donna?&#8221;<br />
Jim asked. She responded in the affirmative and was asked to take<br />
a seat. She sat in the chair and was questioned about whether<br />
there was anything specific she wanted to learn how to do. She<br />
indicated to Jim that she was very impressed with what Don had<br />
been able to do, and she would like to be able to bring on hal-<br />
lucinations as well. Jim snapped his finger twice, and Donna&#8217;s<br />
chin fell slowly to her chest in complete relaxation.</p>
<p>     He took her deeper and deeper into a wonderful sleep as he<br />
felt Don tap him on the shoulder. &#8220;Can she hear us?&#8221; Don asked.<br />
Jim indicated that she could hear unless directed not to. Don<br />
continued, &#8220;ask her not to hear our conversation so I can tell<br />
you something.&#8221; Jim did this and urged Don to continue. Don said,<br />
&#8220;you know Jim, Donna and I spoke about quite a few things last<br />
night when we got home. At my urging, she told me that she would<br />
like to make it with another man but was afraid. She specifically<br />
said that she thought you were very sexy. Is there anything we<br />
could do to remove her anxiety about trying another man? I know I<br />
am ready to ignore jealousy. I trust her, but I want her to have<br />
it all. Do you find her desirable?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim assured him that, &#8220;she was indeed a very sexy woman. I<br />
think we can trade places in her mind, if you think she would<br />
like it.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Don agreed. Jim spoke to Donna again, &#8220;you are now more<br />
deeply asleep than you have ever been before. When you awaken,<br />
Don will become Jim and Jim will be Don in every way. Jim will<br />
look like Don, sound like him, feel like him and taste like him.<br />
You will find yourself uncontrollably attracted to him and will<br />
need to feel him inside you. You will feel free to do anything<br />
with him that pleases you without regard for who else is in the<br />
room. In fact, because someone is watching you, you will become<br />
even more excited. When you hear me clap my hands twice, Jim and<br />
Don will again trade places and be themselves. you will remember<br />
nothing until I clap my hands twice.&#8221; Jim also gave her the sug-<br />
gestion that she will be able to change Don any time she wished,<br />
just as Don had learned. Jim told her that she would wake up very<br />
slowly, feeling wonderful and refreshed.</p>
<p>     Donna began to open her eyes slowly. &#8220;I really can&#8217;t remem-<br />
ber anything. Did it go well?&#8221; she asked and looked at Don. Don<br />
told her that everything went very well. She got up from the<br />
chair and moved toward Jim. &#8220;Honey, I don&#8217;t really know why, but<br />
I have this uncontrollable urge to screw you eyes out. And oddly<br />
enough, I don&#8217;t even care if Jim watches. What did you do to me<br />
Jim?&#8221; she asked of Don with an unusual sparkle in her brown eyes.<br />
Jim opened his arms as Donna fell into them with her mouth par-<br />
tially open.</p>
<p>     Don sunk into a chair next to the table with a curious look<br />
on his face. Jim looked over at him and Don nodded his head,<br />
giving authority to proceed. Jim could see Don&#8217;s hand fall upon<br />
his already hard cock as his hands began to explore Donna&#8217;s full<br />
breasts. Donna stepped back and removed her top in one quick mo-<br />
tion. She tore at the buttons to Jim&#8217;s shirt. Soon they were all<br />
but naked. Only her panties remained as she returned to Jim&#8217;s<br />
embrace, rubbing her pubic mound against his leg. Don settled<br />
back and unzipped his trousers. His thick cock was withdrawn, and<br />
he stroked its length as his eyes watched every move of Donna and<br />
her lover. Jim reached his hand inside of Donna&#8217;s pink panties<br />
onto the swell of her buttocks. Squeezing the wonderfully tex-<br />
tured flesh of her fanny gave Jim all the more reason to become<br />
harder. Donna dipped in to his shorts, and her hand felt his cock<br />
length increase.</p>
<p>     The aroma of this lovely woman rose to meet Jim&#8217;s nostrils.<br />
She felt the cream beginning to seep from the eye of his steel-<br />
like hammer. Panties and shorts were removed in speedy unison as<br />
they fell to the bed. Don was now stroking his huge cock more<br />
quickly. His balls were being tortured by his zipper. He stood up<br />
and removed his pants and shorts, continuing to beat his meat.<br />
Each time he stroked his cock, he saw something else that drove<br />
him crazy. Jim&#8217;s hands were filled with breast flesh. He lowered<br />
his head to suck on the pert nipples and tweaked them softly with<br />
his teeth.</p>
<p>     Donna&#8217;s groans were now music to Don&#8217;s ears. Another man had<br />
his fingers in her pussy. Jim would pull the slick covered<br />
fingers from her gushing hole and rub the button of her ass hole.<br />
Moving slowly down from her nipples, Jim began kissing the swell<br />
of her belly, biting her lightly on the hip bones. This made her<br />
jump half way off the bed. She grabbed Jim&#8217;s head and tried to<br />
push him into her hair-covered cunt. He resisted and continued<br />
his efforts slowly. His tongue traveled all around her love box,<br />
teasing the soft hairs and licking her thighs. Closer and closer<br />
his lips came to her love button. In a quick motion, Donna moved<br />
toward Jim&#8217;s raging penis. Her lovely lips opened and she slid<br />
the length of Jim&#8217;s cock into her mouth, sucking hard. Up and<br />
down this immense shaft her mouth moved. Don could see the trail<br />
of his wife&#8217;s saliva on this man&#8217;s thick bone.</p>
<p>     Jim mouth suddenly opened and covered Donna&#8217;s swollen cunt<br />
lips. His tongue drove deeply into her hole as he tasted her cunt<br />
honey. He sucked on her clit, bringing it into full hardness. It<br />
was like a small spear between his hungry lips. Don&#8217;s eyes were<br />
glued to them as he saw breasts moving like jello and buttocks<br />
rippling in rhythm with their oral movements. Suddenly, Donna<br />
stiffened, pulled Jim&#8217;s cock from her mouth momentarily, slammed<br />
it deep inside her throat and climaxed in Jim&#8217;s mouth. She poured<br />
her love juices into Jim&#8217;s sucking mouth as her hips gyrated<br />
quickly against his cream-covered face. It seemed like it would<br />
last forever. Finally, her buttocks began to slow down. Her<br />
screams were muffled by the enormous bone in her throat. They too<br />
subsided. Jim was still very stiff as Donna removed him from her<br />
mouth. &#8220;Would you mind if we took a small break so I can have<br />
something to drink honey?&#8221; she asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Not at all Donna,&#8221; Jim responded as he looked at Don and<br />
rolled his eyes. Donna looked over at Don with surprise as she<br />
saw his erect penis in his hands.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Ya know Jim, I don&#8217;t really blame you. I guess we did get<br />
out of hand a little. It seems that Don and I have really turned<br />
you on from the looks of it. Now that is a thing to be proud of,&#8221;<br />
she said with a smile, about his cock, reaching for a water<br />
glass. Don felt a little self-conscious as he let his cock fall<br />
from his hands. Jim and Don both watched the sway of Donna&#8217;s but-<br />
tocks and breasts as she walked slowly across the room with her<br />
water. Her entire body was a deep pink with exertion. She<br />
returned to Jim on the bed and offered him a sip. He took it<br />
gratefully.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Don, it seems like forever since I&#8217;ve seen another man&#8217;s<br />
penis, and Jim&#8217;s is great looking, don&#8217;t you think?&#8221; Donna said.</p>
<p>     Jim responded, &#8220;well, I really don&#8217;t get into dicks with the<br />
possible exception of my own, but I&#8217;m glad you like it.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;You&#8217;re not jealous honey?&#8221; Donna asked of Jim as she<br />
settled back into his arms. Her breasts flowed into the hollow of<br />
Jim&#8217;s chest as she offered Don a view of her pink buttocks, her<br />
eyes searching for Don&#8217;s cock.</p>
<p>     Jim said, &#8220;no Donna, I&#8217;m not jealous. In fact it would ex-<br />
cite me if you touched his cock. Jim said as he grinned over her<br />
head at Don. Don returned the grin and moved toward the bed.<br />
Donna rested the glass on the night stand as Don approached.<br />
Don&#8217;s half-hard penis came within close proximity to her face.<br />
She began to reach up to touch it and stopped to look at Jim. He<br />
nodded his support, and she again reached for Don&#8217;s cock. It took<br />
very little for Don&#8217;s cock to rise again. She stared up at Don in<br />
a sheepish manner and began to stroke it. Jim&#8217;s hand cupped one<br />
of her ample breasts as Don stepped closer. Don reached out and<br />
ran his fingers through her hair slowly, urging her lips nearer<br />
his now huge rod. Donna could see the fluid at the tip of Don&#8217;s<br />
cock. She turned her ass to Jim and took the first few inches of<br />
Don&#8217;s thick bone in her mouth. Donna took more and more of Don&#8217;s<br />
penis into her mouth as Don saw Jim begin to manipulate Donna&#8217;s<br />
hairy pussy. Jim then got on his knees and brought Donna to hers.<br />
Donna moved without loosing her grip on Don&#8217;s penis. She reached<br />
around and grabbed Don&#8217;s buttocks and pulled him deeper into her<br />
mouth.</p>
<p>     Jim moved behind Donna running his hands over her rounded<br />
ass cheeks. His hand dipped down into the crack of her ass and<br />
collected some of her juices. He raised his hand to his nostrils<br />
to savor the aroma of her womanhood. He stroked his bone into<br />
full erection as he placed saliva in his hand and applied it be-<br />
tween her bush to Donna&#8217;s cunt lips. Aiming the arrow of his<br />
shaft at her gaping love tunnel, Jim eased his huge cock into<br />
Don&#8217;s wife. He slowly worked his penis into her body until her<br />
could see the button of Donna&#8217;s ass hole press against his hairy<br />
belly. He started to move in and out of her hole.</p>
<p>     Faster and faster his slick bone drove home. His balls were<br />
bouncing off of Donna&#8217;s clit increasing her excitement. Jim could<br />
take no more as his eyes riveted on his juice-covered cock split-<br />
ting her cunt hairs as it drove into this musky tunnel. Her<br />
beautiful ass cheeks were in his hands wobbling wonderfully. It<br />
was too exciting. He began to grunt. As she felt him stiffen in-<br />
side of her squeezing sheath, she mashed her buttocks into his<br />
thighs to gain deeper penetration.</p>
<p>     Don was now driving his tool with increased fervor inside of<br />
his wife&#8217;s sucking mouth. With the beauty of this rare moment,<br />
Donna felt both lovers go off at once. Gobs of thick cream were<br />
pouring into her slippery cunt hole. Don&#8217;s jism squirted hotly<br />
into her sucking mouth. Her mind was spinning as she experienced<br />
one of the most earth-shaking climaxes in her memory. She col-<br />
lapsed beneath both men. All three participants remained motion-<br />
less for quite some time. It was Jim that first got up from the<br />
bed and went into the bath room. He washed up and returned to the<br />
room with his trousers on. He poured himself a drink and took a<br />
seat at the table. Don said, &#8220;is there any more of that? I think<br />
I need a drink too.&#8221; Jim poured Don a drink and delivered it to<br />
bed side. Donna had the most wonderful smile on her face.</p>
<p>     She soon got up and moved toward the bath room. Jim thought<br />
how sexy this woman was. He asked Don after Donna was out of ear<br />
shot, &#8220;Do you feel OK about this Don?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;ll tell you the truth, I do have some guilt feelings<br />
about it. I think they will go away without too much problem. I<br />
am concerned about Donna. How do you think she will fair?&#8221; asked<br />
Don.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Well, there&#8217;s only one way to find out. We still have to<br />
change back remember?&#8221; stated Jim as Donna returned to the room.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Change back to what?&#8221; Donna quizzed while returning to &#8220;Jim<br />
on the bed.</p>
<p>     Jim responded first, &#8220;Donna, how do you feel about every-<br />
thing that has happened?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I feel great. I have never felt so sexy. I have never had<br />
such a good climax. I don&#8217;t really think I feel guilty, and now I<br />
am sure that I wouldn&#8217;t be jealous if you made love to another<br />
woman either Don,&#8221; Donna said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I am not Don,&#8221; Jim stated as he clapped his hands twice.<br />
Donna had a look on her face as if she didn&#8217;t know where she was.<br />
Her head turned from one to the other and back again.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Holy christ! Holyyyyyyy chrissssst! You two switched<br />
places. Don do you mean that I was making love to Jim before you<br />
agreed to let me touch his cock?&#8221; Donna asked incredulously.</p>
<p>     &#8220;That&#8217;s it honey. You wanted to. You said that you wanted<br />
to. I wanted you to. I know that he did. Everything happened the<br />
way it should have, and I love you more than ever. Please tell me<br />
you enjoyed it and you&#8217;re not feeling bad,&#8221; Don pleaded.</p>
<p>     Donna was comfortable with the events of the day. Twice<br />
before they left she experimented with making love to two of her<br />
favorite actors. Once she made it with both of them. Jim was not<br />
really sure whether Don was making love with anyone in par-<br />
ticular. He knew that he could if he wanted to. Jim felt great<br />
about what he was able to do for Don and Donna as well as for<br />
himself. This was one of the hottest long weekends he had ever<br />
had. They agreed to do this again one day, and Jim hoped that he<br />
would have a chance to see Bridgit again also.</p>
<p>     A sweltering unseasonable heat met Jim as he left the of-<br />
fice. He had been so busy with the rigors of a new week that he<br />
hadn&#8217;t even the opportunity to stop for lunch. Just as well, he<br />
thought. It wouldn&#8217;t hurt to shave about three pounds or so. Jim<br />
fired up the air conditioner and headed for home.</p>
<p>     His mind wandered to a new computer bulletin board friend he<br />
had met the previous day. Ed seemed like an average guy with an<br />
interest in improving his sex life. He and his wife Linda lived<br />
in a little town near Pittsburgh, were in their forties, appeared<br />
to be devoted to one another, but something seemed to be missing.<br />
Ed and Linda weren&#8217;t alone. Many couples experience this common<br />
phenomenon after being married for many years. Ed was interested<br />
in breathing a little new life into their relationship.</p>
<p>     Jim had been jumping around the computer system from door to<br />
door when he was paged by Ed. As most people, Ed seemed in-<br />
credulous about the use of hypnosis in sex. He couldn&#8217;t believe<br />
that so many wonderful things could be accomplished by the use of<br />
hypnosis. It all seemed supernatural and frankly, so much bull.</p>
<p>     After Jim had the opportunity to share some of the methods<br />
and analogies of hypnosis, Ed became more interested and wondered<br />
whether this may be the direction he should take. Jim&#8217;s biggest<br />
challenge seemed to be convincing Ed that is was normal to want<br />
to make sex more exciting. In response to Jim&#8217;s questions, Ed ad-<br />
vised him that he and Linda had never actually shared any fan-<br />
tasies with one another. Ed had wanted to experiment with<br />
threesomes as one time, but Linda seemed to be somewhat put out<br />
about it. She had never indicated an interest in making it with<br />
anyone other than Ed. Jim advised Ed to try to draw Linda&#8217;s in-<br />
terests out through conversation and to get back to him so he<br />
could prepare an approach for them.</p>
<p>     The following evening when Jim signed on to the system there<br />
was electronic mail for him. He always got excited when there was<br />
a message for him. It was a lot like getting a letter that didn&#8217;t<br />
have one of those little windows in it that meant the dirty &#8220;I&#8221;<br />
word &#8211; invoice. Ed indicated that he was able to determine one<br />
significant thing in his conversation with Linda. She was crazy<br />
about Patrick Swazee. She had indicated that although she was<br />
devoted to Ed, Patrick could park his shoes under her bed anytime<br />
he wanted to. Ed shared that he was a little jealous, but oddly<br />
enough, somewhat sexually excited by the prospect of Linda making<br />
it with someone like that.</p>
<p>     Jim prepared a message to leave in the electronic mail sys-<br />
tem for Ed. He indicated that chances were likely that Linda<br />
could mentally substitute Ed for Patrick Swazee. He cautioned Ed<br />
that much of the success of this effort had to do with whether or<br />
not he did anything to make Linda feel guilty. If they would like<br />
to try it, Jim would be happy to help them. He went on to say<br />
that it would probably take a good deal of convincing on Ed&#8217;s<br />
part to get Linda to agree. Instead of visiting the house, Jim<br />
wanted to know what interests they had that would enable him to<br />
meet them socially. He signed off and waited for Ed&#8217;s reply.</p>
<p>     The next time he signed on to the system another message was<br />
waiting for him. Ed indicated that he thought that Linda found<br />
the idea to be exciting but had some concerns about hypnosis and<br />
the proverbial trust factor. They didn&#8217;t know Jim and were a<br />
little concerned about meeting him. Ed also explained that each<br />
Wednesday he and Linda went to a local bowling alley with several<br />
other duffers. They would be agreeable to meeting Jim there but<br />
didn&#8217;t want any of their friends to know that they were meeting<br />
him for this purpose.</p>
<p>     Jim answered that he would meet them at the bowling alley<br />
and maintain a discrete approach to the matter. He hadn&#8217;t been<br />
offended by their concern. It was natural, and Jim had encoun-<br />
tered this skepticism almost every time he approached a situation<br />
such as this. He made plans to meet with Ed and Linda and felt<br />
confident that he would be able to help them in one fashion or<br />
other. Each time Jim got involved in a situation like this was<br />
erotic for him. It brought back so many exciting memories.</p>
<p>     Wednesday had arrived, and the work day had come to an end.<br />
Jim stood at his mirror combing his hair and straightening his<br />
shirt collar. Assured that everything looked presentable, he got<br />
into the car for his short journey to the bowling alley. This was<br />
such a beautiful time of the year for a ride. The trees began to<br />
fill with green, flowers painted the scene and the fresh air<br />
filled his wandering mind. Pulling into the bowling alley parking<br />
lot, Jim reviewed the available parking spaces and selected one<br />
close to the door. He could always tell what kind of people fre-<br />
quented a place by the look of the parking lot. This seemed to be<br />
a nice bunch of folks by the type and number of cars adorning the<br />
lot.</p>
<p>     There was a nice looking mix of people in the place. Adjoin-<br />
ing the bowling alley was a nicely accented lounge with soft rock<br />
playing. Jim perused the lanes and saw that Ed and Linda could<br />
have been any of seven different couples. He decided to take a<br />
seat and wait for direction. One couple did seem to snatch peeks<br />
at him more than any other. It appeared as though they were wait-<br />
ing for someone. Soon one of the males of a couple foursome wan-<br />
dered over with a towel in his hand. &#8220;Jim?&#8221; said the man.</p>
<p>     &#8220;That&#8217;s me. You must be Ed. How are they rolling for you?&#8221;<br />
Jim inquired. While waiting for his answer, he began sizing up Ed<br />
and trying to figure out which of the ladies were Linda. It<br />
really didn&#8217;t matter as both of them were lovely looking ladies.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I think my balls are bigger than the ones we are using. I<br />
bowl so badly that you have to have big balls to embarrass your-<br />
self by bowling in front of everyone,&#8221; he laughed.</p>
<p>     Jim assured him that he had plenty of company and that his<br />
main claim to fame had never been bowling either. After some ad-<br />
ditional small talk, Ed invited Jim over to meet Linda and their<br />
friends.</p>
<p>     Amenities having been exchanged with Linda, Karen and Joe,<br />
Ed explained that Jim was a computer friend that they had met on<br />
the computer bulletin board and they were going to have a drink<br />
and discuss some of their computer ideas. He asked Karen and Joe<br />
to join them.</p>
<p>     Jim took a spectator&#8217;s position and watched as the bowlers<br />
plied their hobby. It was Linda&#8217;s turn to toss the ball. Not<br />
being an expert, Jim watched Linda make her initial approach. It<br />
soon dawned on him that her approach was not what interested him.<br />
Linda was about 5&#8242;5&#8243; tall and about 125 pounds of loveliness. As<br />
Linda picked up her ball from the return, she grasped it in both<br />
hands in front of her. This movement provided the loveliest view<br />
of her cleavage; soft white breasts with a healthy texture that<br />
captured the attention of most men in the area.</p>
<p>     His eyes were then drawn like magnets to her wonderfully<br />
shaped buttocks. Her slacks provided cover but left very little<br />
to the imagination. They were so perfectly lifted and separated,<br />
and they danced so artistically as she made the short trip to<br />
release her ball. He thought that he might just have to take up<br />
this game on a regular basis just to return to this lovely view.</p>
<p>     After the four bowlers had sufficiently tired themselves<br />
with their less-than-300 game, they stowed their equipment and<br />
headed for the lounge. Having been seated and drinks ordered, Jim<br />
explained that he was a sociologist, worked with behavior<br />
modification and came to find that he and Ed shared many common<br />
interests about computers. Shortly thereafter, Karen and Joe ex-<br />
cused themselves so that they could pick up their son at baseball<br />
practice.</p>
<p>     Linda, Ed and Jim all seemed to offer a sigh of relief as<br />
the couple left. Additional drinks were ordered and the conversa-<br />
tion continued. Ed began to offer apologies for his comments to<br />
their friends, but Jim stopped him with a raised hand. &#8220;There&#8217;s<br />
no need to apologize. This is your business, and if I don&#8217;t un-<br />
derstand, I don&#8217;t have any business being here. My interest is in<br />
seeing you both learn to enjoy life and one another more. I get<br />
off on it. Some people collect stamps. I collect happy people.<br />
It&#8217;s erotic as well as meaningful,&#8221; Jim smiled.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I hope that&#8217;s not all you get off on,&#8221; Linda offered with<br />
her own smile. She appeared to be somewhat attracted to Jim as<br />
well. Jim felt several times as though she had been stealing<br />
glances at him, but he couldn&#8217;t figure if it was that she was<br />
concerned about him being there or happy that he was.</p>
<p>     &#8220;No Linda, not at all. I&#8217;m just as normal as the next guy,<br />
but I&#8217;m sure there would be people that would disagree with me on<br />
that. If you don&#8217;t mind, I would like to be candid with you from<br />
the beginning. Am I correct in assuming that you are both inter-<br />
ested in improving both your relaxation techniques and your sex<br />
lives?&#8221; Jim asked as he casually raised his eyebrows.</p>
<p>     Having received a nod from them both, Jim went on. &#8220;The mind<br />
determines what happens and how it is perceived. The reason that<br />
we get sexually excited is that the mind sends messages from the<br />
brain to various parts of the body. In a man&#8217;s case, blood is<br />
sent to the penis, it fills, expands and becomes rigid. Very much<br />
the same thing occurs when a woman becomes excited mentally. Once<br />
again, our brain tells our system to increase the blood flow to<br />
the extremities. The breasts, nipples and buttocks become more<br />
sensitive as the nerves are exposed because of an increased pres-<br />
sure of the blood supply. Mucous membranes are squeezed by the<br />
blood flow which provides lubrication to the vagina. The inner<br />
and outer lips of the vulva expand and become heavy.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Our mind makes these things happen. Much of it has to do<br />
with what we have programmed ourselves to consider sexy. That is<br />
why we refer to men as tit men, ass men, leg men and the like.<br />
Smell provides a real turn on for some people. Some folks are ex-<br />
cited visually, while others can only be turned on by touch.<br />
Again, the mind is doing these things for us and to us. As time<br />
goes by, many people require additional or different stimuli to<br />
provide excitement. You&#8217;ve heard the expression, &#8216;variety is the<br />
spice of life,&#8217; I am sure. That is what the expression refers to.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Almost all of society has their secret turn-ons. Many don&#8217;t<br />
speak of them, but most have them. My wife, for instance, never<br />
demonstrated much interest in anything other than infrequent mis-<br />
sionary style sex. She tried to please of course, but sex was not<br />
very exciting for her. She never mentioned fantasies. I took for<br />
granted that she didn&#8217;t have them, until one day she said some-<br />
thing that led me to believe that she had. I questioned her about<br />
it. Too immediately she denied that she ever thought of anyone<br />
but me. After additional prompting, she admitted that she may<br />
have had fantasies but didn&#8217;t have the courage to share them be-<br />
cause it wasn&#8217;t normal for a &#8220;good wife&#8221; to think of anyone<br />
sexually but her husband.</p>
<p>     &#8220;This conversation occurred while we were in bed. As I was<br />
able to pry more out of her, she noticed that I was not getting<br />
angry. In fact, I was getting aroused; more aroused than she had<br />
seen me in quite some time. Before the night was over we had made<br />
love three times and climaxed with more pleasure than we ever<br />
had. After that, fantasy had a place in our hearts and in our<br />
pants. Sex had become better and more meaningful. I guess that&#8217;s<br />
one of the reasons that we are still together and enjoy one<br />
another so much sexually. I was able to assure her that jealousy<br />
had no strength or place in our relationship so long as emotion<br />
wasn&#8217;t diverted from each other. I would be jealous if I believed<br />
that she loved someone more than me, but it only served to excite<br />
me to think of her making it with someone else,&#8221; Jim concluded.</p>
<p>     Linda seemed to be amazed at Jim&#8217;s honesty in explaining how<br />
he perceived fantasy and jealousy. &#8220;Have you or your wife ever<br />
made love to someone else Jim?&#8221; she inquired.</p>
<p>     With a slight smile begin to curl on his lips, Jim remarked,<br />
&#8220;On several occasions we have experimented. Jealousy did occur<br />
the first time for both of us. Fortunately, our juices took over<br />
and the situation was so hot, a wonderful balance resulted. Af-<br />
terward, when we discussed it, our discussion just made us more<br />
excited. We were left with a better understanding of our own<br />
jealousy. Once I realized that although it turned her on, she was<br />
also doing it for me, my jealousy went away and what was left was<br />
pure excitement.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Quite honestly, you have captured my interest,&#8221; Linda said.<br />
&#8220;Would you be interested in trying to help us achieve some of the<br />
things that hypnosis has to offer?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;If you are both not just interested to try it but hungry to<br />
master it, I&#8217;d be happy to help you. This isn&#8217;t something that<br />
you put a halfhearted effort into. You should commit to submit<br />
your mind to it and attempt to practice periodically to improve<br />
you own ability. When would you like to start?&#8221; Jim asked.</p>
<p>     Linda looked at Ed for approval and direction. Seeing no ob-<br />
jection, she said, &#8220;well it&#8217;s not too late now if you wouldn&#8217;t<br />
mind following us to our place. It&#8217;s only about a mile and a half<br />
down the road, and it&#8217;s in the direction you&#8217;d be traveling.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim looked at his watch and agreed to follow them to their<br />
home. He asked them to think about what they would like to ex-<br />
periment on while they were driving back to the house. They<br />
gathered their equipment, left a tip on the table and began the<br />
short trip to their home. Jim followed, pleased that he had been<br />
able to give them some initial good direction about hypnosis.</p>
<p>     The trip was indeed short, and soon they had arrived at<br />
their destination. Linda and Ed lived in a lovely neighborhood.<br />
Their house and grounds were well maintained. The inside of the<br />
house was furnished in a lovely fashion. Jim thought to himself<br />
how proud he was that he had read these people correctly. They<br />
seemed to be a very nice, average couple with their heads screwed<br />
on right. After they were settled and Linda had prepared drinks<br />
and some snacks, Jim asked, &#8220;did you discuss what you would like<br />
to work on with hypnosis?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Ed began, &#8220;we did talk about it a little, Jim. Linda and I<br />
think that you may have something there with the jealousy theory<br />
of yours. Both of us are willing to try making it with someone<br />
else. We have agreed that if either of us develop a problem with<br />
it we will stop and scrap the idea. Nothing ventured; nothing<br />
gained. We believe that we are mature enough and love each other<br />
enough that we can overcome it.&#8221; Linda illustrated her agreement<br />
by nodding her head, but she said nothing.</p>
<p>     Jim, in turn, placed each of them into deep hypnosis. They<br />
were both excellent subjects. Much of it had to do with Jim&#8217;s ex-<br />
planation of what would occur and their commitment to their  sub-<br />
mission. He gave them each post hypnotic suggestions that would<br />
enable them to enter a deep trance state each time Jim snapped<br />
his fingers twice while looking them in the eyes.</p>
<p>     Through the use of additional suggestions Jim established<br />
that in Ed&#8217;s eyes Linda would become Kim Bassinger and in Linda&#8217;s<br />
eyes Ed would be Patrick Swazee. They would both be extremely<br />
horny. They also did not have to waste time with amenities. He<br />
increased their sensitivity, increased the intensity and length<br />
of their respective climax and ended by giving them the instruc-<br />
tions on how and when they would wake up.  Additionally, Jim<br />
would not be visible to them. Both were woken and Jim retreated<br />
to a chair in the corner of the room to observe.</p>
<p>     Ed sat there looking in awe at Linda. She was just as cap-<br />
tured by Ed. They both stood and immediately began removing one<br />
another&#8217;s clothing. Jim felt like a voyeur, but it was very ex-<br />
citing. Linda was a knock-out and he could feel his cock begin to<br />
lengthen. It was like watching his own personal porn film with<br />
the added excitement that he helped write the script. He watched<br />
as Ed&#8217;s hands went to Linda&#8217;s heavy, naked breasts. Ed&#8217;s eyes<br />
gradually lowered to view this lovely spectacle. He tweaked her<br />
lovely hardening nipples and filled his hands with tit flesh.</p>
<p>     Linda moved her hands to Ed&#8217;s now-naked buttocks and<br />
squeezed as she offered her hot lips to him. His thick penis<br />
began its upward climb to erection leaving a slight trail of<br />
seminal fluid on Linda&#8217;s baby blue panties. As his hands sneaked<br />
inside the waist band of her panties and he filled his hands with<br />
her ample ass cheeks, a deep moan escaped her lips into his hot<br />
mouth. Jim watched as Linda&#8217;s buttocks were exposed to his view.<br />
His rod was now rock hard and straining for a volcanic release.<br />
Linda&#8217;s full buttocks were pressed together and separated inter-<br />
mittently. Jim could see the deep crevice of her ass and the dark<br />
patch of cunt hair. The smell of lust filled his nostrils and in-<br />
creased his own excitement.</p>
<p>     Soon Linda dropped to her knees and placed Ed&#8217;s extended<br />
meat gently into her mouth. Ed squeezed his ass tight as he<br />
pushed forward to gain depth. Linda lifted his balls and massaged<br />
them gently as her wet mouth surrounded his straining cock. Each<br />
time he pulled slightly out of her mouth, Jim was able to see the<br />
residue of her saliva coating his huge penis; preparing it for<br />
its trip into the depths of her slippery and swollen pussy lips.<br />
Never had Jim seen such an erotic sight. He almost felt part of<br />
the action, and his hand began to massage the grand lump in his<br />
own pants.</p>
<p>     Gently, Ed lifted Linda into his arms and headed for the<br />
couch. He lower her as her breasts swayed like oceans of heavy<br />
fluid contained only by the shores of flesh that surrounded them.<br />
Her nipples were hard and extended. The tight nipple flesh pulled<br />
hard at the ample breast which surrounded each. After settled in<br />
a reclining position, Linda felt her legs being separated by Ed&#8217;s<br />
strong hands. The muff of cunt hair which encircled her deep<br />
honey pot separated to frame a slick pink gully. Jim watched as<br />
her love cream seeped out of her hole and ran down into the deep,<br />
warm crack of her ass to bathe her tight, quivering  ass hole.</p>
<p>     Ed&#8217;s lips began at the knee on the inside of Linda&#8217;s thigh.<br />
Never was he this hot. His normally thick cock was as rigid as an<br />
iron bar and felt like lead. It became so hard that he could feel<br />
his hairy balls squeezed tightly against his body. His lips con-<br />
tinued to move, painting Linda&#8217;s inner thigh with hot saliva.<br />
Closer and closer they came to her gaping hot tunnel. The<br />
fragrance of her wet sex visited his senses and made him tingle<br />
with added excitement. Linda could feel his slightly rough face<br />
teasing its way toward the magnet of her dripping, hair-covered<br />
pussy lips. His hands continued to test the weight of her jig-<br />
gling tits. Each time the palms of his hands brushed her tight<br />
nipples it sent waves of excitement to her straining clitoris.</p>
<p>     On his nose he could feel the moist hair which covered her<br />
quivering cunt. Reaching from behind, spreading her tight but-<br />
tocks, Ed used his fingers to spread the lips of her love tunnel.<br />
Ever so gently he pressed his hard tongue into her fuck pit. Jim<br />
removed his hand from his laboring penis, concerned that it would<br />
ejaculate prior to their completion. His eyes remained glued to<br />
the hot action. Linda was hotter than she had ever remembered<br />
being. She swallowed Ed&#8217;s expanded cock, and he drove it into the<br />
depths of her throat with his 5&#8242;11&#8243;, 155 pound frame. She could<br />
feel Ed&#8217;s hairy balls rest on her chin as she filled her hands<br />
with his buttocks and pulled him yet harder toward her. Grinding<br />
her slick pussy into his gaping mouth, she could feel the weight<br />
of her breasts as they bounced in the air and tingled her rubbery<br />
nipples.</p>
<p>     Ed broke the lock that they had placed their convulsing<br />
bodies in. Turning her on her knees to present her taunt buttocks<br />
to his gaze and aim, Ed leaned her soft breasts against the couch<br />
and filled his hand with his own thick organ. Stroking it several<br />
times to bring it to yet new length, Ed placed the spear-like tip<br />
at the door of her womanhood. Linda couldn&#8217;t help herself as she<br />
pressed backward trying to prematurely swallow his member with<br />
her hairy, dripping sheath. Ed soon rewarded her as he smeared<br />
love juices over the tip of his meat and began pressing its<br />
length into the depths of her hole. Deeper and deeper it<br />
traveled. What a vision! He could see the thick cock pole slip<br />
effortlessly into the dark canyon of wet heat. As he withdrew, Ed<br />
could see the evidence of her own juices glistening on his bone.</p>
<p>     Jim watched as the strokes increased in intensity, speed and<br />
depth. The sound of Ed&#8217;s thighs smacking against Linda&#8217;s firm ass<br />
was music to his ears. Jim could see Linda&#8217;s ass wiggle as she<br />
screwed it back to receive Ed&#8217;s advances. Her breasts jiggled so<br />
voluptuously that Jim&#8217;s fuck bone almost went off without him<br />
touching it. His gaze traveled to Linda&#8217;s face. The look on her<br />
face was a combination of angel and demon. Her earthy grunts gave<br />
him new reason to maintain erection. He loved the sound of<br />
pleasure, and there was no doubt that Linda had never felt so<br />
much unadulterated bliss. She was bucking wildly as the unrelent-<br />
ing cock drove deep into her cavernous pussy.</p>
<p>     The fever pitch that they had attained was soon met with the<br />
ecstasy they sought. Linda was screaming, &#8220;fuck that deep cunt<br />
Patrick. Fuck my hole with your hot meat and pour your come into<br />
my guts.&#8221; She was indeed being made love to by Patrick Swazee. He<br />
wanted her and he was taking her.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You feel so damn wonderful Kim. Take my bone in your hole<br />
and don&#8217;t let go. I want to pump my cock into you until it falls<br />
off,&#8221; Ed responded. His cock was in Kim Bassinger&#8217;s tight pussy<br />
and his hands were squeezing her rubbery ass cheeks. All at once,<br />
Ed threw his head back and began a series of low grunts as he<br />
pumped his cream into Linda&#8217;s pounding body. As if playing her<br />
part in an orchestra, Linda buried the top of her head into the<br />
couch and tossed her cunt up toward Ed driving bone. &#8220;Yes, Yes,<br />
Yes, Harder, Harder, Now, Now, Ohhhhhh!&#8221; she screamed.</p>
<p>     Soon they were spent and laying together in a half sleep.<br />
They were too tired to move or didn&#8217;t care to. Jim placed them<br />
both into another trance. He gave them post hypnotic suggestions<br />
that they would wake up feeling wonderful, well-rested and remem-<br />
ber everything that occurred during the love making experience at<br />
the count of three.</p>
<p>     &#8220;One, two, three; awaken feeling wonderful and sexy,&#8221; Jim<br />
said as he clapped his hands loudly. They both opened their eyes<br />
slowly. Their faces were graced with the most wonderful smile,<br />
but each of them appeared to have experienced some embarrassment.<br />
Jim couldn&#8217;t quite tell whether it was guilt or not. &#8220;How do you<br />
feel?:</p>
<p>     Linda began with a smile, &#8220;I feel like a truck hit me &#8211; but<br />
right in the correct place. It was a truck I have wanted to be<br />
hit by for a long time. I can&#8217;t really believe that Patrick<br />
Swazee made love to me.&#8221; She soon noticed that she hadn&#8217;t a<br />
stitch of clothes on. As Jim saw her concern, he offered an af-<br />
ghan for her to cover up.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t think I have ever had a hotter experience. I was<br />
convinced that Linda was Kim Bassinger. No &#8212; Kim Bassinger can<br />
not be that good. This is unbelievable. I can&#8217;t wait to start<br />
again. Thank you Jim,&#8221; Ed said meaningfully.</p>
<p>     &#8220;There&#8217;s no need to thank me. I was just the facilitator.<br />
You and Linda made it all happen. The next time we get together,<br />
I want to teach you both how to be anyone you want, with anyone<br />
you want, wherever you want to be and as long as you want to be<br />
there,&#8221; Jim said. &#8220;Now I have a little drive ahead of me, and I<br />
must be going. Beat&#8217;s the hell out of bowling, doesn&#8217;t it? Sit<br />
tight. I&#8217;ll show myself out. Leave me a message on the computer<br />
and let me know if you have any suggestions on how to improve the<br />
process.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim wasn&#8217;t out the door before Ed and Linda were deeply in-<br />
volved in their own new experiment. Jim couldn&#8217;t get home quickly<br />
enough so he could take care of his own hard business. On the<br />
trip home his mind wandered to pat himself on the back for<br />
another success story. These two were one of the hottest couples<br />
he had ever helped. It didn&#8217;t do him any harm either.</p>
<p>                    CHAPTER SEVEN &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     July of &#8216;91 had to be one of the most sweltering heat waves<br />
in history for the mid west. Jim was sure that there was a direct<br />
correlation between the heat and his libido. He seemed to stay<br />
horny all of the time. He had to &#8220;get off&#8221; each night before<br />
going to sleep, and he woke up with a cock hard enough to chop<br />
oak trees. He knew that he was ready for a new adventure.</p>
<p>     Recently, he joined a new computer bulletin board service in<br />
Cleveland. It really seemed to be a great board because it had a<br />
matching service that provided an outline of all of the sub-<br />
scribers and what their interests were. He had pulled up a list<br />
of about thirty singles or couples that were interested in meet-<br />
ing him.</p>
<p>     Sometimes the conversations got so hot on the computer that<br />
he couldn&#8217;t help but stroke his tool while trying to type in<br />
responses. Carla was one of the most exciting new contacts he had<br />
made. Her profile indicated that she was married, 39 years old,<br />
5&#8242;5&#8243; tall, 135 pounds, long brown hair, blue eyes and hot to<br />
trot. During one of their chats, she indicated that hypnosis in-<br />
terested her, but she didn&#8217;t know much about it. They had made<br />
arrangements to meet so that Jim could better explain the process<br />
and benefits.</p>
<p>     Jim arrived at the little town just east of Cleveland at a<br />
little before seven o&#8217;clock on the agreed upon evening. By seven<br />
o&#8217;clock he was parking the car in front of the address that he<br />
had been given. Walking toward the door, he wondered how Carla<br />
and her husband, Tom would be. To his pleasant surprise, the door<br />
was answered by an extremely lovely creature wearing a small hal-<br />
ter top that barely contained a remarkable set of breasts, a<br />
short white skirt that accented her plentiful buttocks and high<br />
heals that gave her legs the most interesting and seductive<br />
curves. There seemed to be one bonus after the other. Her lovely<br />
hair fell in soft curls to frame the face of an angel. &#8220;Please<br />
come in Jim,&#8221; she said with what appeared to be a pleased look on<br />
her face.</p>
<p>     Jim stepped into the foyer and extended his hand in greet-<br />
ing. Carla accepted his hand, cupped it and pulled it into her<br />
breast as she kissed him on the cheek. He could already feel the<br />
heat develop in his loins. Her eyes seemed to be memorizing him<br />
as she said, &#8220;Come in to the den and have a seat while I get you<br />
something to drink. Tom will be here in just a little while. I<br />
sent him out for a few things. What would you like to drink?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;A little demon rum and some diet cola if you have it,<br />
Carla. You have a lovely place,&#8221; Jim offered as his eyes drank of<br />
her form gliding across the room toward the bar. This was an ass<br />
that he wanted to forever remember. It wasn&#8217;t that her skirt was<br />
that tight. It was the material that seemed to cling in just the<br />
right fashion to reveal each ass cheek in all its glory. They<br />
moved like a symphony with each step she took. Having manufac-<br />
tured Jim&#8217;s drink and preparing one for herself, Carla returned<br />
to Jim and offered one of the glasses. Her return trip was just<br />
as exciting. Her soft breasts bounced appealingly during her<br />
return. She held her arms slightly away from her body as she<br />
carried the drinks. This seemed to accent her ripened nipples.<br />
Jim thought that she may becoming as excited by the prospects as<br />
he was.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Good heavens. You are a lovely woman, Carla. I don&#8217;t think<br />
that I can keep my mind on anything with the way you look,&#8221; Jim<br />
said.</p>
<p>     With a devilish smile, Carla said, &#8220;do you want me to change<br />
or cover something up?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I can think of a thing or two that I would like to see you<br />
cover up, but please don&#8217;t change on my account,&#8221; he responded with a chuckle.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Do you mean covering your long, hot cock with my tight,<br />
hairy cunt hole while you suck on my big tits and bite my juicy<br />
nipples? Or maybe cover up your thick bone with my lips while I<br />
suck the last bit of cream out of your big balls.&#8221; In a flash she<br />
had pulled up her halter top and her huge breasts bounced free.<br />
&#8220;Conceivably, I could grease up these big knockers and let you<br />
titty fuck me and come on my erect nipples,&#8221; she said in a soft<br />
tone with a matter-of-fact look on her face.</p>
<p>     Jim almost fell over backward in the chair he was in. Carla<br />
began laughing, pulled down her top and said, &#8220;I&#8217;m just kidding<br />
Jim. I hope that we do get to that point, but I just wanted to<br />
see the look on your face.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You did take me by surprise,&#8221; Jim smiled. &#8220;I do have to ad-<br />
mit that you have two of the most remarkable tits I have ever<br />
seen.&#8221; If this was any indication of what was in store for Jim,<br />
he knew he had made the right choice to visit. His cock stayed<br />
hard as they continued their conversation. Suddenly, they were<br />
interrupted by the phone ringing. Carla got up from her chair and<br />
made her way over to the phone. Jim could not take his eyes off<br />
her swaying buttocks and almost spilled his drink.</p>
<p>     Carla spoke softly, and Jim could not hear what she was<br />
saying. After a short time she returned and explained that Tom<br />
had gotten tied up and wouldn&#8217;t be able to join them for about an<br />
hour or so. She asked Jim if he could explain the hypnosis<br />
process. This he did. He went into enough detail to explain how<br />
the trance state was induced and what could be accomplished<br />
through the use of hypnosis.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Could you make me believe that you or I are someone or<br />
something other than who or what we are?&#8221; she asked leaning<br />
toward him and offering a lucid view of her stunning cleavage.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I really can&#8217;t do anything, Carla. I am only your guide.<br />
You actually accomplish all of these things yourself. You can<br />
lengthen the duration of your climax, make various parts of your<br />
body more sensitive than normal or turn yourself or others into<br />
anyone or anything you can imagine,&#8221; he answered.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Let&#8217;s not wait, Jim. Put me into a trance now so I can see<br />
what you&#8217;re talking about,&#8221; Carla pleaded.</p>
<p>     &#8220;First I would like to just do some relaxation exercises. It<br />
will enable me to determine what your ability currently is and<br />
decide how far to go today. Is that OK with you?&#8221; he asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You&#8217;re the boss. Just don&#8217;t turn me into a chicken or make<br />
me chase cars,&#8221; she teased.</p>
<p>     Jim placed her in an upright chair and began to induce the<br />
trance state. She seemed to be responding rather well so he con-<br />
tinued his efforts using the escalator approach. She was brought<br />
lower and lower into the depths of her own mind. He then relaxed<br />
each major muscle group by lightly touching the area and drawing<br />
attention to it. This part was difficult for Jim because he had<br />
to maintain his professionalism while touching her wonderful<br />
body.</p>
<p>     After a couple of tests to determine depth, Jim began to<br />
give Carla post hypnotic suggestions that would serve to<br />
demonstrate what she would be able to accomplish. He indicated to<br />
her that she would not feel any different and would probably not<br />
think that she had been asleep. Her nipples would not become<br />
rigid unless her left ear was touched. Once that happened her<br />
nipples would become as rigid as marbles.</p>
<p>     He told her that whenever her left knee and left elbow were<br />
touched at the same time, she would feel the pressure of hungry<br />
lips on her nipples. Additionally, if these areas were slightly<br />
shaken, she would feel a light electric shock sensation in her<br />
nipples.</p>
<p>     He then indicated to her that when she felt herself reaching<br />
orgasm, she would be unable to come unless she was dancing nude.<br />
When she started coming, all she had to do to double the inten-<br />
sity of the orgasm was to pinch her nipples. If this night she<br />
was made love to, she would be unable to reach a climax unless<br />
Jim pushed her left nipple like a button. When this occurred, she<br />
would have the most significant orgasm of her life.</p>
<p>     In order to more easily go into a trance the next time, Jim<br />
gave her another post-hypnotic suggestion. When he snapped his<br />
fingers twice and told her to fall into a deep sleep, she would<br />
immediately do so. She was asked and indicated that she under-<br />
stood each suggestion. Jim told her that at the count of three<br />
she would awaken, remember as much as she liked and feel terrific<br />
and sexy.</p>
<p>     At the count of three Carla&#8217;s eyes opened slowly and she had<br />
an incredulous smirk on her face. She said, &#8220;I don&#8217;t feel as if<br />
anything happened, Jim.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;You don&#8217;t always feel as though something has happened. It<br />
is only an altered state of consciousness. It&#8217;s not actually<br />
sleep. However, now you have abilities that you have never had<br />
before,&#8221; Jim explained.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t feel any different, but all of this talk about sex<br />
has made me awfully horny. I can feel it building in me and I<br />
want to explode,&#8221; she said almost apologetically.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You are not all that horny, Carla. Your nipples are not<br />
hard and they can&#8217;t get hard unless we impose one of the suggest-<br />
ions I gave you earlier,&#8221; Jim assured her.</p>
<p>     Carla looked at him as if her were crazy, &#8220;my nipples are<br />
almost always hard, Jim.&#8221; She looked down at her breasts but did<br />
not see the tell-tale impressions in her halter top. When she<br />
raised her eyes to look at Jim, she had a look of disbelief on<br />
her face. &#8220;This is insane. I hope to hell that you haven&#8217;t taken<br />
something away from me. The sensitivity of my nipples are criti-<br />
cal, Jim.</p>
<p>     Jim said, &#8220;it only takes a second to fix. I want you to try<br />
to make your nipples hard, Carla. Touch them, think of the hot-<br />
test experience in your life, pinch them, pull on them or even<br />
touch your pussy. When you are convinced that you have done<br />
everything possible, let me have a try.&#8221; She followed Jim&#8217;s sug-<br />
gestions point by point. First she removed her top. Her nipples<br />
were lovely large patches adorning her breasts, but they were<br />
flat and lifeless. She touched them gently at first and then be-<br />
came more demanding. With her eyes closed tightly, she pulled and<br />
pinched at the lovely pink patches to no avail. She began to<br />
twirl the nipple of her left breast and her other hand reached<br />
down into the heated gap between her legs.</p>
<p>     &#8220;It feels great, but I can&#8217;t seem to bring any life into<br />
them. Please tell me that you will take this away,&#8221; she said al-<br />
most in a panic. He walked over to her and told her to keep her<br />
eyes on her nipples. Then he raised his hand and touched her left<br />
ear. Suddenly her nipples began to harden right in front of her<br />
eyes. They became towering bundles of rigid flesh. They started<br />
out pink and as they continued to grow they became almost red. A<br />
smile soon replaced the frown and she lifted her breasts, began<br />
to shake them and said, &#8220;all right! Now I have my lovely nipples<br />
back again. You scarred the hell out of me, Jim. It is possible<br />
that it was only a coincidence though. It could be the tempera-<br />
ture in this room or apprehension about being so near a<br />
stranger.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Would you like to go on to the next step of the<br />
demonstration?&#8221; asked Jim. She indicated that she would. Jim<br />
knelt down next to Carla and touched her left knee and left elbow<br />
at the same time. Immediately her eyes shot open wide and another<br />
look of disbelief found itself on her face.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Jim, this is unbelievable. I actually feel a wet pressure<br />
on my nipples. It feels like searching lips,&#8221; she said. Jim<br />
removed his hands and the sensation went away. &#8220;Oh Jim, why did<br />
you stop. It felt so incredible.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Try it yourself. Place your left hand on your left knee and<br />
your right hand on your left elbow, Carla. Go ahead. You&#8217;ll be<br />
pleasantly surprised,&#8221; he coached her. Carla did this and again<br />
got a look of amazement on her face. &#8220;If you want to try some-<br />
thing else, let me know when you are ready,&#8221; he offered.</p>
<p>     She indicated that she was ready so Jim explained that she<br />
should shake her left knee and left elbow. &#8220;Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhh. Oh<br />
my lord. I never felt anything like this before,&#8221; suddenly she<br />
stopped. &#8220;I can&#8217;t hurt myself doing this, can I Jim?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim assured her that there was not any actual electricity<br />
other than that which the mind provided. She returned to her ef-<br />
forts and Jim watched; becoming more excited as he watched her<br />
breasts jumping with delight. More and more she shook herself.<br />
She had a determined look on her face and was trying feverishly<br />
to climax. &#8220;Why can&#8217;t I get off. I&#8217;ve never felt this good<br />
before, but I can&#8217;t seem to get off,&#8221; she said through clenched<br />
teeth.</p>
<p>     Jim explained that the only way she could come now was to<br />
remove the remainder of her clothing and dance. She argued with<br />
him and told him that she was almost there as she continued to<br />
shake her knee and elbow. Suddenly she jumped up, removed her<br />
clothes and started to dance wildly. This was the first time that<br />
Jim had the occasion to see her lovely buttocks. As she danced in<br />
one direction, her breasts and buttocks went in four separate and<br />
quite distinct directions. The lovely muff of pubic hair began to<br />
come to life after being matted down by her garments.</p>
<p>     It wasn&#8217;t long before Jim noticed a strange look come over<br />
her face. She danced over to the wall, held on to it and con-<br />
tinued to dance. From the look on her face, it was apparent that<br />
her climax was beginning. &#8220;Lean on the wall and pinch your<br />
nipples, Carla,&#8221; Jim urged her. As she did this she let out a<br />
scream that seemed to shake the room. She fell in jerking motions<br />
to the floor, and Jim hurried to make sure that she did not get<br />
hurt on the way down.</p>
<p>     He gently helped her the last few inches to the ground, and<br />
she continued to spasm in his arms; moaning and repeating, &#8220;Fuck,<br />
fuck, fuck, myyyy fucking tits are going to explode; my cuuuunt<br />
is a river on fire.&#8221; She continued to jerk with her hot flesh<br />
pressed against Jim. He wanted in the worst way to bury his<br />
rock-hard cock into her cunt; the hairy, hot hole that was<br />
visibly leaking down both of her legs and the cheeks of her ass.<br />
Jim held her gently as she tried to recover, stoking her hair and<br />
whispering assurances to her.</p>
<p>     Soon Carla began cooing. She told Jim that she hadn&#8217;t remem-<br />
bered anything that exciting in a long time. Suddenly they heard<br />
the door close and Tom said, &#8220;where is everyone at?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;In the living room honey,&#8221; Carla reached for an afghan to<br />
cover herself. &#8220;Jim has done a few experiments that I can&#8217;t wait<br />
to tell you about.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;You don&#8217;t have to, honey. I was on the porch and saw most<br />
of everything that happened. I hope you don&#8217;t mind, Jim. One of<br />
my weaknesses is voyeurism. I got off without touching myself.<br />
That was hot. You&#8217;re the only one that still has a woody, Jim,&#8221;<br />
Tom explained. They all laughed. Carla made something for them to<br />
eat while Jim continued to explain some of the benefits of hyp-<br />
nosis as a tool in sex. After a lovely snack, they returned to<br />
the living room to finish their discussion.</p>
<p>     &#8220;This talk has served to make me very horny again, guys.<br />
What to you say we retire to more comfortable digs so you men can<br />
teach me a few things,&#8221; Carla offered. Both men got up without<br />
saying a word and began to follow Carla to the bedroom.</p>
<p>     Carla didn&#8217;t waste any time getting the bed ready for the<br />
threesome. Jim became increasingly horny as he watched her dance<br />
about the room getting pillows and placing a tape in the VCR.<br />
&#8220;Well are you guys going to just stand there, or are you going to<br />
take those things off and join me,&#8221; she said as she plopped down<br />
on the bed and struck an inviting pose.</p>
<p>     Both men began taking their clothes off. Carla began to rub<br />
her legs together as she compared their heavy cocks. Jim was<br />
finished undressing first. He was likely more anxious as Tom had<br />
already dropped a load of thick cream in his jeans while on the<br />
porch. Before Jim was completely in the bed, Carla had reached<br />
out and started to guide his growing penis into her mouth. Tom<br />
soon joined them and ran his hands up her open thighs as he<br />
watched her lips engulf Jim&#8217;s raging cock bone. Tom began licking<br />
her soft, long legs at the knee, and Jim could feel the vibration<br />
of her throat on his cock as she moaned at the pleasure Tom was<br />
offering.</p>
<p>     Tom&#8217;s hot mouth traveled further up her legs and soon her<br />
wiggling buttocks were resting in his hands; painting them with<br />
her juices. Tom&#8217;s tongue found its ultimate mark as it dipped be-<br />
tween the hairy lips of her cunt hole and began flicking at her<br />
clit. The excitement drove Carla wild, and she jammed Jim&#8217;s stiff<br />
rod deep into her throat, licking his balls and moaning even<br />
louder. Her lips began a lovely torture on the growing length of<br />
Jim&#8217;s engorged shaft. Each time he buried his fuck tool into the<br />
depths of her mouth, she reached out with her tongue and licked<br />
his heavy, swollen balls.</p>
<p>     Carla removed his raging bone so that she could turn him<br />
over on his back. Tom got up from the bed to allow her to get<br />
into position to return Jim&#8217;s glistening bone to her mouth. She<br />
was on her hands and knees sucking on Jim&#8217;s rock-hard bone, and<br />
her heavy pink tits bounced off of his thighs. Tom was now very<br />
hard and approached Carla from behind. He lubricated her bushy<br />
pussy a little more before he placed the head of his fuck snake<br />
against the lips of her dripping cunt. Tom easily slid the length<br />
of his tool into the depths of her fragrant hole as he filled his<br />
hands with the flesh of her ass.</p>
<p>     Carla&#8217;s moans continued to increase in volume as well as<br />
duration. As Tom&#8217;s cock drove deeper and deeper, Carla attempted<br />
to take Jim&#8217;s cock deeper with each thrust. Jim filled his hands<br />
with her beautiful swaying tits and began tweaking the pink<br />
marbles that rested on them. Carla responded by reaching up and<br />
pinching Jim&#8217;s own sensitive nipples. This was more than he could<br />
take. To stop himself from coming prematurely, he removed his<br />
penis from her mouth and stood up next to the bed. &#8220;I don&#8217;t want<br />
to get off yet. It&#8217;s too early. Just let me watch Tom poke your<br />
lovely whiskers while your gorgeous breasts sway,&#8221; Jim pleaded.</p>
<p>     Jim took a position in a chair next to the bed with one leg<br />
thrown over the arm of the chair and slowly stroked his long<br />
cock. Periodically he would have to remove his hand to delay the<br />
inevitable. Soon Tom got a look of building tension on his face<br />
and announced that he couldn&#8217;t hold on any longer. He was going<br />
to come. Tom reached up, filled his hands with breast flesh and<br />
drove his dick deep into Carla&#8217;s cunt hole. He began jerking<br />
wildly as his cream filled her guts. Suddenly, Tom collapsed on<br />
the bed next to Carla and left her on all fours. She looked like<br />
a motor not connected up to the machine she was intended for.<br />
With a look of pleading in her eyes she said, &#8220;I don&#8217;t know what<br />
it is Jim, but I just can&#8217;t seem to come. Please come over here<br />
and stick your bone in my hole and help me get off. I need more<br />
cock, and I need it now.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim didn&#8217;t need much encouragement. He approached the bed,<br />
slid his hand under her breasts to feel their weight, down her<br />
back, over her still-pumping buttocks and down into the wet,<br />
hairy crack of her ass and slipped two finger into her moving<br />
cunt. She groaned with pleasure as she anticipated the entry of<br />
his swollen rod. Jim knelt on the bed behind her and lower his<br />
nose to the cleft of her ass cheeks. He was intoxicated from the<br />
aroma that filled his senses, and his cock grew even more than he<br />
thought possible. Putting the globes of her ass into his hands,<br />
he placed his cock into the wedge of her womanhood and drove his<br />
cock into her hungry pussy. Immediately he began stroking his<br />
pole into the depths of her greasy cunt as he bunched up her but-<br />
tocks and watched his penetration.</p>
<p>     Tom moved around in front of Carla and offered his swollen<br />
meat to her panting mouth. She took it into her mouth and reached<br />
up to massage his harry, heavy balls. Jim watched her head as it<br />
drove like a piston on her husband&#8217;s tool. Jim could feel the<br />
tightening in his loins that always preceded his climax. He<br />
squeezed his buttocks together to gain deeper penetration and let<br />
his load pour into Carla&#8217;s sucking cunt hole. His spasms con-<br />
tinued as Carla continued to suck on Tom&#8217;s bone. When he had<br />
drained every last drop of fluid from his balls, he left his<br />
relaxing penis in her hole as she continued to pump. Soon Jim&#8217;s<br />
meat had lost its length and fell out of her gaping love tunnel.<br />
He heard a sigh of frustration. &#8220;Will I never be able to come?&#8221;<br />
she sighed.</p>
<p>     Jim instructed her to lie on her back and open her legs.<br />
Then he told Tom to get in the saddle and drive his bone in Carla<br />
as deep as he could. He sat on the edge of the bed and grabbed<br />
her left breast as Tom continued his efforts. Jim lifted her<br />
breast, kissed her nipple and pushed on it with his index finger<br />
as if it were a button. Carla got a look on her face that was so<br />
passionate that it temporarily frightened Tom.</p>
<p>     Immediately, Carla&#8217;s cunt began to tighten and squeezed<br />
Tom&#8217;s thick cock. &#8220;Holy christ&#8230;&#8230; I&#8217;m coming! Oh.. Fuck my wet<br />
hole, mother fucker! Fuck it hard&#8230;. Harder&#8230; Squeeze me<br />
cheeks, honey&#8230; Squeeze them hard,&#8221; she said in a jerking voice.<br />
Her eyes rolled up in her head, and she began grunting in unison<br />
with Tom&#8217;s moans. They pumped together, coming, and coming, and<br />
it seemed like it would never end. Suddenly she reached out and<br />
grabbed Jim&#8217;s cock, slammed it into her mouth, reached behind him<br />
to squeeze his ass and shoved her index finger into his rubbery<br />
anus. Jim began to come again. She drank from Jim&#8217;s pumping cock<br />
as Tom drained the last of himself into her spasming pussy lips.</p>
<p>     The three new friends collapsed into a near coma. After a<br />
what seemed like a very long time Carla roused herself and asked<br />
if anyone would like a shower. Slowly, as if awoken from hiberna-<br />
tion, Jim and Tom followed Carla into the shower where they made<br />
sure that every inch of her body was cleansed and dried. The eve-<br />
ning ended with a night cap and a promise from Carla that she<br />
would develop a new fantasy for the next time they met.</p>
<p>                    CHAPTER EIGHT &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>  Peggy had to go to Seattle to visit her sister Carol. It was<br />
quite natural for me to go to one of the local watering holes<br />
after I dropped her off at the airport. I walked in and offered<br />
my amenities to some of the patrons and took a seat. I ordered my<br />
usual drink and lit a cigarette.</p>
<p>  After only a few moments, the bartender came over and told me<br />
that I had a drink coming on the couple in the second booth. I<br />
looked up and saw Cindy, a masseuse that both Peggy and I had<br />
visited several times over the past few years. She shared my<br />
interest in hypnosis, and often used relaxation techniques in her<br />
massage therapy. Cindy looked wonderful. It seemed odd to see her<br />
out of &#8220;uniform.&#8221; She generally wore sweats when she worked. That<br />
outfit served to hide the obvious charms that she possessed. She<br />
was wearing a low cut electric blue fitted dress that hugged<br />
every lovely curve and accented her bosom, tiny waist and hips.<br />
Her lovely cleavage separated her stiffened nipples which pressed<br />
against the thin material of her dress. I walked over to her and<br />
thanked her for the drink. Cindy introduced me to a pleasant but<br />
most assuredly intoxicated Gary, her husband.</p>
<p>  They asked me to join them, and soon I was comfortably situated<br />
in the seat next to Cindy, across from Gary. Her warm thigh<br />
intermittently swayed into my own as she talked about Gary just<br />
having been promoted to district sales manager of his firm. They<br />
had been out celebrating. I had difficulty keeping my eyes off of<br />
her swaying breasts and pointed nipples.</p>
<p>  As Cindy&#8217;s thigh continued its halfhearted assault on my leg in<br />
tune with the music, I began thinking about the several times I<br />
had visited her at her health club. She was always exciting but<br />
never anything but professional. I could remember wanting her not<br />
to be professional, but none-the-less she had been. I would have<br />
been crazy not to want her. She was about 5&#8242;8&#8243; tall, dusty blond,<br />
heavy breasted with a tight waistline and lovely fanny that<br />
hinted of moving under her loose-fitting sweats like a symphony.</p>
<p>  As Gary continued to drink, I could feel her warmth touching<br />
me. Soon Cindy suggested that it was time to go. With great<br />
difficulty, Gary fumbled through his wallet and offered the<br />
server his plastic money. Upon rising to exit, Gary began to<br />
waiver and Cindy caught him with my help. I felt the weight of<br />
her right breast as I reached around Gary to hold him aloft. The<br />
flesh of her lush tit rose from the shelf of her bra to bulge<br />
freely into my sight. She looked at me and asked for my<br />
assistance getting Gary to the car. Once Gary was positioned in<br />
the front seat of the car, Cindy brushed by me and offered her<br />
full lips in gratitude for my assistance. The next move was mine.<br />
I asked if I could follow her home as Gary was beyond repair, and<br />
she would have a difficult time putting him to bed. She accepted<br />
my offer and we were off to their home.</p>
<p>  I hadn&#8217;t done that much work in recent memory. Gary was no<br />
small guy, and dead weight is hard to move. After what seemed<br />
like a very long time he was settled neatly in bed in the arms of<br />
Morpheus. Cindy and I returned to the comfort of her den and<br />
laughed at the memory the three of us had created. Her offer of a<br />
nightcap was graciously accepted before she put some music on the<br />
C.D. player and excused herself from the room. She soon returned<br />
to her own drink wearing a cute but tight-fitting pair of<br />
pajamas. They were a pink, thin cotton outfit with a trap door<br />
arrangement that left nothing to the imagination. Her heavy<br />
breasts were well outlined, and as the cotton moved over her<br />
lovely breasts, generous nipples began to perk up.</p>
<p>  And there I sat wondering whether she was aware just how crazy<br />
she was driving me as she sat down next to me on the couch. I<br />
took a long draw on my tall drink and rolled my eyes casually. As<br />
our glance met she asked me what was the matter. I told her that<br />
she was absolutely lovely in that outfit. Her response was that I<br />
was just being kind. I began to tell her that I was never kind<br />
when it came to lovely women, but I never got the words out. She<br />
pressed herself against me and her lips found mine. I felt the<br />
blood begin to rush into my growing cock.</p>
<p>  She quickly moved away and I started to apologize for being too<br />
forward. I didn&#8217;t get those words out either. She interrupted me<br />
by saying, &#8220;you don&#8217;t mind if we get just a little kinky do you,<br />
Jim ?&#8221; She walked over to the video tape camera which rested on a<br />
tripod and turned the system on. My image, sitting on the couch,<br />
soon began to appear on the large screen television. She panned<br />
the camera and the room appear to move. The camera came to rest<br />
on the fireplace at the far end of the room. She zoomed the lens<br />
of the camera so that only the fireplace filled the screen. &#8220;Have<br />
you ever watched a woman masturbate, Jim? If you don&#8217;t mind I&#8217;m<br />
going to tape this episode so we can watch it later. Just sit<br />
back and relax.&#8221;</p>
<p>  I watched Cindy walk toward the fireplace. &#8220;Don&#8217;t watch me,<br />
Jim. Watch the screen. You won&#8217;t miss anything,&#8221; she said as she<br />
continued her trip to the far end of the room. As she appeared in<br />
front of the screen, she began to roll her shoulders forcing her<br />
heavy breast to dance gently for the camera. She grabbed her tits<br />
and pushed them together letting them fall and bounce. Her hips<br />
were thrown wide, providing a shelf for her hands and her fanny<br />
was pushed back. Slowly her hands disappeared behind her ribs and<br />
gently slid down her back coming to rest on her fanny.</p>
<p>  I could see that she was unbuttoning the trap door to her<br />
pajamas. Soon she began to turn to expose her firm buttocks to<br />
the screen and my view. The cleft between her ass cheeks was deep<br />
and dark f rom this distance. I couldn&#8217;t see the bottom of her<br />
ass cheeks or her pubic garden, but my imagination started to run<br />
wild. My cock was straining inside of its trouser prison. &#8220;You<br />
can start taking t hose things off any time you like, Jim. Your<br />
poor cock will choke to death if you don&#8217;t let it breath. Do you<br />
like what you see so far?&#8221; she asked with a husky voice.</p>
<p>  I began to remove my trousers and responded, &#8220;I love it, Cindy.<br />
You&#8217;re right. If I don&#8217;t get these things off soon, my cock will<br />
explode. Please continue. Your ass is absolutely beautiful.&#8221;</p>
<p>  Cindy crossed her arms in front of herself, grabbed the waist<br />
band of her top and lifted the pajamas top from her body. As she<br />
pulled the top over her head, her ample breasts danced for the<br />
camera. Next her thumbs were hooked inside of her bottoms and<br />
they were pealed from her ribbed belly, her pubic mound, her<br />
muscular thighs and off her feet. She turned a forty-five degree<br />
angle from the cam era as she bent over to pull the elastic band<br />
anklets free. I could see her breasts dip to inverted mountains<br />
of flesh. Her hips and profile of her buttocks was driving me<br />
wild. I began to stroke my fuck pole as she assumed an indian<br />
style sitting position. She had a wonderful full crop of curly<br />
pubic hair. It began low on her shapely belly and promised a<br />
great texture as it disappeared between the darkness of her long<br />
thighs.</p>
<p>  Her chest bent forward, her eyes closed and she cupped her<br />
dangling tits. Thumbs and forefingers started to gently twist her<br />
growing dark brown nipples. A moan escaped her slightly parted<br />
lips as s he continued to roll these dark rubbery marbles. &#8220;Oh<br />
fuck, Jim. My nipples are so hard thinking about your lips and<br />
teeth on them. I can almost feel you pulling on them and sucking<br />
them like a hungry baby. I can feel your hands lifting my heavy<br />
tits and squeezing them tightly. Do you like the way they wiggle<br />
and bounce when I move? How about this. Do you like the way they<br />
look when I lean back a nd they spread over my chest?&#8221; she asked<br />
with a seductive voice.</p>
<p>  &#8220;I can almost taste your thick brown nipples between my teeth.<br />
I had no idea that this could be so exciting. My cock is so hard.<br />
Your heavy tit sacks look wonderful regardless of what position<br />
their in. My imagination is running wild now. I can imagine them<br />
hanging heavily as you are on your knees offering me your ass. I<br />
love to fuck dog style and reach under you and hold your lovely<br />
breasts. It also gives me access to your hard clit. Would you<br />
like me to fuck you on your knees while I play with your tits and<br />
rub your clit?&#8221; I asked as I watched her hands travel over her<br />
stomach and head toward the dark patch of pubic hair.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Oh fuck. I can see your cock bone sliding in and out of my<br />
split hairy pussy. When you pull it out, it is all covered with<br />
my creamy juices. When you push it back in, it pulls some of my<br />
cunt hair in with it and increases the friction of our fuck. When<br />
its driven deep, our pubic hair mix together,&#8221; she continued her<br />
verbal love making.</p>
<p>  I was stroking my cock meat as I watched her enter her cunt<br />
hole with her fingers. She leaned back on her haunches, and her<br />
tits were swaying back and forth. One hand reached up to feel the<br />
weight of her thick tit. She removed her fingers from her leaking<br />
pussy, looked up at me and put her fingers in her mouth, sucking<br />
and licking the honey from them. Slowly she reached behind her to<br />
a box resting on the lip of the fireplace. She reached inside the<br />
box and removed a large flesh colored dildo. It was almost eight<br />
inches in length and had heavy balls attached to it. At the<br />
bottom was a switch. She placed it into her mouth to add<br />
lubricant to it as well as to excite me. The surrogate cock was<br />
lowered and placed at the entrance to her greasy hairy pussy. She<br />
closed her eyes, threw her he ad back and put the first couple of<br />
inches into her slippery box. The sight was driving me crazy.<br />
  Deeper and deeper it went until she was completely impaled on<br />
its length. She sat on it fully and rocked back and forth as she<br />
pinched frantically at her thick rubbery nipples. &#8220;Oh fuck, baby.<br />
This is good. The vibrations are driving me insane. Now I&#8217;m going<br />
to turn it on high speed, Jim. Imagine that it&#8217;s your strong bone<br />
in my tight slippery cunt hole. Wouldn&#8217;t you love to pinch my<br />
fucking hard nipples? Wouldn&#8217;t you love to suck my big tits and<br />
squeeze my ass cheeks? Well, you&#8217;re going to mother fucker. Go<br />
ahead and stroke that bone, cunt lapper. You&#8217;re soon going to<br />
pour all of that hot sticky fuck cream on my tits, my ass and in<br />
my fucking guts. I want gallons of that hot fuck juice in my<br />
mouth,&#8221; Cindy spoke in well-defined words in an effort to<br />
increase my excitement.</p>
<p>  Her hands continued to manipulate her exquisite breasts, and<br />
soon her eyes shot wide open and then rolled up in her head. She<br />
looked lovely as she began her climb to ecstasy. &#8220;Oh, mother<br />
fucker, I&#8217;m cuming! Oh shit, this fuck&#8217;n rod in my pussy feels<br />
wonderful. Soon your thick cock will be buried in my furry hole.<br />
I want to suck that bone, and I want you to stick your tongue in<br />
my honey pot, honey. Get over here,&#8221; she demanded.</p>
<p>  I didn&#8217;t require any further direction. I rose and approached<br />
her with my rod bouncing up and down in time with my steps. My<br />
hot nuts were tight against my body because their swelling<br />
increased by the hot scene unfolding in front of me. I reached<br />
down and pulled her to her feet. She extracted the still<br />
vibrating dildo, and turned it off with one short movement,<br />
discarding it on the floor. My lips quickly found hers and her<br />
hot tongue entered my sucking mouth. I could feel her moist mound<br />
come in contact with my thigh as my stiff fuckstick stabbed into<br />
her belly. A moan escaped her hungry lips and traveled into the<br />
depths of my lungs. Cindy&#8217;s resilient breast globes pressed their<br />
erect nipples into the hair of my chest. My trembling hands<br />
reached behind her to treat themselves to the rippling mounds of<br />
ass cheeks.</p>
<p>  My thick cock continued to grow and deposit small trails of<br />
silvery fluid on her well-shaped stomach muscles. Suddenly she<br />
reached between us and began to pinch and twist both of my stiff<br />
nipples. My fingers could feel her perspiration begin to travel<br />
down the smooth crack of her ass. The smell of her hot sex rose<br />
to invade my nose, increasing my excitement. Maintaining a firm<br />
grip on her strong buttocks, I reached up to feel the weight of<br />
her heavy breast as it teased by chest. My fingers then traveled<br />
down to the forest of thick cunt hair to find her oily, pouting<br />
pussy lips spread with excitement. I gathered her hot emissions<br />
and began to smear them between her legs and over her finely<br />
textured fanny.</p>
<p>  &#8220;I need you to eat my cunt, Jim. Will you put your lips on my<br />
hot pussy and drive your tongue inside of my fuck hole?&#8221; she<br />
asked between pants.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Lay down, sweetheart. Let me taste your honey pot. I can&#8217;t<br />
wait to smell your sex. I need to drink your cum,&#8221; I said as I<br />
slowly lowered her to the carpeting in front of the fireplace.<br />
Placing my hands behind her strong thighs, I gently spread her<br />
legs to reveal her glorious, hair-shrouded vulva. A pink, flower<br />
appeared in front of my hungry eyes. She had such a beautiful,<br />
wet pussy. I smelled the fragrance of her heat and began to<br />
breath heavily onto her hairy cunt hole. She began to moan and<br />
lift her hips to expedite her joy. I continued to tease her<br />
leaking hole with my hot breath and intermittently dip the tip of<br />
my tongue into her body.</p>
<p>  She jammed my cock bone into her mouth in one fell swoop. As I<br />
felt the tip of my love tool lodge in her moaning throat, I was<br />
compelled to shove my tongue deep into her hole and completely<br />
cover t he lips of her pussy with my lips. We were locked in an<br />
embrace, our mouths filled with one another&#8217;s genitals. She<br />
rocked her hips in and out against my mouth, and I continued to<br />
drive my fucker between her sucking lips. Suddenly I stopped. I<br />
didn&#8217;t want it to end this quickly. I would have spilled my seed<br />
into her sucking mouth if I pumped once more.</p>
<p>  &#8220;I don&#8217;t want to blow yet, Cindy. Just let me look at you for a<br />
minute,&#8221; I said as I rolled over and filled my eyes with her<br />
lovely, aroused flesh. She grasped her breasts, lifted them to my<br />
gaze a nd began to roll the nipples with her fingers. She had the<br />
look of a hungry animal on her face. She smiled and stood in<br />
front of me. Her hands continued to travel her body from her<br />
heavy breasts to her rounded ass cheeks as she turned around for<br />
me. I didn&#8217;t dare touch my raging cock for fear that it would go<br />
off.</p>
<p>  &#8220;I think you need a drink, Jim. I&#8217;ll be right back,&#8221; she<br />
whispered as her legs stretched into a slow gait toward the bar.<br />
The fire painted each lovely curve during her short journey. As<br />
her hot body moved the shadows of the flame from the fireplace<br />
danced and frolicked across her taunt skin. She returned to my<br />
side and offered me another glass of cool wine. &#8220;You can take a<br />
short break and then you&#8217;re in for trouble, mother fucker. Do you<br />
like it when I call you mother fucker? Do you like it when I talk<br />
to you about fucking and sucking?&#8221; she asked as her body lowered<br />
itself into its seated position. I loved the way her breast sacks<br />
swayed as she negotiated her wine glass and sat down.</p>
<p>  &#8220;It drives me wild her hear your hot words. Each time you utter<br />
a sound to me, I turn to fucking butter and I think about your<br />
butter pouring out all over my cock bone,&#8221; I teased back.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Well then finish that wine, cunt-lapper. I don&#8217;t care if you<br />
cum quickly. The next time you&#8217;ll last even longer; and there<br />
will be a next time. I&#8217;m not going to let you out of here until<br />
I&#8217;m done,&#8221; she threatened in mock fashion.</p>
<p>  The wine was soon gone, and I found her lips wrapped around my<br />
torpedo once again. I filled my hands with the cheeks of her ass<br />
and began to lather her up to drive my pole to her depths. She<br />
grasped my stretched penis roughly and ran her teeth slowly and<br />
softly over its purple head. My tongue dipped between the well<br />
defined gully between her pubic hair patch. The texture of her<br />
cunt hair felt good on my slowly moving tongue, and the smell of<br />
her womanhood was intoxicating. I pushed it into the pink<br />
crevice, gathered up her thick juices and deposited them on the<br />
lips of her swollen vulva. &#8220;I can&#8217;t take it any longer, Jim. You<br />
have to stick your fuck stick into my cunt hole, now,&#8221; she cried.<br />
&#8220;Fuck me, you wonderful cunt lapper. Bury your pole in my slimy,<br />
hairy cunt.&#8221; I rolled onto my back and pulled her toward me. She<br />
had a hungry look on her face and didn&#8217;t take her eyes off my<br />
bone. I watched as her ample breasts sway as she moved herself<br />
into position over my thick penis. My<br />
 eyes traveled to the point of imminent contact, and I saw her<br />
pink quim peak out of the wet hair that surrounded it. She<br />
grabbed the head of my tool and placed it neatly between the<br />
swollen lips of her pussy. I could feel the slippery skin of her<br />
twat painting the helmet of my bone. She rubbed it between her<br />
legs to prepare it for penetration. All the while her lovely tits<br />
continued to dance for me. Her nipples were like sharp, angry<br />
darts seeking a target. My hands reached up, lifted their weight,<br />
squeezed and kneaded the flesh and allowed them to fall again to<br />
bounce and jiggle.</p>
<p>  Quickly, my cock bone was buried to its limit. She grunted<br />
furiously and began to fuck her hips back and forth over my<br />
hidden hammer. The texture of the skin of her hips was beautiful<br />
as she continued to ride my monster. My hands moved back and<br />
forth between her magnificent mammaries to her strong buttocks.<br />
Each time my hands fell into the crack of her ass where it met<br />
her honey pot, they became soaked with her love cream. I smeared<br />
it over the cheeks of her ass and on her swollen nipples. The<br />
sensation of my slippery hands, greased with her fluids, gliding<br />
over her stiff nipples was to much for her to take.</p>
<p>  Cindy let out a muffled squeal and became as rigid as a board.<br />
Her eyes widened, as if in fear, and her mouth remained open in a<br />
soundless scream. Her rocking continued as the muscles of her<br />
love sleeve gripped the meat of my driving cock. Her words came<br />
in a jerking fashion, &#8220;fuck&#8230;. me&#8230;. fuck the&#8230;. shit out<br />
of&#8230;. me, mother&#8230;. fucker. Suck on my tits. I accommodated her<br />
every demand, with glee, as well as I could. I couldn&#8217;t take my<br />
eyes from her passion-ridden face. Her teeth were clenched as she<br />
continued, &#8220;drive that cock in me. I want it all. I want your<br />
cum. Shoot your hot load.&#8221;</p>
<p>  That&#8217;s all I needed to cause my explosion. I could feel the cum<br />
begin its journey from the depths of my hairy balls as my eyes<br />
returned to her heaving tits. My nuts tightened, my cock became<br />
as rigid as it had ever been, and my cream started to travel up<br />
the shaft of my hose. &#8220;Ride it, you lovely bitch. Ride my cock<br />
while I squeeze your beautiful ass cheeks. Pour your cream in my<br />
lap and feel my dick in your greasy pussy,&#8221; I said as my eyes<br />
involuntarily rolled back in my head. My buttocks tightened as I<br />
drove my bone one last time into her wet heaven. I could feel the<br />
cum shooting into her guts and further lubricating my shaft. She<br />
continued to ride as if my bone would never go away. The overflow<br />
of my juice began to spill from her tensing pussy and collect on<br />
my burning balls. This was some remarkable woman. I could only<br />
wonder why I had never pursued this lovely creature before. She<br />
had collapsed on me, and we rolled over so that she remained<br />
cradled in my arms with her face buried in my chest.</p>
<p>  After a short period, she stirred and asked, &#8220;are you ready for<br />
round two, stud-puppy? She began to rub her breasts against my<br />
belly and grind her wet box against my leg. &#8220;We can get ourselves<br />
worked up again by watching our little movie, if you would like.&#8221;</p>
<p>  I had never seen myself fuck before. I thought it would be<br />
great to see that. &#8220;Be my guest,&#8221; I said as I waved with one hand<br />
in the direction of the video player. She got up slowly and<br />
sensuously moved toward the video equipment. She put the system<br />
on rewind, recovered the remote control and went to the bar to<br />
get us another drink. As we sat there sipping and cuddling, she<br />
put pushed the play button on the remote, and we settled in to<br />
see this new epic.</p>
<p>  I couldn&#8217;t believe how vivid the display was. Here I was<br />
sitting with this lovely woman, watching her masturbate for me.<br />
Soon my cock began to stir and grow to its previous heights. I<br />
played with her tits and her ass flesh while I watched the T.V.<br />
screen.</p>
<p>  Her long fingernails reached for my nipples and started to<br />
tease them. My hand was resting in the moist crack of her ass,<br />
squeezing the flesh of her buttocks. &#8220;I love the look on your<br />
face as the dildo is moving in and out of your hairy pussy,<br />
Cindy,&#8221; I whispered in her ear as her cream continued to fill my<br />
hand.</p>
<p>  &#8220;And I love the way your cock grows when you watch me on the<br />
screen. Your cock feels to good in my hand. Watch how it<br />
continues to get harder as we talk about it. See how the head is<br />
becoming more smooth and deeper in color. Let me polish it for<br />
you a little bit, Jim,&#8221; she said as she turned to place it in her<br />
mouth. My fingers dipped deeper inside of her hairy, wet honey<br />
pot as her lips glided over the head of my stiff organ. Then she<br />
pulled it out and began rubbing it over her rubbery nipples.</p>
<p>  To my utter surprise and infinite joy, I suddenly felt the<br />
vibrator slip into her slippery pussy beside my probing fingers.<br />
She drove it in deep as her lips returned to my raging penis. We<br />
twisted into a &#8220;69&#8243; position and my nose was soon offered the<br />
fragrance of her twat. My eyes watched the dildo searching her<br />
depths along side my fingers. In and out it went. Up and down the<br />
moist crack it t raveled, teasing the swollen clit. Suddenly, she<br />
withdrew the intruding vibrator, turned it off and bore down on<br />
my thrusting hand and twisting fingers.</p>
<p>  My mouth went to her dark pink clit and my tongue started to<br />
provide stimulation. Her lips were traveling up and down the<br />
length of my expanded member, and all of a sudden, I felt<br />
something pressing on my anal passage. The pressure continued to<br />
increase, and I could feel something entering my ass hole. Then<br />
it dawned on he what it was when she turned it on again. It was<br />
the vibrator. It rattled my buns and relaxed my rear passage as<br />
it continued to travel inward. The sensation was unbelievable as<br />
she twisted it to rub its base against my hairy balls as it<br />
invaded my bung hole. I could feel my thick penis continue to<br />
grow in her sucking mouth. &#8220;How do you like it, mother fucker?&#8221;<br />
she asked as she continued her gentle assault on my ass.</p>
<p>  My answer was wordless but definite. I began to rock my hips<br />
back and forth serving to both bury my cock further into her<br />
mouth and drive the plastic cock up my ass. Her tool became more<br />
lubricated as the time progressed, and she began to twist it<br />
while she drove it deeper and deeper. Soon, her toy was buried<br />
deeply in my ass, and she turned the vibration up to a heavy hum.<br />
My fucking rod, as if with a mind of its own, began a slow, long<br />
vibration, consisting of one long spurt after another. I was<br />
coming in a fashion that I was unfamiliar with. It seemed to come<br />
from my toes and rock my b rain. My cum ridden balls were slowly<br />
pumping gobs of thick cream into her sucking mouth. It was as if<br />
I had no control over it or nothing to say about it.</p>
<p>  As my vibrations continued, I filled my hands with slippery ass<br />
cheeks and drove my tongue deep within her gushing pussy. The<br />
aroma was wonderful. The scent of her hairy cunt hole filled my<br />
senses, and everything seemed to be happening in slow motion. She<br />
continued her efforts long after her own climax shook her body<br />
within my clutching hands; long after she drank all of my sticky<br />
juice. I was soaking wet with perspiration. Her heavy breasts<br />
slid back and forth over my hairy belly as she settled in to<br />
relax against my spent body.</p>
<p>  With a husky voice she asked, &#8220;How was that for a little<br />
variety, honey? Have you ever had a vibrator between these tight<br />
buns?&#8221;</p>
<p>  I spoke with difficulty, &#8220;I don&#8217;t think I have ever had a<br />
feeling quite like that. It was great. I came longer than I ever<br />
did. The smell of your sweet pussy, the feel of your ass meat in<br />
my hands, and the feel of my cock lodged deep in your throat<br />
drove my over the edge. You are fucking unbelievable, Cindy.&#8221;</p>
<p>  &#8220;Well, it wasn&#8217;t bad for round one. There are a couple of ways<br />
to look at it,&#8221; she said as rested her head on my thigh. &#8220;If this<br />
turns out to be a boxing match, we will have eleven or fourteen<br />
rounds to go, depending on which league you follow. If we relate<br />
it to pussy, I still have eight lives. But I would much rather<br />
think of it in terms of the encyclopedia, and tonight we only<br />
touched on the &#8216;As.&#8217; Let&#8217;s hope that Gary gets promoted early and<br />
often.&#8221;</p>
<p>  &#8220;Now wake up feeling wonderful and remember everything, Jim,&#8221;<br />
Peggy said as she brought me out of my trance.</p>
<p>  Turn about is fair play, I thought as I shook my head in<br />
understanding.</p>
<p>                    CHAPTER NINE &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     It had been a lousy week for Peggy. Faced with the prospect<br />
of closing her boutique due to falling sales and not having found<br />
a job as yet, she was depressed. Her children, away at college<br />
seemed to be unusually demanding, and it seemed that she couldn&#8217;t<br />
get anything accomplished. She was convinced that she needed some<br />
diversion. It didn&#8217;t take long for her to realize that the only<br />
thing that ever made the ugly world go away was the gut wrenching<br />
orgasms that she had from time to time. Fast and furious fucking<br />
would likely be her only salvation from the confusion that she<br />
was currently feeling.</p>
<p>     Although she had better and more frequent climaxes when they<br />
used hypnosis, she sometimes became concerned that Jim loved fan-<br />
tasy more than he did her.    She preferred normal, fantasy-free<br />
sex with Jim, but she knew that fantasy sex was his biggest<br />
turn-on. He was obsessed with the thought of another man putting<br />
his hands on her smooth breasts. His cock stayed as stiff as a<br />
board each time he thought about another man sucking on her per-<br />
fect pink nipples.</p>
<p>     Her mind wandered at the sexy thoughts that began to invade<br />
her mind. She thought about the many conversations that she and<br />
Jim had over the years. He always assured her that she was excit-<br />
ing and that it was a matter of pride. He wanted every man to<br />
want her; to see her naked, exciting body; to taste her fragrant<br />
honey pot; to hold her round, smooth buttocks in their hands. He<br />
almost came each time he thought of another man&#8217;s long, thick<br />
cock bone pounding inside of her twisting belly. That did it. She<br />
would hint to Jim that tonight should be a fantasy night. Tonight<br />
she needed to escape with Jim into her deepest fantasies.</p>
<p>     Peggy called Jim at work and asked if he would be able to<br />
come home early tonight. He responded by saying that he would try<br />
to be home early and questioned her as to whether anything was<br />
wrong or if she needed anything. &#8220;Just you Jim. Ya know, I think<br />
tonight might be the night for us to escape into a wonderful fan-<br />
tasy. Do you think you might be interested?&#8221; she inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Did you have anything particular in mind, honey?&#8221; Jim asked<br />
as his mind and body began to react to the thought.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I think that tonight I need to be a fucking slut. I need to<br />
meet an absolute stranger&#8230; Richard Gear&#8230; Ya, Richard Gear<br />
should fuck my brains out tonight. I need to have his hands on<br />
me. I want him to such my big tits and make me come all over his<br />
face. He can bring as many friends as he would like,&#8221; she of-<br />
fered, knowing that she was driving Jim wild with anticipation.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;ll be home very early, honey. We can have a little light<br />
dinner and dip into our minds as well as our bodies. Start to im-<br />
agine thick, long cocks surrounding you, touching your skin, in-<br />
vading your hot mouth and your dark hairy cunt hole,&#8221; Jim began<br />
to tease as his bone began to leave traces of his excitement in<br />
his pants.</p>
<p>     Now it was Jim&#8217;s turn to think of all of the wonderful pos-<br />
sibilities that lay ahead. Although he had experienced a few af-<br />
fairs over the years, never had he found any woman that could ex-<br />
cite him as much as Peggy could. Her body was perfect for him. He<br />
had made love with women that had larger breasts, but Peggy&#8217;s<br />
were perfect. They looked perfect, felt perfect and tasted per-<br />
fect. It may have been her reaction to Jim&#8217;s attention to her<br />
breasts. He wasn&#8217;t sure. He only knew that her tits exciting him<br />
more than any others.</p>
<p>     He had probed the depths of other women&#8217;s love tunnels, but<br />
never did his cock get harder than with Peggy. It could have been<br />
the well-defined lines of her lovely pubic patch. Maybe it was<br />
the appearance of her fat cunt lips as they became excited and<br />
full of anticipation. It could have been the taste of her sweet<br />
pussy nectar. Again, he wasn&#8217;t sure. He only knew that she was<br />
the best. Peggy loved to climax, and just the look on her face<br />
when she got off drove Jim wild.</p>
<p>     Peggy was blessed with the most lovely set of buttocks. Her<br />
small but fleshy buns wiggled so nicely when she walked. It drove<br />
him wild to fill his hands with ass flesh when he drove his cock<br />
bone deep into her gyrating  cunt. She loved to feel his strong<br />
hands squeeze hard as they fucked fast and furious.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s cock was so hard thinking about Peggy&#8217;s lovely body<br />
and about the prospect of her fucking someone else for him that<br />
his hard cock almost went off in his pants. He had a raging<br />
hard-on. He tried to hide it as he walked out to his secretary&#8217;s<br />
desk to drop off a letter to be typed. He must not have been suc-<br />
cessful because her eyes seems to be riveted to his crotch. She<br />
looked away, raised her eye brows slightly and smiled. It must<br />
have been obvious to her that Jim&#8217;s mind wasn&#8217;t currently on<br />
work. &#8220;I&#8217;ll be leaving a bit early today. Please just take mes-<br />
sages and make excuses for me,&#8221; Jim requested.</p>
<p>     His secretary suggested with a chuckle as she walked over to<br />
the copy machine that, &#8220;it may be a good idea to relax for a<br />
little while and get your mind off the job. I&#8217;ll hold down the<br />
fort.&#8221; She put a little extra wiggle in her ass, obviously think-<br />
ing about what he would be up to.</p>
<p>     The garage door opened as Jim pulled into the driveway.<br />
Having parked the car, he extracted the flowers and candy that he<br />
had acquired on the way home. He danced up the steps and into the<br />
house as he announced that he was home. Setting down the candy,<br />
he began looked for a vase for the flowers. A little water in the<br />
vase and a slight spay on the blooms offered and pleasant picture<br />
of the arrangement. Jim set down the vase on the dinning room<br />
table and noticed that it was set for two. There was a pleasant<br />
aroma as he passed through the kitchen. He reached for the oven<br />
door and heard Peggy coming down the hall from the bedroom. &#8220;Hey,<br />
get out of the oven before you ruin our dinner,&#8221; she said with a<br />
chuckle.</p>
<p>     Jim looked up to see one of the most lovely sights he could<br />
remember. Peggy was standing there with an extremely low-cut yel-<br />
low blouse, a tight, light green skirt, lace hose and high heels.<br />
Her breasts were accented so well and her cleavage seemed to<br />
beckon to him. The high heels promoted her lovely buttocks in<br />
such a way as to make Jim want to touch them immediately. What<br />
great legs, he thought. &#8220;First, you are going to go get out of<br />
that suit, put something more comfortable on and I&#8217;ll make you a<br />
cocktail. Dinner will be ready soon and we can get down to<br />
business,&#8221; Peggy directed him as she swayed toward the cabinet<br />
where the liquor was kept. Jim smiled, walked up behind her,<br />
filled his hands with her breasts and placed his cock against her<br />
well shaped ass.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Yes young lady; whatever you say,&#8221; he teased as he headed<br />
for the bedroom. Soon he reappeared and found his drink waiting<br />
for him. Peggy sauntered over to the table with a glass of white<br />
wine in her hand. She seemed to glide, and she knew that she was<br />
beginning to drive Jim wild. She was proud of her breasts, but<br />
embarrassed to let anyone else see them. Jim had often prompted<br />
her to show off a little, but rarely did she ever offer her<br />
charms to any one else&#8217;s view.</p>
<p>     Soon dinner was ready, set and consumed. Peggy had done a<br />
wonderful job. She didn&#8217;t overdo it. There was just enough to<br />
suppress their hunger and not weigh them down.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Jim, I know that you would like to see me making love with<br />
someone else, and I think I understand why. Tonight I would like<br />
you to hypnotize me, make me a prostitute and watch me get<br />
fucked. I want to forget about anything and everything all night.<br />
I just want to come until I pass out. Can we do that?&#8221; she asked<br />
pleadingly.</p>
<p>     &#8220;It excites me beyond words to hear you say that. You are<br />
going to get so much cock tonight, you may never want it again,&#8221;<br />
Jim whispered.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t think that&#8217;s possible, honey. I don&#8217;t think I can<br />
ever get enough cock. I want to eat it, suck it, fuck it and rub<br />
jism all over my aching tits. I want to feel that hot, thick,<br />
sticky jelly running down the crack of my ass. I want it all,&#8221;<br />
she assured him.</p>
<p>     Jim told her to get comfortable in the chair, and he induced<br />
the trance state in no time at all. &#8220;When you awaken, you will<br />
find yourself in a lounge having a glass of wine. You are a pros-<br />
titute. You don&#8217;t fuck simply for money. You do it because you<br />
are a horny woman that can&#8217;t seem to get enough cock. You will be<br />
approached by one or more men and asked to dance. Jim will be in<br />
the lounge, and he will be able to see everything that goes on.<br />
You will try your best to excite him by the way you interact with<br />
whoever you are dancing with. The man who agrees to pay you five<br />
hundred dollars will look and sound like Richard Gear. You will<br />
ask him to show you his money. He will show you five one hundred<br />
dollar monopoly bills and you will see them as real money. You<br />
will direct him to follow you, knowing that Jim will be able to<br />
see everything that happens. He will accompany you to your<br />
bedroom and the rest is up to you. When I snap my fingers once,<br />
you will awaken and remember everything as if it actually hap-<br />
pened. Do you understand everything that I have told you?&#8221; Jim<br />
inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Yes. I understand,&#8221; Peggy spoke softly. Jim went to the<br />
game chest and retrieved the monopoly money.</p>
<p>     &#8220;At the count of three wake up feeling wonderful, sexy and<br />
extremely horny. One&#8230;. Tow&#8230;. Three&#8230;. Wake up; you are in<br />
the lounge,&#8221; Jim instructed.</p>
<p>     Jim moved over to the breakfast counter and sat on a stool.<br />
He looked over at Peggy, and she threw him a seductive glance.<br />
She crossed her legs in an inviting manner and bounced her foot.<br />
Soon Jim stood up and walked over to the table. &#8220;Would you care<br />
to dance?&#8221; he asked.</p>
<p>     Peggy responded as she was getting to her feet displaying<br />
her cleavage to its best advantage, &#8220;I would love to.&#8221;</p>
<p>     The music played softly as Peggy fell into Jim&#8217;s arms. She<br />
looked up into his eyes as she pressed her breasts into his<br />
stomach. Jim had difficulty keeping his eyes off her breasts. He<br />
could feel her press the mound of her pussy into his leg as she<br />
seductively swayed with the music.</p>
<p>     Peggy&#8217;s mind was on fire. She knew that Jim was someplace in<br />
the lounge watching her dance with this man. Suddenly, she felt<br />
his hand on the swell of her hip. Then it began to travel<br />
downward and rest on her buttock; smoothing her flesh first and<br />
then slightly squeezing it. She imagined Jim&#8217;s cock getting hard<br />
at the sight. The music soon came to an end and they parted with<br />
mutual thank yous.</p>
<p>     The next soft song came on the radio, and she was approached<br />
by another man. She accepted his offer to dance and walked with<br />
him hand in hand. This man started out holding her at a distance.<br />
She was sure that it was not because he didn&#8217;t want to touch her,<br />
but rather because he wanted to get a good look at her lovely<br />
breasts. He did not take his eyes off her bulging tits. &#8220;Do you<br />
like the way my breasts look?&#8221; she asked the stranger.</p>
<p>     Jim responded, &#8220;you have the most lovely tits I can recall<br />
seeing. My name is Roger. What is your name?</p>
<p>     &#8220;Peggy. If you like the way they look, you should feel them<br />
against your chest,&#8221; she said as she pressed them into his large<br />
frame. Again she began pressing her pussy mound into his leg. She<br />
could feel the warmth develop between her legs as her hot nectar<br />
began to flow. She felt his cock growing and resting against her<br />
belly. She was so hot now, and she knew that she was putting on a<br />
great show for Jim.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Do you think that we might be able to find a place a little<br />
quieter so we can get to know one another,&#8221; asked the man she was<br />
dancing with.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t mean to disappoint you, Roger, but I am a working<br />
girl. If you owned a candy story, it wouldn&#8217;t be good business to<br />
give it away; now would it.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;You mean you are a prostitute?&#8221; he asked incredulously.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I hope I haven&#8217;t offended you, but that&#8217;s what I do for a<br />
living. And I do it very well. I do it $500.00 well,&#8221; she said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;m not usually given to paying for pussy, but I really<br />
have to feel you next to me. I would love to employ you,&#8221; he said<br />
with a wicked grin.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Business first, Roger. Let me see the color of your money,<br />
and we will make the necessary arrangements.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Roger&#8221; showed Peggy his &#8220;money&#8221; and she smiled. &#8220;Follow me,<br />
Roger. I think this is going to be a very interesting experience<br />
for both of us,&#8221; she said with excitement, knowing that Jim would<br />
be able to see every move that both of them made.</p>
<p>     In what seemed like only moments they were in the bedroom<br />
undressing one another. Peggy could feel her love nectar begin to<br />
drip out of her hairy cunt lips and down her leg. Her nipples<br />
seemed to be on fire. She longed to have a tongue lick them to<br />
put out the fire. She could almost feel tight lips nibbling on<br />
her large pink marbles. She saw Roger&#8217;s huge cock standing at at-<br />
tention and needed to feel it in her mouth. Peggy laid down on<br />
the bed and Roger approached the side of the bed pointing the<br />
direction with his erect penis.</p>
<p>     Roger moved on his knees, forward to Peggy&#8217;s head, his hard<br />
thrusting cock standing stiffly from his belly, pointing at her<br />
soft lips. Peggy rested her upper torso weight on one arm, lift-<br />
ing the other, held his cock aiming it to her mouth, resting the<br />
head on her pink tipped tongue.</p>
<p>     Roger held her face tenderly between his open palms, lifting<br />
her head slightly, centering his cock at her questing lips,<br />
slowly slid his cock between her full lips deep into her mouth.<br />
His cock drove deeper, and Peggy began to breathe through her<br />
nose as his prick slid over her tongue. Her lips stretched wider<br />
as his cock moved until his bulbous glans reached the back of her<br />
throat, then with just a little more pressure, moved into the<br />
narrow opening and lodged.</p>
<p>     Peggy fought down the urge to gag, then swallowed, caressing<br />
the head of his prick with the muscles of her throat. Quickly<br />
learning to deep throat the throbbing prick in her mouth, Peggy<br />
began swallowing and constricting her throat muscles around the<br />
head of his deeply lodged prick.</p>
<p>     Each time Roger withdrew his prick, Peggy would relax, then<br />
as his cock delved deep into her throat, Peggy would swallow,<br />
giving his cock intense pleasure.</p>
<p>     As Roger turned over and laid on his back, Peggy settled be-<br />
tween his open thighs. She leaned forward and took his cock be-<br />
tween her lips, sucking at the knobby head and drawing the full<br />
length of his prick into her warm wet mouth. Quickly, his prick<br />
filled with blood, filling her oral cavity until she could no<br />
longer hold it all inside her mouth and began to kiss the bulbous<br />
head and run her flickering tongue around the tip. Holding the<br />
pulsating head of his prick inside her sucking lips, she lapped<br />
at his hard prick from balls to glans, and her hands were at his<br />
balls, gently caressing and fondling.</p>
<p>     Peggy pulled Roger&#8217;s prick from her hot lips, looking at it<br />
closely, noting that the head of his cock was bright red and<br />
swollen until it glistened both with her saliva and the pounding<br />
blood filling his organ. She slipped her fingers down to feel his<br />
balls again, and found them drawn up tight and hard. Knowing that<br />
he was about to come, Peggy slipped her hot lipped mouth over the<br />
head again, swirling her tongue over the glans, and driving the<br />
tip of her tongue into the hole at the end.</p>
<p>     Peggy suckled at his pounding, stiff prick, circling the<br />
base of his root with her lightly clutching fingers as she felt<br />
the surge of sperm expanding his cock. The sticky jelly spurted<br />
and rolled from his cock. Peggy pulled her mouth away quickly and<br />
aimed Roger&#8217;s spurting organ at her full titties, watching the<br />
juice spatter and cling on her full trembling globes. As Roger&#8217;s<br />
prick spent it&#8217;s last drop, Peggy rubbed the glistening jism into<br />
the softness of her tits.</p>
<p>     Trailing a wet stream of cum, Peggy put his cock back in her<br />
mouth and sucked, compressing her lips around the shaft of his<br />
prick, effectively milking it of any remaining drops of sticky<br />
sperm, until it pulled free of her still sucking lips with an<br />
audible noise.</p>
<p>     Peggy left the room and returned shortly with wine for her<br />
and a cocktail for Jim. Even after he had spent his cream, he<br />
couldn&#8217;t take his eyes off of Peggy&#8217;s ass as it rolled when she<br />
walked. As she set down his drink he watched her breasts sway.<br />
They kissed deeply after they finished their drinks.</p>
<p>     Peggy posed wonderfully on the bed next to &#8220;Roger.&#8221; What a<br />
vision, he thought. He could feel his rod begin to lengthen once<br />
again. Rolling over Roger found himself between Peggy&#8217;s legs. He<br />
lifted one large tit to his mouth and began to suck gently on her<br />
nipple. A moan escaped her full lips as his hands began to mas-<br />
sage her breast meat. As Roger sucked harder on her tight<br />
pinkish-red nipples, her moans increased. His tongue began to<br />
trail down between her ample breasts to her soft belly as he<br />
twirled her nipples between his forefingers and thumbs.</p>
<p>     Peggy could feel his nose brush through her pubic hair in<br />
his effort to avail himself of her fragrance. Electric shocks<br />
poured through her as she reminder herself that Jim was watching<br />
this man put his face into her womanhood. Roger&#8217;s hands had left<br />
her breasts to fill themselves with her soft, round buttocks. She<br />
placed her own hands on her titties, cupped them tenderly and<br />
began teasing her big nipples.</p>
<p>     The pink wet flesh glowed and glistened in the subdued<br />
lighting and the shadowed darkness, and Roger placed his tongue,<br />
pointed stiffly, into her clit at the top of her wet cunt, nuz-<br />
zling at her wirey, sticky pubic hairs, and the hot slippery<br />
opening.</p>
<p>     Licking with his tongue, Roger attempted to savor all of the<br />
rich sticky juices now pouring from Peggy&#8217;s pussy, moving his<br />
head until he was able to touch the wet pulpy softness of the<br />
pussy beneath his tongue. Roger darted forward, his tongue<br />
slithering over Peggy&#8217;s curly hair and wet, open slit.</p>
<p>     The sensation of Roger&#8217;s tongue on Peggy&#8217;s hot clit, brought<br />
Peggy to orgasm with wild, fast movements. Her body arching from<br />
the mattress as Roger&#8217;s tongue laved over her clit. As Peggy con-<br />
vulsed she grabbed his head and held it tightly to her hole.<br />
Roger&#8217;s sharp tongue drove deeply into her honey pit as he<br />
squeezed her shaking buttocks.</p>
<p>     Roger drew himself up and climbed toward Peggy as she lay<br />
shaking slightly from her recent eruption. As she felt his hard<br />
manhood approaching her still quivering pussy, she reached out<br />
for him and came immediately to life. She wrapped her legs up-<br />
wards around the small of his back, as she felt the head of his<br />
great shaft approaching her steaming hole. She bucked her hairy<br />
cunt upwards in a frenzy to receive his cock. Her full tits<br />
quivering each time Roger&#8217;s prick drove into her cunt, her body<br />
wriggling with pleasure at the deep hard thrusts.</p>
<p>     She tossed her head backwards. Her hips were moving slightly<br />
faster, her legs clinging a little tighter to Roger&#8217;s back. She<br />
started moving her heels into Roger&#8217;s flanks, digging and spur-<br />
ring him on like a horse. Her cunt twisting and convulsing over<br />
Roger&#8217;s driving pole deep in her pussy as her tits flopped<br />
wildly. Roger began to groan, then driving his cock to the hilt<br />
against her ass, his balls tight between his legs. Peggy again<br />
began to tighten and displayed an almost frightened look on her<br />
face. This climax was earth shaking. Jolts of electricity ran<br />
through her body from her tit to her clit. She began grunting<br />
like a wild animal as she reached out, filled her hands with his<br />
buttocks and pulled him yet deeper into her fuck hole.</p>
<p>     Suddenly Roger rolled both of them over without removing his<br />
raging penis. Peggy&#8217;s full tits were quivering and shaking as she<br />
slowly slid down on Roger&#8217;s cock, burying his cock between the<br />
curly haired lips of her dripping cunt until only his heavy,<br />
hairy balls were visible. Roger&#8217;s hands held her full breasts,<br />
his fingers caressing and fondling her pink swollen nipples as<br />
his hips drove his cock slowly into the ravishing woman&#8217;s steam-<br />
ing wet cunt; her ass working in wild swinging circles as she<br />
drove her fat lipped pussy up and down the slippery hot cock.<br />
Twice Roger had to stop her motion to keep from coming prema-<br />
turely.</p>
<p>     He tapped her on her lovely pink ass as if to give her<br />
direction. Gently he pushed her off of his towering cock and<br />
asked her if he could have another drink. She consented and made<br />
another journey for refreshments, swinging her hot bottom for the<br />
benefit of his hungry eyes. Soon she returned displaying the<br />
drinks and her lovely breasts. She felt so sexy and knew that<br />
Roger and Jim would both come like a lion.</p>
<p>     Moments after completing his drink Roger regained his com-<br />
posure and drew Peggy to him. A deep kiss precipitated him<br />
saying, &#8220;get on your knees, honey. I&#8217;m going to drive this cock<br />
bone all the way home.&#8221;</p>
<p>     She got on her knees and exhibited her lovely buttocks to<br />
his gaze and touch. Roger placed the head of his spear between<br />
the hairy cunt lips and sunk it deeply into her body. Slowly at<br />
first his raging dick drove into her hole. The motion soon grew<br />
quicker, her curvaceous ass becoming a blur as she screwed his<br />
hard cock.  Roger withdrew and pulled his prick upwards over her<br />
wet-lipped opening, then drove it into her cunt from behind the<br />
kneeling lusty lady again. His cock sank deeply into her crotch<br />
until his belly was pressed against her curvaceous ass, his balls<br />
dangling between her richly curved trembling thighs. Peggy began<br />
to move with his rhythm, her ass moving back as his prick sank<br />
into her hairy cunt, quickly establishing a rhythm of lusty need.<br />
Peggy continued moving to Roger&#8217;s rhythm as she felt herself near<br />
another climax. She knew that Jim was watching and must have his<br />
hand on his own fuck tool.</p>
<p>     Roger&#8217;s throbbing prick jetted, squirting his male cream in<br />
between the her clinging thighs, filling her cavity with the<br />
slippery male juice of his sex. A copious quantity of juicy hot<br />
cum escaped the tight lipped opening to trail down Peggy&#8217;s cur-<br />
vaceous thigh, gleaming silver in the subdued lighting of the<br />
bedroom, clinging to her richly curved leg.</p>
<p>     The feeling of hot sperm filling her wet pussy, brought<br />
Peggy the rest of the way to a shuddering orgasm, her body insa-<br />
tiable, moving as a blur now bucking her ass back onto Roger&#8217;s<br />
spurting prick, driving his hard squirting male organ so deeply<br />
that his balls were squeezed tightly between her thighs. Peggy<br />
could feel Roger&#8217;s cock diminishing in size within her still con-<br />
vulsing cunt, attempting to hold his cock between the slippery<br />
hot lips of her cunt as long as possible. As his cock shrunk, it<br />
pulled free by itself, trailing sperm while slippery pussy<br />
lubricant slid down Peggy&#8217;s inner thigh, dripping from the<br />
ringlets of her soft curly pussy hair; the oily liquid matting<br />
the curls of her pubic hair, the swollen lipped opening oozing<br />
the hot wet combined juices of Peggy&#8217;s sexual passion dripping<br />
from the opening between her thighs. Her finger trailed down to<br />
slip between the hairy opening, gathering up a finger tip of<br />
slippery juice, transferring the lubricant to her mouth.  Peggy&#8217;s<br />
pink tongue darted out, capturing the silver liquid, savoring the<br />
salty taste, as she licked her finger clean.</p>
<p>     Jim lay there, playing the part of Roger, spent but fully<br />
gratified. Peggy was the hottest and most exciting woman in the<br />
world. Peggy snuggled up to him and purred like a kitten, press-<br />
ing her heavy, pink tits into the side of his chest. Gently, he<br />
shook her, looked into her eyes and snapped his fingers once.<br />
Peggy closed her eyes briefly, then reopened them. &#8220;Did you enjoy<br />
that Peggy?&#8221; Jim asked lovingly.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I can&#8217;t remember ever being that hot Jim. Promise we will<br />
do it again soon,&#8221; she begged.</p>
<p>     Jim assured her that they would enjoy many similar experi-<br />
ments soon. &#8220;Now tell me everything that happened with this Roger<br />
character.&#8221; Peggy did just that. They fucked twice more that<br />
night and slept like babies. Peggy loved playing the part of a<br />
hooker. Next time maybe it would be Jim&#8217;s turn.</p>
<p>                   CHAPTER TEN &#8211; HYPNOSEX</p>
<p>     Pam and Art enjoyed an existence very much like most other<br />
couples in Huntington Beach. Having moved around the globe as an<br />
army brat, Art had the occasion to see much of the world and<br />
California provided much of what he found to be comfortable. With<br />
a relatively good job, Art was satisfied with his professional<br />
development. His one concern seemed to be a fixation that he<br />
shared with millions of other men in their late thirties; he<br />
couldn&#8217;t seem to get enough sex.</p>
<p>     It wasn&#8217;t as if Pam and Art didn&#8217;t enjoy their sex life; he<br />
just couldn&#8217;t get his dick wet often enough. At times he ques-<br />
tioned himself as to his libido. Was he over sexed, or did he<br />
just want to live a complete life? He knew that life was way too<br />
short and that he should take advantage of what was available,<br />
while it was available.</p>
<p>     Pam shared a position with the majority of women in contem-<br />
porary society. She wasn&#8217;t quite sure if she had ever really ex-<br />
perienced an orgasm. She enjoyed sex, however she couldn&#8217;t recall<br />
ever having an earth shaking, eye-rolling, toe-tingling climax.<br />
Art was driven, via love, to make every effort to provide his<br />
gorgeous, 5&#8243;3&#8243;, 115 pound, blond princess with the orgasm that<br />
she wanted and deserved.</p>
<p>     She did turn heads wherever she went. Her beautiful frame<br />
offered measurements of 36D-24-36. Her heavy, magnetic breasts<br />
were accented by a small waist and saucy buttocks that made most<br />
men mad with envy. Now and then she would break fear&#8217;s icy grip<br />
and do something sexy and completely out of the ordinary. Art was<br />
always turned on when this would occur. She talked about other<br />
men gawking at her and fantasies like participating in a wet tee<br />
shirt contest. The thought of other men being aroused by Pam was<br />
exciting for Art.</p>
<p>     Being somewhat of a computer wiz, Art subscribed to computer<br />
several bulletin board services. One day while on line he<br />
downloaded several stories about hypnosis in the bedroom on an<br />
x-rated board. The concept interested Art, and his interest con-<br />
tinued to grow. He left a message for the author of the stories,<br />
and low and behold the author returned his message.</p>
<p>     The author&#8217;s name was Jim, and he indicated that hypnosis<br />
could indeed be used to improve one&#8217;s sex life. Jim had often<br />
used, what he referred to as, hypnosex to give his wife<br />
heightened sensibilities. She was able to climax on demand, make<br />
love with any lover she chose and completely satisfy her desires<br />
while increasing her sexual awareness.</p>
<p>     Imagine what could be accomplished, Art thought. Pam could<br />
learn how to bring herself to orgasm whenever she chose. He<br />
talked with her about this new approached and she indicated that<br />
she had tried hypnosis when she was a young girl, and it didn&#8217;t<br />
work. After sharing this with Jim, it was explained to Art that<br />
we are often hypnotized and don&#8217;t even know it. Because we have<br />
such erroneous ideas of hypnosis, we could easily be hypnotized<br />
and not be aware of it.</p>
<p>     Jim suggested that Art read the induction techniques that<br />
Jim had given and begin by trying some relaxation exercises with<br />
Pam. It surely couldn&#8217;t hurt anything, but Jim cautioned Art not<br />
to attempt to do anything that Pam would find offensive or dras-<br />
tically contrary to her values.</p>
<p>     Art began by demonstrating how comfortable one could become<br />
by making their body completely relaxed. Pam began to enjoy the<br />
short sessions of relaxation. He eventually moved the sessions to<br />
the bath, where Pam could get in a hot tub of water and lose her-<br />
self in the warmth and increased weightlessness. This excited the<br />
hell out of Art, because he could sit by casually and look at his<br />
wife&#8217;s lovely body as she closed her eyes and his voice spoke of<br />
lovely beach scenes; the white sand under her torso, the waves<br />
lapping at her exposed breasts, the sun gently warming her<br />
relaxed body, the birds filling the air with song. He took his<br />
time with her development in an effort to teach relaxation and<br />
increase her interest.</p>
<p>     In several weeks Art contacted Jim and indicated that<br />
progress was being made, but he wanted to intensify the relaxa-<br />
tion. Jim suggested that he may now being moving the sessions to<br />
the bedroom and introduce sensual massage as an element in the<br />
hypnosis effort.</p>
<p>     At the next session Art suggested to Pam that she could be-<br />
come even more relaxed. He told her that after the bath he would<br />
teach her another technique. When her bath was complete, Art<br />
carefully helped Pam dry off and escorted her to their bed. Pre-<br />
viously, he had prepared everything that would be needed and<br />
placed the items next to the bed: a towel, a bottle of body lo-<br />
tion and a hand-held electric massager.</p>
<p>     He suggested that she should imagine being on her favorite<br />
beach and that there would be no one within miles. She was taking<br />
advantage of the solitude and should feel comfortable to bask in<br />
the sun free from the restrictions of clothing. It was just the<br />
two of them. He asked her if she could feel the texture of the<br />
sand under her body as she rested on her belly; could she feel<br />
the warmth of the sun on her back, legs and buttocks. Art then<br />
began to ever-so-gently run his fingers down her back and stopped<br />
just above her buttocks at the small of the back. He touched her<br />
neck at the hair line and lightly ran his fingers up to and be-<br />
hind her ears. He could see her shiver slightly at his quiet ad-<br />
vances. He then went completely to the opposite end of this<br />
lovely body, just above the ankles and ran the back of his finger<br />
tips up her calves to the back of her knees. He stopped momen-<br />
tarily and continued the path up the back of her thighs and<br />
stopped where the cheeks of her lovely ass met her thighs.</p>
<p>     His cock was raging at this point. It was as big as he had<br />
ever remembered it being, and he could feel the semen leaking<br />
from its head, wetting his underwear. Out of the shear fire<br />
developing in his loins, he reached down and touched his stiff<br />
rod and stroked it lightly with one hand as his other continued a<br />
path up Pam&#8217;s sides to the swell of the sides of her breasts<br />
resting on the sheets. He asked her if her breasts felt good<br />
resting on the warm sand and if she could feel her nipples becom-<br />
ing hard as they sought new depths.</p>
<p>     Art then turned Pam over and gently brushed the &#8220;sand&#8221; from<br />
her breasts, belly and thighs. He continued his efforts on the<br />
front of her willing body. After teasing her senses with his<br />
feather touch, her told her that he would be applying body lo-<br />
tion. Placing an ample amount of lotion in his hands to warm it,<br />
Art was soon applying the oily mixture to his lovely wife.<br />
Throughout the ensuing moments, Art continued to give Pam sug-<br />
gestions about becoming more and more relaxed; her body was feel-<br />
ing heavier and heavier; becoming part of the earth; that she was<br />
so relaxed she didn&#8217;t want to move. He told her that she had<br />
never felt so relaxed and that she wanted to fall into a deep<br />
sleep; that&#8217;s OK just let yourself go and enjoy the warmth of the<br />
sun on your body.</p>
<p>     As the lotion was urged into every pore of her body she was<br />
told to let her mind wander to any place that she chose. She<br />
could be anywhere in the world with whomever she wanted to be<br />
with. He suggested that she keep her eyes closed and imagine that<br />
she was being given a massage by anyone that she chose. Art con-<br />
tinued to massage his lovely wife&#8217;s body as his cock strained for<br />
release. His hands began to become more aggressive and would oc-<br />
casionally linger on her ripe nipples and inner thighs. Soon Pam<br />
opened her legs to admit his advancing fingers. He could see her<br />
love juices begin to drip from her swollen pussy lips. He gently<br />
turned her over and began to knead the meat of her buttocks,<br />
thighs and back. Again she opened her thighs as a message to dip<br />
into her hot love cavern. Not wanting to take this session too<br />
far, Art began to prepare her for being fully awake. He told her<br />
that she was beginning to become fully awake; that her body was<br />
becoming lighter and lighter and that she would begin to count to<br />
ten. When she reached ten she would be fully awake and feel won-<br />
derful.</p>
<p>     Pam did as she was bid and told Art that they would be much<br />
more comfortable if he would take his things off and come to bed.<br />
The kids were in bed and there was nothing stopping them from<br />
relaxing together the rest of the night. It didn&#8217;t take much en-<br />
couragement for his love rod to come to full attention. He rolled<br />
into Pam&#8217;s arms, his chest rested on Pam&#8217;s soft, warm breasts,<br />
and his raging cock soon found her oily, gaping tunnel to spill<br />
his seed into. This time everything was different. She threw her<br />
legs back in an effort to bring him as deeply inside of her as he<br />
could be. She actually shuddered this time as he filled his<br />
strong hands with the cheeks of her ass, and his cock continued<br />
to pummel her moist, hairy hole.</p>
<p>     Art&#8217;s elation was doubled when he received a message from<br />
Jim indicating that Jim and Peggy would soon be planning a cruise<br />
to the Caribbean and invited Art and Pam to meet with them on the<br />
cruise. It would be on Norwegian Cruise Lines; the Seaward. The<br />
course of travel would be one evening at sea, one day on the<br />
cruise line&#8217;s private island, on the Ocho Rios in Jamaica,<br />
another day at sea with a stop in the Caymen Islands, a half day<br />
in Cozumel and return. The thought of a cruise had always excited<br />
Art. What excitement would they find in this new adventure?</p>
<p>     You only go around once, Art mused. What the hell! Pam was<br />
amenable to the idea. It would be great to be away from the<br />
everyday toils and the kids for a while. It was all set. The date<br />
would be in February and arrangements had been made. Anticipation<br />
was beginning to drive Art wild. He continued his experimentation<br />
with Pam&#8217;s relaxation techniques and began to introduce himself<br />
to a series of fantasies. The holidays came and went, building a<br />
natural anticipation in the two couples.</p>
<p>     The Miami Harbor was bustling with activity. Art and Pam<br />
couldn&#8217;t get over the size of the ship. Baggage check was con-<br />
ducted without incident, and they walked up the half mile long<br />
winding ramp which led to the entry way. Their eyes traveled from<br />
one couple to another wondering if they would see Peggy and Jim<br />
among the couples entering the ship. The excitement continued to<br />
increase as their eyes fell upon any number of beautiful looking<br />
couples, men and women.</p>
<p>     After settling in their cabin, they removed to the top of<br />
the pool deck for departure. The ship&#8217;s engines began their slow<br />
but steady pull away from the dock as well-wishers moved about<br />
like ants ten stories below the couple&#8217;s vantage point. Once the<br />
ship was clear of the harbor, Pam and Art ordered a drink from<br />
Captain Billy&#8217;s Bar and reclined on the lounge chairs on the main<br />
pool deck. Already bodies began to rid themselves of clothing to<br />
enjoy the 75 degree warmth of the sun deck.</p>
<p>     Art could feel his manhood start its upward climb to erec-<br />
tion as one lovely woman after another pranced by his perch. One<br />
in particular seemed to provide interest as he looked out over<br />
the deck behind his dark glasses. Each step her rolling buttocks<br />
seemed to provide invitation as the sway of her tantalizing<br />
breasts lightly covered by a thin clinging tee shirt hypnotized<br />
him and fed his erection. She continued to skip about the deck<br />
with every intention of attracting the gaze of every man on<br />
board.</p>
<p>     He knew that she could feel eyes on her as she went to the<br />
bar and returned with a drink. Suddenly she returned to the bar<br />
to retrieve a cocktail napkin and provided another view of her<br />
exciting body. Her gathered suit bottom was scant and hugged the<br />
rolling curves of her tight fanny from the swaying cheeks of her<br />
ass to the deep crack which provided the division between these<br />
smooth globes. Art&#8217;s eyes traced her pubic arch and perceived<br />
tight golden curls of hair furtively peaking from beneath the<br />
cloth designed to contain them. Traveling upward he saw each<br />
heavy breast rise and fall with the motion of her shoulders. She<br />
knew he was watching every move and exaggerated each to enhance<br />
his interest. Art was hoping that this would be Peggy, but where<br />
could Jim be.</p>
<p>     Pam couldn&#8217;t help but to notice Art&#8217;s interest. Oddly enough<br />
she didn&#8217;t feel jealous. It was kind of exciting to see Art&#8217;s<br />
focus and the resulting bulge develop in his shorts. She knew<br />
that soon she would feel that thick bone driving inside of her<br />
slippery love tunnel. Her own interest began to develop as many<br />
of the ship&#8217;s men began to move about the deck. Thin men, fat<br />
men, muscular men, tall men, short, suave, fast talkers, relaxed<br />
attitudes and mysterious men all provided a circus of observa-<br />
tion. There were several that she seemed attracted to. She knew<br />
that she could turn on most of the men on the ship and was bound<br />
and determined to do just that.</p>
<p>     Shortly thereafter as Pam was sipping an iced pina colada,<br />
she noticed a man that she had not previously seen on deck. She<br />
almost laughed to herself when she began to ponder the humor of<br />
invariably seeing several people while on vacation that bore a<br />
strong resemblance to folks that she knew back come. This nice<br />
looking men was the spitting image of Larry, her next door neigh-<br />
bor. She had always fantasized about having an affair with Larry<br />
but was hesitant because he lived so close to her. This guy&#8217;s<br />
fanny was even cuter than Larrys, she smiled as she thought. She<br />
could feel the warmth develop in her loins as the thin material<br />
of her panties massaged her soft pussy each time she squeezed her<br />
thighs together. She was becoming wet thinking about a nice thick<br />
penis resting above a pair of heavy, hairy balls.</p>
<p>     When Pam and Art returned to the room to get ready for an<br />
early dinner, there was a flashing light on the phone indicating<br />
that there was a message at the desk. Art&#8217;s heart jumped slightly<br />
knowing that it may be a message from Peggy and Jim. His hopes<br />
were justified as the young English girl told him that Jim had<br />
called and asked her to relate that they were in cabin 4010 and<br />
would like Art to call when he returned. He no sooner hung up the<br />
phone when he began dialing cabin 4010. Peggy answered the phone,<br />
and her voice provided further excitement. &#8220;Hello. This is Art. I<br />
presume that I&#8217;m talking to Peggy. How are you?&#8221; he said with a<br />
slight quiver in his voice.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Fine, thank you. I&#8217;ve heard so much about you. Jim tells me<br />
that this is your first cruise. I&#8217;m convinced that you will love<br />
it. Please let me know if there is anything I can do to make it<br />
more comfortable. Tell Pam that I said Hi, and I&#8217;m anxious to<br />
meet her. Would you like to talk to Jim?&#8221; Peggy&#8217;s upbeat voice<br />
rang out the question.</p>
<p>     Jim and Art agreed to meet on the lower pool deck for<br />
drinks, an informal dinner and conversation. Art told Jim that he<br />
could recognize them because Pam would be wearing a blue and<br />
white striped halter top outfit with white shorts.</p>
<p>     His eyes couldn&#8217;t help but to wander as Jim got off the<br />
elevator on the lower pool deck. His anxiety increased while<br />
looking for Art and Pam. He was also very proud of how great<br />
Peggy looked in her revealing swim suit and open cover-up. She<br />
wore a black and white perrot doll, two-piece suit that accen-<br />
tuated her heavy, milk-white breasts on the top. The bottoms<br />
separated and hugged her firm, solid buttocks as they rose and<br />
fell with each step. Jim could feel himself becoming hard as he<br />
watcher her tease the audience on the lower deck. Just a hint of<br />
reddish pubic hair peaked from the vee of her suit bottom.</p>
<p>     They approached the Tiki bar and were greeted by a rather<br />
pleasant English bar tender. &#8220;What will be your pleasure,<br />
friends?&#8221; asked Bill the bar tender.</p>
<p>     Jim looked inquiringly at Peggy, shrugged and suggested to<br />
no one in particular, &#8220;two pena coladas, Peg?&#8221; She nodded her<br />
agreement and Bill began the mixology ritual. Jim&#8217;s eyes con-<br />
tinued to scan the participants, and his eyes fell on one of the<br />
loveliest creatures in his memory. She was so lovely, he didn&#8217;t<br />
even notice that she was wearing a blue striped halter top and<br />
white shorts. As it dawned on him that the couple approaching<br />
were likely Art and Pam, he wanted to check his breath and locate<br />
his Pulitzer Prize so that he could impress them. He was, in<br />
short, pleased that the couple that they were soon to meet were<br />
as attractive as they obviously were.</p>
<p>     Pam and Art seemed somewhat shy as they approached. Jim<br />
noticed their apparent discomfort and tried his best to lighten<br />
the moment. Jim took the initiative to break the ice by making<br />
the introductions, ordering drinks and offering both jokes and<br />
small talk. Soon, as is often the case, the ladies generated<br />
their own conversation about the children, awful teachers,<br />
P.T.A., and wardrobes. Jim and Art took a walk to the sporting<br />
deck to observe the skeet shooting exercises.</p>
<p>     &#8220;How much have you really benefited through the use of hyp-<br />
nosis, Peggy?&#8221; asked Pam as they settled onto deck chairs<br />
situated at pool side.</p>
<p>     Peggy became excited as she shared her successes with Pam.<br />
As they started on their second Pina Colada and Margarita, Peggy<br />
spoke to her of progress in weight control, assertiveness and im-<br />
proved sex life. &#8220;Not only I am in control of my destiny, each<br />
day is filled with excitement and growth,&#8221; Peggy told Pam.</p>
<p>     &#8220;What do you mean by &#8216;excitement and growth?&#8217;&#8221; Pam inquired<br />
of Peggy.</p>
<p>     Peggy went on to explain how her sexual life had been im-<br />
proved by the added variety that hypnosex could offer. She didn&#8217;t<br />
used to think as much of herself. She didn&#8217;t really know what may<br />
have happened in her childhood to give her an inferiority com-<br />
plex, but until Jim showed her what potential she had, she found<br />
sex unexciting and was somewhat introverted. Now she found other<br />
men attractive, became excited when she knew she could excite<br />
others and was able to develop new relationships that helped her<br />
in her professional development as well as her personal growth.</p>
<p>     Pam was somewhat incredulous, &#8220;doesn&#8217;t Jim get jealous when<br />
he thinks about you involved with other men?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Quite the contrary. He encourages it. He knows I love him,<br />
and I think he likes to show me off. There was a time when I<br />
would have worn a bathing suit only if I had to in order to go<br />
into the swimming pool. Now I like to wear as little as possible<br />
so I can excite other men as well as Jim. It&#8217;s put the excitement<br />
back into our marriage and multiplied it a hundred-fold. In my<br />
mind, I can fuck anyone I want to. I have had Kevin Cosner suck<br />
my breasts&#8230; not just imagination&#8230; he has actually laid on top<br />
of me and put my tits in his hot mouth. Sean Connery has been<br />
kind enough to give me a full body massage with his strong hands<br />
on my hot flesh. It continues to get better, and I can be with<br />
anyone I want to. I usually like to finish up with Jim. He will<br />
always be the best, especially after becoming as excited as the<br />
fantasy makes him. Sometimes you should try it. I don&#8217;t think you<br />
would be sorry. As an example, look out at this sea of human man<br />
flesh around the pool,&#8221; Peggy suggested. &#8220;Don&#8217;t any of them ap-<br />
peal to you?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Pam&#8217;s eyes began to scan the men around the pool. &#8220;There are<br />
a few men that are wonderfully built,&#8221; she said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Well, imagine how they would look without their suits. Im-<br />
agine how it would feel to have their hands on your beautiful<br />
breasts, their lips sucking on your nipples, their hands holding<br />
your tight buttocks. Doesn&#8217;t that make you feel a tingle between<br />
your legs?&#8221; Peggy asked.</p>
<p>     Pam started to feel just that tingle that Peggy was eluding<br />
to. &#8220;Now that you mention it, I have had fantasies about making<br />
it with other men. I just seem to fight the urge because of how I<br />
was brought up. We were always taught that it was wrong. I do<br />
find that guy over there with the red suit on exciting,&#8221; Pam con-<br />
fided to Peggy.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Take a good look, memorize each muscle and bulge, close<br />
your eyes and imagine laying with your legs open, and he is rub-<br />
bing the head of his hard rod against the lips of your vagina. He<br />
is gathering your nectar on the head of his cock so he can slide<br />
it inside of your body,&#8221; Peggy urged.</p>
<p>     Pam&#8217;s eyes closed and her mind began to wander. She could<br />
feel her nipples harden, and as she moved her legs slightly back<br />
and forth, she could feel the moisture begin to flow between her<br />
legs. With each moment that went by, she continued to squeeze her<br />
buttocks together to increase the sensation. &#8220;Oh christ!&#8221; she<br />
said through pursed lips. &#8220;If I keep thinking about him, I know I<br />
will have a climax right here. We had better change the subject<br />
for a while.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Peggy&#8217;s smile was broadening as she watched Pam&#8217;s subtle<br />
display of sexuality. &#8220;OK, on a slightly different note&#8230; How<br />
would you like to do some exploring on Pleasure Island when we<br />
get there? The four of us can mix up a batch of drinks and go on<br />
a hike up the little river. They have a great little water falls<br />
about three miles from the beach. The road is within a half mile<br />
and I&#8217;m told that nobody likes to hike that last half mile. We<br />
should have the water falls to ourselves,&#8221; Peggy hinted.</p>
<p>     Pam seemed interested as she told Peggy, &#8220;I think the guys<br />
will get a kick out of it. Let&#8217;s be adventurous.</p>
<p>     Meanwhile on the sporting deck, Jim and Art were discussing<br />
their limited interest in guns and shooting sports. More often<br />
than not they discussed a series of lovely young lady joggers<br />
that continued to jaunt by. &#8220;I&#8217;m just glad to be away from com-<br />
puters and business for a while, Jim. I think that Pam and I<br />
needed to get away from the kids and home for awhile. I don&#8217;t<br />
really care what we do, if anything, while away. I just want to<br />
relax, have a few drinks and fuck like a dog,&#8221; Art pronounced.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You and me, both, Art. The atmosphere of the cruise and the<br />
islands brings out the libido in me. Incidentally, I don&#8217;t want<br />
to offend, but Pam is one of the hottest women I&#8217;ve ever seen.<br />
She could give the pope a stiff,&#8221; Jim offered kiddingly.</p>
<p>     Art smirked and said, &#8220;Oh that&#8217;s OK, Jim. I would feel bad<br />
if you thought she had to sneak up on a glass of water to get a<br />
drink. I think she&#8217;s beautiful, and I appreciate it when others<br />
think that she is exciting. Same goes for me. Peggy has a great<br />
set of tits. My only dilemma is whether I like her tits or her<br />
great ass better. I wouldn&#8217;t mind seeing those puppies of hers<br />
without the suit.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Who knows. You just may have the opportunity to do that.<br />
She claims that she is going to broaden her horizons on this<br />
vacation and get a little real sun. We&#8217;ve done a few hypnotic<br />
fantasies about sun bathing before we left home. It turned her on<br />
so much, one night she had eight climaxes just laying out in the<br />
sun and playing with her pussy. If the moment is right, I&#8217;ll give<br />
her some suggestions that prompt her to explore her sensuality,&#8221;<br />
Jim said with raised eyebrows.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I can feel myself getting hard at the thought of it, Jim.<br />
What do you say we get back to the pool, get the girls and some-<br />
thing to eat?&#8221; Art suggested.</p>
<p>     Their dinner was a pleasant experience. Too many varieties<br />
and a little too much to eat. After a short rest in their respec-<br />
tive rooms and a change of clothes, the two couples returned to<br />
the pool deck to avail themselves of the fun calypso beat offered<br />
by a native band. Jim was very enamored by Pam based on the heavy<br />
state of his rod, yet still got excited as he saw many of the<br />
eyes on board turned toward Peggy as she exhibited her flesh<br />
while frolicking on the deck. The four adventurers swam together,<br />
rolled around in one of the hot tubs and generally had a warm,<br />
enjoyable time that evening. As the stars bid that day good bye,<br />
each of the couples retired to their beds to investigate the<br />
pleasures of an increasing sensuality.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Art and Pam are really nice people, honey. Don&#8217;t you think<br />
so?&#8221; Jim asked of Peggy as she shed her cover-up and swim suit.</p>
<p>     Peggy smiled demurely and said without expecting an im-<br />
mediate response, &#8220;you would like to see his cock in my mouth,<br />
wouldn&#8217;t you, Jim? I saw how your bone came to attention when he<br />
was watching me walk around the deck. I got terribly excited when<br />
he brushed up against me in the hot tub. I felt his hard rod. I<br />
think he is hung well, Jim. I think I would like to feel his cock<br />
in me oily hole, honey. Imagine that! If her were touching my<br />
naked buttocks and kissing my neck. That turns you on, doesn&#8217;t<br />
it, baby? You weren&#8217;t able to hide your interest in Pam either.<br />
Her breasts are very lovely. I&#8217;d like to see them in your mouth<br />
as Art pumps his stiff bone in me.&#8221; They continued to talk one<br />
another into a frenzy. Jim induced hypnosis on Peggy and gave her<br />
a sensual massage by Art. Their evening ended by Jim bringing her<br />
back to reality and fucking her mouth and hairy pussy three<br />
times. Sleep followed with saucy dreams and exciting hopes for a<br />
new day in a new port.</p>
<p>     Pleasure Island, as it was called, was a private island<br />
owned by the cruise line. It was little more than three miles by<br />
seven miles with three small lakes, a river and miles of beaches.<br />
As Jim stumbled out of bed, showered, brushed his teeth and<br />
dressed, he heard the ship&#8217;s announcer on the intercom. &#8220;We are<br />
nearing the coast of Pleasure Island. The first shuttle will<br />
leave in one hour.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;ll see you on the top deck, honey. I&#8217;ll have coffee and<br />
breakfast waiting,&#8221; Jim offered to Peggy as he was leaving the<br />
state room. &#8220;Get your sweet ass out of the rack and get moving.<br />
There&#8217;s a wonderful new world out there to see.&#8221;</p>
<p>     The cool and salty morning air brushed Jim&#8217;s cleanly shaven<br />
face as the elevator door opened on the top deck. His eyes were<br />
bathed with the sight of land through the mist of the morning.<br />
The sun was already burning off the fog and the day promised<br />
little humidity and lots of sunshine. The crew was bustling about<br />
cleaning the decks and placing deck chairs around the pool. Other<br />
adventurers were creating small traffic patterns as they acquired<br />
their coffee and breakfast. Jim located a table with a great view<br />
of the approaching island, deposited his towel and bag and got<br />
into line for the morning&#8217;s goodies.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Hello, Jim. Did you sleep well?&#8221; Pam inquired as she ap-<br />
proached Jim&#8217;s table.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Like a baby. I think I could get used to a steady diet of<br />
this. Damn, you look great today. Please join me. Peggy will be<br />
here shortly. I hope you won&#8217;t be offended when I tell you this,<br />
but Peggy found Art very exciting. In fact, he was the subject of<br />
her fantasy last night,&#8221; Jim revealed as his eyes traced each<br />
move that Pam made in her approach to the table.</p>
<p>     Pam blushed slightly, &#8220;he is an attractive man, and she<br />
would be blind not to notice. However, she isn&#8217;t doing badly for<br />
herself either. Did anyone ever tell you that you resemble Har-<br />
rison Ford? I find him exciting and have seen almost everything<br />
he had done from Star Wars to his most recent.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim had been told that on several occasions, but really<br />
couldn&#8217;t see the resemblance much himself. &#8220;My kids have always<br />
told me that. If you think he&#8217;s nice looking, I&#8217;ll take that as a<br />
compliment. If anyone as lovely as you considers me attractive, I<br />
guess I can die now and not pass go, collect two hundred dollars,<br />
and do directly to heaven,&#8221; Jim said kiddingly as they both<br />
chuckled.</p>
<p>     Peggy came ambling by and was soon followed by Art. &#8220;You&#8217;re<br />
out of my sight for a half hour and already your cheating on me<br />
with Pam. Well, if you must cheat, it may as well be with the<br />
loveliest guest on board,&#8221; Peggy teased as she sat down. The two<br />
couples had a leisurely breakfast and made plans to adventure<br />
onto the island in an hour.</p>
<p>     Getting to the water falls was not as difficult as they had<br />
thought. There were five taxi stands on the only road on the is-<br />
land. The driver told them that the blue taxi sign was the one<br />
closest to the water falls, and a taxi came by every half hour or<br />
so. The ride to the blue taxi stop was interesting because they<br />
were all crammed into the back seat, and Peggy and Pam had to sit<br />
rather close to the two men. As they emerged from the taxi, the<br />
sun fell full on the faces of the two couples. They had packed a<br />
light lunch and brought two thermos jugs full of pirate drinks.<br />
After a short journey prompted by the directions of the driver,<br />
they could soon hear the subtle song of the falls.</p>
<p>     Other than the swaying buttocks of the two lovely women that<br />
walked in front of the two men, Jim thought that this was likely<br />
one of the most beautiful sights he had ever seen when he ap-<br />
proached the falls. Crystal clear water cascaded over the rock<br />
formation and cut a path through a green garden. The girls<br />
quickly placed a blanket on the ground and lost their outer wrap-<br />
pings. Peggy&#8217;s body was taunt as it stretched out in a run for<br />
the water. Each muscle and curve was accented by the sun with<br />
each move. Pam was a little more hesitant as she approached the<br />
water. &#8220;Do you think that there is anything alive in the water?&#8221;<br />
she asked as her foot reached the shore of the small lake.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Not just yet, honey. Soon there will be some major snakes<br />
pop out if you look any better than you do right now,&#8221; Art said<br />
with a smile. Soon both girls were frolicking in the water. Jim<br />
and Art settled down with a drink on towels brought along for<br />
that purpose.</p>
<p>     The men soon dozed off, lulled by the sound of the water-<br />
fall. Jim couldn&#8217;t believe his eyes when he opened them. Pam and<br />
Peggy had removed their suits and were climbing the path beside<br />
the falls. He looked to see if Art was aware and noticed that Art<br />
was already paying close attention as he stroked his cock through<br />
his suit. &#8220;Holy christ! Why didn&#8217;t you wake me?&#8221; Jim chastised<br />
Art.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You haven&#8217;t missed much, Jim. They just took their things<br />
off, and I think they believe that we are snoozing. Damn, your<br />
wife has great tits. I love the way they sway when she thinks she<br />
is about to fall. Her ass is so smooth and well shaped,&#8221; Art an-<br />
nounced almost as if to himself.</p>
<p>     Jim felt his cock stiffen as Art spoke of Peggy&#8217;s body. Pam<br />
was indeed beautiful, he thought. She could compete with any<br />
young girl in a glamour magazine. Playboy, look out! As Jim<br />
watched Pam and Peggy helping one another up the side of the<br />
falls, he slipped his cock from the side of his suit and began to<br />
stroke it. Art couldn&#8217;t help but notice what he was doing and<br />
soon followed his lead. &#8220;Are you looking at my wife or yours,<br />
Jim?&#8221; Art asked without taking his eyes off the girls.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Does it matter?&#8221; Jim asked as he continued to lightly run<br />
his hand up and down his blood engorged fuck tube. &#8220;I haven&#8217;t had<br />
a raging hard-on like this in five years. Your wife is gorgeous,<br />
and Peggy has never looked so good with her tits glistening as<br />
they are and her ass wiggling. Wouldn&#8217;t you love to have your<br />
bone in one of them right now?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;It&#8217;s OK with me if it&#8217;s OK with you. I have had fantasies<br />
about fucking Peggy ever since I first saw her. Now that I&#8217;m<br />
looking right up Peggy&#8217;s ass, do you have any reservations about<br />
her making it with another man?&#8221; Art asked.</p>
<p>     Jim looked at him with a serious look in his eyes and said,<br />
&#8220;the thought of you fucking Peggy does nothing but excite the<br />
hell out of me. It&#8217;ll be her call. If she wants some strange<br />
cock, it may as well be yours. Go for it.&#8221;</p>
<p>     The two men continued to pull on their enlarged cocks until<br />
the girls began to return from the falls. As they approached,<br />
they could see that the men were no longer asleep and attempted<br />
to cover themselves with the clothes they carried. &#8220;I hope you&#8217;re<br />
not angry that we tried to get a little closer to nature, Art. It<br />
was wonderful. You should try it,&#8221; Pam said as she traded her<br />
partially wet clothing for a towel to hide behind.</p>
<p>     Art jumped up off the towel, smiled, dropped his suit and<br />
said, &#8220;doesn&#8217;t bother me a bit, Pam.&#8221; He began to head toward the<br />
water, and Peggy&#8217;s eyes riveted on his heavy cock as it bounced<br />
off his well-tanned leg. &#8220;Last one in&#8217;s a piker.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Pam threw caution to the wind and followed Art into the<br />
water. Jim&#8217;s excitement increased as he saw Pam&#8217;s buttocks roll<br />
with the rhythm of her unabashed dance to the water. Jim stood<br />
up, looked at Peggy as he raised his eyebrows and asked, &#8220;shall<br />
we?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Peggy dropped her clothes, put her hands on her waist,<br />
cocked her hips to one side and wiggled her hefty breasts at Jim.<br />
&#8220;Let&#8217;s get in the water before I lose my courage,&#8221; she giggled.<br />
He removed his suit, walked over, grabbed her hand and they ap-<br />
proached the water as their eyes sought the flesh of their new<br />
friends. Jim&#8217;s cock began its upward journey to mild erection as<br />
they entered the water.</p>
<p>     Art had already lifted Pam into his arms in the water in an<br />
effort to show off her lovely assets. Pam&#8217;s breasts were bobbing<br />
in the cool water and her hardy nipples stood out as little<br />
marbles on the globes of her substantial, yet firm breasts. As<br />
Jim and Peggy came closer, Art lifted Pam&#8217;s smooth buttocks out<br />
of the water and seemed to point them at the other couple. Jim&#8217;s<br />
hand closed more tightly on Peggy&#8217;s hand as his eyes met the wet<br />
hair that graced Pam&#8217;s pouting pussy slit. He could feel his cock<br />
begin to throb while he viewed the ball-like flesh of Pam&#8217;s ass<br />
cheeks. Suddenly, Peggy&#8217;s hand was on his raging penis and began<br />
to stoke its full length under the water. &#8220;I haven&#8217;t felt you<br />
this hard in a long time, honey,&#8221; she commented as she turned to<br />
rub the nipples of her soft tits against his strong arm.</p>
<p>     Jim swung Peggy through the air in a swirl in an effort to<br />
lift her slightly out of the cool water to place her buttocks and<br />
breasts before the inquiring eyes of the other couple. Jim was<br />
proud of Peggy&#8217;s body and became even more excited as the other<br />
couple&#8217;s eyes became glued to her flesh. Peggy never dropped a<br />
stroke on Jim&#8217;s erection. Her hand glided easily over the skin of<br />
his fuck tool aided by the water, yet it seemed to stick peri-<br />
odically. Jim&#8217;s balls were being pulled by his stretching erec-<br />
tion as he filled his hands with Peggy&#8217;s firm buttocks and<br />
covered her mouth with his. Peggy placed his hard rod between her<br />
legs and tightened them like a vice while she filled her hands<br />
with his hairy ass and hid her tongue in his sucking mouth.</p>
<p>     Pam&#8217;s excitement continued to sky rocket as she reviewed the<br />
display of the other couple. She reached up, cupped her lovely<br />
left breast and began to pinch its rock-hard nipple. Her eyes<br />
rolled up in her head as Art&#8217;s hand found the deep crack of her<br />
ass cheeks, allowed it to caress its length and dip into her<br />
hairy, swollen love tunnel. He inserted two fingers into her<br />
honey pot and lowered his head to tweak her nipple with hardened<br />
lips. He then fully sucked her nipple into his softening mouth<br />
and continued to suck while his hand assault continued on her<br />
flooded pussy.</p>
<p>     The lips of Peggy&#8217;s deep love hole were opening like a<br />
flower as her excitement increased. She soon felt Jim&#8217;s hands<br />
glide over her clenching ass cheeks, lift her by her buttocks,<br />
spread the lips of her oily pussy and insert the head of his<br />
thick fuck bone. They felt some resistance to his entry due to<br />
the washing action of the water, but as the head of his penis be-<br />
came covered with her love fluids, his cock made progress into<br />
her depths. She had never fucked in the water with another<br />
couple, and it didn&#8217;t take long for her to begin her first mind-<br />
blowing climax. &#8220;Oh fuck! Blow your hot cream in my hole, honey.<br />
Fuck it up in there and cover my fucking guts with your boiling<br />
cock juice,&#8221; she raged as Jim&#8217;s pulled her ass toward his as-<br />
saulting cock bone.</p>
<p>     Pam and Art stopped briefly to watch Peggy enjoying her or-<br />
gasm. Peggy&#8217;s full breasts were flopping up out of the water and<br />
pounding on Jim&#8217;s hairy chest with each thrust of his pole into<br />
her oily slot. Art glided through the water attempting to get<br />
closer to the wildly fucking couple. He wanted to get as close as<br />
possible in an effort see their bodies locking in their lusty<br />
embrace. As his legs cut through the water in his short journey,<br />
one hand remained on Pam&#8217;s large breasts and the other hand con-<br />
tinued its assault on her deep, hot slit. Soon they were standing<br />
next to the wildly fucking couple. Art turned Pam so that his<br />
cock bone rested in the deep crack of her tight ass. His hand<br />
guided his hot rod down the division between her fanny globes and<br />
placed the head of his cock at the entrance to her slippery<br />
pussy. She spread her long legs in welcome to his hard cock and<br />
felt Art&#8217;s trembling hand slipping quickly over the hard nipples<br />
of her floating mammary glands.</p>
<p>     Suddenly, Peggy reached out, in her last moment of passion,<br />
grabbed Art&#8217;s hand and crushed it to her breast. Jim, Art and Pam<br />
had a look of disbelief on their faces as their eyes were riveted<br />
to Art&#8217;s fingers, filled with Peggy&#8217;s tit flesh. She continued to<br />
spasm with Jim&#8217;s cock embedded in her hairy love tunnel. Jim was<br />
crazed by the initiative that Peggy had taken and fell into the<br />
arms of lust. Pam bent back to offer her gaping pussy to Art&#8217;s<br />
prodding penis. She then reached down to feel Jim&#8217;s bone pulsing<br />
as it spent his load into Peggy. Jim&#8217;s cock began its long jour-<br />
ney to the depths of Pam&#8217;s quim.</p>
<p>     Spent as they were, Peggy and Jim parted, moved back and<br />
began to watch Art drive his bone into his wife. They could see<br />
Art treating himself to Pam&#8217;s swinging globes and the rock-hard<br />
nipples that adorned them. The look on Pam&#8217;s face was that of a<br />
hungry lioness, and she began to grunt with each thrust of Art&#8217;s<br />
cock. &#8220;Fuck it in there, baby. Stick your long pole in my hot<br />
pussy just like Jim did to Peggy. Spill your cock lava into my<br />
pit,&#8221; Pam shouted through clenched teeth.</p>
<p>     Art pulled his bouncing cock from Pam&#8217;s gaping pussy and<br />
turned her around. She jumped in the water throwing her legs wide<br />
and grabbed Art under his strong arms. Art re-inserted his bold<br />
sword into her waiting hole and began pumping her again. Jim<br />
whispered something to Peggy and moved in behind Pam. He reached<br />
around Pam and cradled her breasts with his hands allowing her<br />
ripe nipples to fall between his thumbs and forefingers. Pam<br />
released her grip on Art and fell back into Jim&#8217;s arms while<br />
holding fast to Art&#8217;s hips with her legs. Pam was suspended be-<br />
tween the two men. Art was driving his meat into her womanhood<br />
and Jim was manipulated her fleshy breasts.</p>
<p>     Peggy moved behind Jim and reached for his swollen, hairy<br />
balls as she began to tenderly bite on the muscles of his back.<br />
The attached couple were now fucking with a frenzy, their excite-<br />
ment enhanced by the ministrations of their new friends. Pam&#8217;s<br />
eyes were wild. &#8220;Jim has got my tits in his hands, Art. Another<br />
man is playing with my hard nipples. Does that drive you wild,<br />
mother fucker?&#8221; she asked as she panted.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I love the sight of his fingers on your nipples. Peggy is<br />
playing with my fuck nuts. Can you feel her hand down there? My<br />
balls are so tight I think they are going to explode,&#8221; Art<br />
grunted. Peggy allowed her hand to continue its path beyond Art&#8217;s<br />
balls to his penetrating cock. She could feel his straining penis<br />
enter Pam. She felt the slick, hair-covered pussy open to admit<br />
Arts pounding cock as she pressed her soft, heavy tits into Art&#8217;s<br />
back.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Jim has got his cock rubbing against my back, Art. I can<br />
feel his bone on my buns, honey. It feels so good against my ass<br />
as you&#8217;re driving your cock into me,&#8221; Pam jerked out the words.</p>
<p>     &#8220;How would you like to feel his cock in you, Pam? Can you<br />
feel his bone spreading the lips of your hairy pussy as it spears<br />
you? Can you feel his cum pumping into your belly? Can you feel<br />
his hands on the cheeks of your ass, his lips on your nipples,<br />
his tongue in your cunt?&#8221; Art went on to heighten her excitement.<br />
Pam soon began to convulse uncontrollably as she climaxed on Art<br />
spurting cock bone.</p>
<p>     The two couples separated. Art took Pam into his arms and<br />
gently held her as a helpless baby. Jim and Peggy fell into one<br />
another&#8217;s arms, smiled at each other and headed for the beach and<br />
their towels. As soon as Art and Pam regained their composure,<br />
they too returned to dry land. Each of the four friends were<br />
dealing with the interaction in their own way. Little was said as<br />
each felt somewhat embarrassed by the scene. They soon began to<br />
dress and headed back to the road to catch the taxi back to the<br />
dock. It was Jim who first broke the silence while they waited<br />
for their ride. &#8220;I guess we all feel a little weird about this,<br />
but tell me, have any of you ever been so hot before in your<br />
lives?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Smiles appeared on the faces of the other three. Art<br />
responded, &#8220;Pam never felt so good to me, and Peggy&#8217;s hand on my<br />
balls almost made me pass out while I was giving it to Pam. I&#8217;m<br />
so damned tired and drained, it will be a good three minutes<br />
before I&#8217;m ready to go again. Hey! Did it dawn on any of you yet<br />
that we forgot to eat?&#8221;</p>
<p>     Laughter mingled with gasps of disbelief from each of them<br />
as the taxi pulled up to carry them back to the ship. The ride<br />
back was short and quiet. Matted hair and half-wet clothing<br />
served to make the ride a little more uncomfortable than it would<br />
have been. The taxi pulled up to the dock and deposited the tired<br />
foursome. They gathered up their packages and began their trek up<br />
the gang plank. Fernando greeted them as they re-entered the ship<br />
and asked, &#8220;was your stay pleasurable, ladies and gentlemen?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;And that&#8217;s not the half of it,&#8221; announced Pam. &#8220;That&#8217;s a<br />
great little island you have there.&#8221; Pam and Peggy helped one<br />
another with their gear as the men trailed behind watching each<br />
step of the girls and quietly reading one another&#8217;s mind. They<br />
were convinced that tomorrow would promise even greater enjoy-<br />
ment.</p>
<p>                     CHAPTER ELEVEN &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     Jim could feel himself becoming more interested in what<br />
wonders hypnosis had to offer he and Peggy and their sexual<br />
desires. He decided to take Peggy to a new level of sexual<br />
heights. He had helped Peggy experience complete hallucination of<br />
the senses on two different occasions. The first was to find her<br />
on a secluded beach masturbating, and the second was a wonderful<br />
massage by a great looking stranger. Now what? She had still<br />
never had a stranger&#8217;s cock in her body. Jim decided that would<br />
be the next adventure. He would introduce Peggy to this ex-<br />
perience on Saturday night.</p>
<p>     The week seemed to drag on. It seemed as though Saturday<br />
would never come. Each time Jim looked at Peggy he thought about<br />
how exciting it would be for Peggy to give her body to a strange<br />
man; her lovely breasts, her round buttocks, her hot pussy.<br />
Strange hands on her skin; her lips on another man&#8217;s penis; his<br />
hairy balls resting in her hands and on the soft cheeks of her<br />
ass. He went wild with the thought of it. And then Saturday came.</p>
<p>     They spent their evening in the same fashion as usual. A<br />
movie, a pizza and a bottle of wine were their entertainment. The<br />
movie was not bad, the pizza was different and the wine was<br />
great. Jim did have a hard time keeping his mind on anything<br />
other than sex. As they prepared to retire, Jim&#8217;s apprehension<br />
increased. Peggy had no idea what was to take place. As Peggy<br />
dressed in her night clothes to get into bed, again Jim&#8217;s mind<br />
wandered to thoughts of another man gazing on her wonderful body.<br />
Jim snapped his fingers twice, his regular post hypnotic suggest-<br />
ion that would place Peggy into a deep trance state. He watched<br />
her eyes close. A warm smile appeared on her lips, and she melted<br />
into a deep sleep.</p>
<p>     Jim continued to bring Peggy deeper and deeper into her<br />
trance. He suggested to her that upon reaching her deepest trance<br />
state she would begin to feel very sexy. He continued along these<br />
lines for quite some time until he could perceive Peggy actually<br />
beginning to squirm. She was hot and wanted fucked. Jim told her<br />
that he would soon wake her and when she awoke, she would find<br />
herself all alone and extremely horny. She would dress completely<br />
in a tight fitting outfit, get in the car and go to the all-night<br />
grocery store.</p>
<p>     When she reached the store, she would complete the shopping<br />
that she was going to do the next day. While at the grocery<br />
store, she would meet a stranger with a green ribbon in the zip-<br />
per of his coat. As soon as she identified the green ribbon, the<br />
man wearing the ribbon would be the most exciting man she had<br />
ever seen. She would have trouble taking her eyes off of him.<br />
This would be the man she always wanted to make love to.</p>
<p>     Jim went on to explain that she would be attracted to this<br />
man so much, because she may never have the chance to see him<br />
again. He further told her not to concern herself with Jim be-<br />
cause he would be out of town on business for two days. Before he<br />
woke Peggy up he decided to give her one more post hypnotic sug-<br />
gestion. That suggestion took the form of the length of each of<br />
her orgasms. He would pyramid them. He told her that the inten-<br />
sity of her climax would be double what she ever experienced<br />
before.</p>
<p>     After assuring her that she would remember nothing about<br />
being in a trance, Jim woke Peggy up. Now would follow the first<br />
test. Would she awaken, go about the business of getting ready<br />
for the grocery store and not be able to see Jim. He waited with<br />
a great deal of interest as he watched Peggy get ready to go to<br />
the store. He sat in a chair in the corner of the master bedroom<br />
silently.</p>
<p>     Peggy got up from the bed and went into the bathroom off the<br />
bedroom without acknowledging Jim&#8217;s presence. He never took his<br />
eyes off Peggy as she began to pin her hair up to take a shower.<br />
Her hair secure, she removed her night clothes, and Jim&#8217;s blood<br />
began to race. His thick penis began to grow as he viewed her<br />
lovely bouncing breasts and the cleave of her ass cheeks. Her<br />
soft pubic hair was brought into view as she turned. She stopped<br />
in front of the mirror and began to admire herself.</p>
<p>     Her hands reached up and gently cupped her ample breasts.<br />
Peggy pointed the nipples at the mirror and a smile crept over<br />
her lips. As the thumb and forefinger of each hand pinched the<br />
generous pink nipples of each mound of flesh her eyes rolled up<br />
and closed. Maintaining her grasp on one of the nipples, she al-<br />
lowed her other hand to dip down to her bush. Jim had never seen<br />
Peggy alone and unaware of a spectator. He now understood what a<br />
voyeur must feel like. His hard rod stretched to its maximum<br />
length.</p>
<p>     Peggy began to furiously rub her clit and manipulate her<br />
breasts. Jim heard a soft moan and Peggy turned from the mirror<br />
to head for the shower. Jim&#8217;s excitement continued as Peggy en-<br />
tered the hot stream of the shower and soaped every inch of her<br />
hot body. She toweled herself off and moved toward the dressing<br />
table. As she bent over to open a drawer, her buttocks were of-<br />
fered to his intense view; so pink and round and tight. Suddenly<br />
she removed a tight kelley green pair of slacks and tossed them<br />
on the bed next to the dressing table.</p>
<p>     Next she removed a white knit top and placed it next to the<br />
slacks. Peggy entered her undies drawer and withdrew a sexy pair<br />
of panties. As she reached down for the panties, Jim could see<br />
her heavy breasts swing down and undulate as if they had a life<br />
of their own.</p>
<p>     Peggy stepped into the panties and pulled them up over her<br />
tight buttocks. She quickly donned her slacks and pulled the top<br />
on without a bra. Admiring herself in the mirror, her hands went<br />
to her breasts, and she felt the weight in her hands. Satisfied<br />
that her body would look its best in this outfit, she reached for<br />
a comb. She combed her hair and reached for her make-up case to<br />
place the final touches on this portrait. Uncontrollably, seminal<br />
fluid began to seep out of Jim&#8217;s straining cock. He began think-<br />
ing about old baseball games to keep himself from blowing his en-<br />
tire wad. Peggy left the room and quickly grabbed her coat and<br />
keys. She was out of the door before Jim could follow her through<br />
the house.</p>
<p>     Jim quickly got his essentials and began looking for his<br />
keys. He couldn&#8217;t find his god-damned keys. His mind was reeling.<br />
Suddenly he remembered that he had left them in his overcoat,<br />
retrieved them and headed for the garage. He was shaking with an-<br />
ticipation as he grabbed his jacket and reached into the pocket<br />
for his green ribbon. His wife was off to the grocery store and<br />
would likely find more that ground chuck upon completion of her<br />
mission. He headed toward the grocery store with his cock still<br />
heavy with anticipation.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s heart jumped once again as he pulled into the parking<br />
lot and saw Peggy&#8217;s van parked there. Still shaking slightly, he<br />
exited the car and began his journey into the store. On his way,<br />
he recovered a shopping cart in the parking lot and pushed it<br />
toward the automatic doors. He thought how humorous it must be<br />
that some of the observers in the area were likely thinking that<br />
he was doing his part to bring one of the carts back to the<br />
store. Actually, he was trying to hide his substantial hard on.<br />
As he entered the store, his eyes began to search for Peggy. His<br />
gaze then went to the zipper of his jacket to assure himself that<br />
his ribbon was in place. It was. Where would she go first? He<br />
would try the dairy isle. True to habit, Peggy was at the dairy<br />
section viewing the offerings. Jim just stood back and watched.<br />
She was a good shopper, moving through the isles quickly captur-<br />
ing all of those necessities that she was so used to buying.</p>
<p>     It wasn&#8217;t busy in the store. There were only several shop-<br />
pers there at the time. Many of them appeared to be single men<br />
struggling through this chore. It didn&#8217;t take Jim long to observe<br />
that Peggy had removed her coat and hung it over the back of the<br />
cart. Soon, it became apparent that the men in the store were<br />
watching her fine ass as it passed. When she reached for an item,<br />
her breasts would often swing against the material of her top and<br />
thrill the onlookers. Jim&#8217;s cock remained hard and ready. He<br />
decided that it was about time he allowed Peggy to notice him. He<br />
traveled the reverse way of the traffic pattern that Peggy had<br />
established so he could face her in his travels. As he rounded<br />
the soup section, there she was.</p>
<p>     Peggy was being followed casually by two men, one behind the<br />
other. At this point they were merely pretending to shop. It was<br />
obvious that they were benefiting from the view of her great<br />
body. This excited Jim even more. Soon Peggy&#8217;s casual gaze met<br />
Jim. She looked away and then her head snapped back to rivet on<br />
the green ribbon of his jacket. She immediately began to blush.<br />
She quickly looked away and began sneaking peeks at this<br />
&#8220;stranger.&#8221; As she turned the corner, Jim could see that she was<br />
trying to see more of him.</p>
<p>     Again they appeared in the same isle, the wine section,<br />
going in their respective directions. Peggy stopped to view the<br />
selection, Jim continued his slow walk toward her. Jim knew Peggy<br />
well enough to know that she would probably not make the first<br />
move. It was his responsibility. As he closed in, he stopped and<br />
asked her if she liked the brand of wine she held in her hand.<br />
She indicated that she liked to try different brands and types,<br />
and he indicated that he did also. As their conversation<br />
developed, she became more talkative. They began to walk in the<br />
same direction, talking about many of their interests. Her eyes<br />
periodically moved to his bulge. Her nose became filled with his<br />
scent. She was getting aroused just walking next to him.</p>
<p>     They found that they had quite a bit in common, obviously,<br />
and Jim suggested that they meet for coffee some day. Peggy indi-<br />
cated that the idea sat well with her and assured him that she<br />
would enjoy it. The next test was soon to come. Jim excused him-<br />
self and told her that he enjoyed talking with her. She offered<br />
her phone number and bid Jim good bye. As she began walking away,<br />
Peggy&#8217;s mind must have gone into high gear. The suggestion that<br />
she may never see this man again must have assaulted her aware-<br />
ness. She turned and Jim continued to walk.</p>
<p>     She caught his attention and indicated to him that she<br />
didn&#8217;t even know his name. He told her that his name was Eddie<br />
and, she advised him that she was Peggy. She then suddenly asked<br />
him it he had plans for the rest of the evening. He smiled and<br />
indicated that he did not. Peggy then told &#8220;Eddie&#8221; that she was<br />
not committed to anything either and thought that it would be a<br />
shame to have to drink her bottle of wine all by herself. She<br />
couldn&#8217;t believe her own ears. Did that come out of her lips?<br />
&#8220;Eddie&#8221; smiled and told her that it was late and she probably<br />
should be escorted to her home anyway. &#8220;Let&#8217;s get to check out<br />
and I&#8217;ll follow you home,&#8221; he offered. She agreed with a smile<br />
and a shake of her head and they approached the check out<br />
counter. Having completed this task they headed toward their<br />
cars.</p>
<p>     Jim actually felt as though Peggy was a stranger. She acted<br />
a little differently. She was infinitely more sexy, and she moved<br />
in such a way as to accentuate her lovely body. Jim continued to<br />
imagine Peggy being with a strange man, pressing her lips to him,<br />
touching his strange penis and offering him all of her charms.<br />
Naughtiness &#8211; that was it. It was naughty. Every conceivable sex<br />
act invaded his mind. He couldn&#8217;t remember being this aroused.<br />
Soon they were at &#8220;Peggy&#8217;s home.&#8221; She pulled into the drive and<br />
exited the van with packages in tow. She fumbled with her keys<br />
and opened the door. Jim was directly behind her, watching her<br />
buttocks move under the tight material. He felt it curious how<br />
her hands shook as she placed the key in the lock to allow them<br />
entrance.</p>
<p>     Once inside, Peggy told &#8220;Eddie&#8221; to make himself comfortable<br />
and she would be right with him. &#8220;Eddie&#8221; went to the couch and<br />
collapsed. He couldn&#8217;t remember ever sitting on the couch. He<br />
generally sat in an easy chair. He really felt as if he were in<br />
someone else&#8217;s house. He heard Peggy getting glasses and ice to<br />
chill the glasses. Soon she joined him in the living room,<br />
deposited the tray of wine and sat at the opposite end of the<br />
couch. Jim got a smirk on his face, and Peggy understood. She<br />
told him that she had never invited anyone over before, and Jim<br />
offered a fake frown. She then hastened to mention that she was<br />
married and it would probably be poorly perceived that she did<br />
invite him over.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Eddie&#8221; told her that if she was uncomfortable, he would<br />
leave. She indicated that she was uncomfortable, but she did not<br />
want him to leave. She found him so interesting that she wanted<br />
to know more about him. She wanted to know why he had accepted<br />
her offer to come over when he didn&#8217;t even know her. Jim pulled<br />
out all of the stops. &#8220;I find you to be one of the most exciting<br />
women I have ever met and was hoping that I could get to know you<br />
better. I can&#8217;t very well get to know you if you are sitting at<br />
the other end of the couch,&#8221; he shared as he reached and put his<br />
hand on her arm. They slowly moved toward each other and their<br />
lips met.</p>
<p>     Her body felt new. After twenty years of marriage, he was on<br />
fire. He felt her body tremble as she pressed her breasts into<br />
his chest. His hand cupped the back of her head and pulled her<br />
toward him. Soon her tongue touched his lip and begged for admit-<br />
tance to his hot mouth. His tongue met hers and they seemed to<br />
melt together. Jim placed his left hand under her sweater and<br />
found a warm breast with its nipple plump and straining. He felt<br />
the weight of her flesh. He gently pinched her nipple, and she<br />
sighed heavily as her tongue reached farther into his mouth. His<br />
hand now reached down and slipped into her slacks and beneath her<br />
panties to cup the swell of her buttocks. Dipping into the moist<br />
canyon of her ass cheeks, he squeezed and felt her respond by<br />
placing her hand on his now gigantic cock. Suddenly she stopped<br />
her aggression and seemed to become concerned. Jim asked her if<br />
there was something wrong. &#8220;Eddie, I have to make something clear<br />
to you. I am married, and I love my husband very much. I have<br />
never done anything like this before, and I&#8217;m concerned that it&#8217;s<br />
wrong,&#8221; she said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Do you think that Jim would be really upset with us?&#8221; he<br />
inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Actually, it would probably be quite the contrary. Jim has<br />
hinted many times throughout our marriage that the thought of me<br />
making it with someone else would be a real turn on for him,&#8221;<br />
Peggy explained.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Well, I promise not to take it too serious, if you don&#8217;t.<br />
What do you say? You tell Jim what you want to. You know him well<br />
enough to pick what to tell him and when,&#8221; Jim urged. She smiled<br />
at him and placed his hand back on her soft, waiting breast.</p>
<p>     After what seemed like only seconds, Jim reached under both<br />
sides of Peggy&#8217;s sweater and lifted it over her head. He saw the<br />
lovely breasts stretch upward as she raised her arms over her<br />
head to accommodate his efforts. Her eyes were glued to his to<br />
observe the appreciation on his face. His head immediately<br />
dropped to her juicy nipple as his hand lifted her heavy tit to<br />
his mouth. Again a moan escaped her lips, as her hand began work-<br />
ing on the zipper of his pants. Soon they were both naked.</p>
<p>     Peggy&#8217;s love tunnel was wet with her own juices. She knew<br />
that she had never been this excited, as the cream began running<br />
down her legs and into the crack of her ass. In a quick motion,<br />
her head fell onto his thick bone and devoured it. Up and down<br />
she went trying to stuff every morsel of his eight inch cock into<br />
her throat. Her hands manipulated the hairy balls as if she were<br />
trying to prepare his cum for its inevitable exit. He wanted to<br />
slide his tongue into her swollen cunt but didn&#8217;t want her to<br />
stop what she was doing. He just laid back and enjoyed what was<br />
happening. Quickly, he felt the come boiling in his heavy balls.<br />
He was going to ejaculate. Without a word, he withdrew his vein<br />
covered meat from her lips. He rearranged her on the couch and<br />
threw her legs back forcing his tongue into the deep, dark honey<br />
pot. She even tasted different. His lips began plucking at her<br />
now hard clit, dipping his tongue deep into her hole from time to<br />
time.</p>
<p>     Peggy soon let out what can only be described as a deep<br />
grunt. Her hips began pounding against Jim&#8217;s face as she held his<br />
head in place. Her breasts were flopping wildly as she shame-<br />
lessly fucked his face with her dripping cunt. &#8220;Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhhh<br />
my god &#8211; Oh &#8211; Oh &#8211; Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhh,&#8221; she cried. It went on and<br />
on. She continued to convulse as his tongue milked the cream from<br />
deep in her hole. He had never seen Peggy come this hard or this<br />
long. His face was becoming covered with her love juices and<br />
detached pubic hair. Soon she lay there completely spent and al-<br />
most unconscious. Jim went to the rest room and acquired a towel.<br />
He wiped his face, sat in his easy chair and continued to stroke<br />
his huge erection.</p>
<p>     Jim exited the chair and poured two glasses of wine. He<br />
moved to the couch and offered one to Peggy. She took it with<br />
what was clearly a weak hand. After a long sip on the cool wine,<br />
she offered a huge grin and told him that she hoped he didn&#8217;t<br />
think that she was done. He returned the smile, took a sip of his<br />
glass and returned to his chair, stroking his heavy penis. Peggy<br />
quickly recovered as the sexiest look came over her face. She<br />
moved over to the chair and placed herself between this man&#8217;s<br />
legs. She placed her lips over his flaccid penis, and he knew in-<br />
stantly that she still had wine in her mouth. The sensation was<br />
great. He felt the cool wine encompass his cock. Soon the wine<br />
was gone and only her hot quick lips remained, sliding up and<br />
down his shaft. He reached down and felt the weight of her heavy<br />
tits, bouncing as her head pounded his penis. He looked down her<br />
smooth back to the cleft between the cheeks of her tight ass.<br />
Surely, heaven was like this.</p>
<p>     Jim had the greatest urge in the world to drive his thick,<br />
long cock into this woman. Suddenly he rose and began to push<br />
Peggy over to the couch, spreading her legs as she fell backward.<br />
&#8220;Wait, Eddie. Would you please fuck me like a dog. I would love<br />
to feel your huge bone in my cunt as your thighs pound against my<br />
ass,&#8221; she begged. Jim backed off and allowed Peggy to get on her<br />
knees. He looked down and saw her buttocks displayed before him;<br />
her gaping cunt with soaked hair and dripping from excitement. He<br />
took his cock in his hand and began to stroke it once again, as<br />
he aimed it toward her dark slit. Her breasts undulating with a<br />
gentle bounce, she waited to be filled with this strange cock.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s thick rod encountered no resistance as it parted the<br />
lips of her fragrant hole and slid deep into this cavern of love.<br />
Upon initial entry, Peggy once again began to convulse with spasm<br />
after spasm of orgasm. Her box engulfed Jim&#8217;s pounding cock and<br />
squeezed it tight. He drove deeper and deeper into her belly.<br />
&#8220;Fuck me, fuck me harder, fuck me deeper. Drive that bone into my<br />
cunt, mother fucker. Fill my guts with your cream. Fuck that<br />
cunt, squeeze my ass; harder,&#8221; she screamed.</p>
<p>     He could take it no longer. Deep within his balls he could<br />
feel the cream exploding for release. Bang! It erupted. The first<br />
convulsion, he squirted a huge load of come into her cunt. He<br />
then pulled his jumping rod from her hole and shot several vol-<br />
leys of hot juice on her ass and back. She reached back and<br />
started to smear the thick sticky cream over her ass and back.<br />
She grabbed Jim&#8217;s cock and continued to milk it as she cried with<br />
joy.</p>
<p>     They both collapsed on the couch into one another&#8217;s arms and<br />
fell off to sleep. Jim was the first to awaken. He went to the<br />
rest room, cleaned up and returned with a hot wash cloth and a<br />
towel for Peggy. As he nudged Peggy her eyes slowly opened. As<br />
soon as she was aware, Jim snapped his fingers twice, and Peggy&#8217;s<br />
eyes closed again. Jim told her that she would soon awaken, feel-<br />
ing wonderful and remembering everything as though it actually<br />
happened. She would feel no guilt and would be proud that she<br />
finally obtained the courage to make love with a stranger. He<br />
further told her that she could feel free to tell him about her<br />
experience in her own good time. Peggy was awoken, freshened up,<br />
went to bed and fell off into a wonderful natural sleep.</p>
<p>     The next morning she was surprised to find Jim home, think-<br />
ing that he would be gone for another day. He told her that he<br />
had finished his business early and had missed her. She im-<br />
mediately reached for his cock and placed it in her mouth. &#8216;Let<br />
the games begin,&#8217; he thought. He also let his mind wander about<br />
the next experience he would treat her to. He was on fire again.</p>
<p>                     CHAPTER ELEVEN &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     Jim could feel himself becoming more interested in what<br />
wonders hypnosis had to offer he and Peggy and their sexual<br />
desires. He decided to take Peggy to a new level of sexual<br />
heights. He had helped Peggy experience complete hallucination of<br />
the senses on two different occasions. The first was to find her<br />
on a secluded beach masturbating, and the second was a wonderful<br />
massage by a great looking stranger. Now what? She had still<br />
never had a stranger&#8217;s cock in her body. Jim decided that would<br />
be the next adventure. He would introduce Peggy to this ex-<br />
perience on Saturday night.</p>
<p>     The week seemed to drag on. It seemed as though Saturday<br />
would never come. Each time Jim looked at Peggy he thought about<br />
how exciting it would be for Peggy to give her body to a strange<br />
man; her lovely breasts, her round buttocks, her hot pussy.<br />
Strange hands on her skin; her lips on another man&#8217;s penis; his<br />
hairy balls resting in her hands and on the soft cheeks of her<br />
ass. He went wild with the thought of it. And then Saturday came.</p>
<p>     They spent their evening in the same fashion as usual. A<br />
movie, a pizza and a bottle of wine were their entertainment. The<br />
movie was not bad, the pizza was different and the wine was<br />
great. Jim did have a hard time keeping his mind on anything<br />
other than sex. As they prepared to retire, Jim&#8217;s apprehension<br />
increased. Peggy had no idea what was to take place. As Peggy<br />
dressed in her night clothes to get into bed, again Jim&#8217;s mind<br />
wandered to thoughts of another man gazing on her wonderful body.<br />
Jim snapped his fingers twice, his regular post hypnotic suggest-<br />
ion that would place Peggy into a deep trance state. He watched<br />
her eyes close. A warm smile appeared on her lips, and she melted<br />
into a deep sleep.</p>
<p>     Jim continued to bring Peggy deeper and deeper into her<br />
trance. He suggested to her that upon reaching her deepest trance<br />
state she would begin to feel very sexy. He continued along these<br />
lines for quite some time until he could perceive Peggy actually<br />
beginning to squirm. She was hot and wanted fucked. Jim told her<br />
that he would soon wake her and when she awoke, she would find<br />
herself all alone and extremely horny. She would dress completely<br />
in a tight fitting outfit, get in the car and go to the all-night<br />
grocery store.</p>
<p>     When she reached the store, she would complete the shopping<br />
that she was going to do the next day. While at the grocery<br />
store, she would meet a stranger with a green ribbon in the zip-<br />
per of his coat. As soon as she identified the green ribbon, the<br />
man wearing the ribbon would be the most exciting man she had<br />
ever seen. She would have trouble taking her eyes off of him.<br />
This would be the man she always wanted to make love to.</p>
<p>     Jim went on to explain that she would be attracted to this<br />
man so much, because she may never have the chance to see him<br />
again. He further told her not to concern herself with Jim be-<br />
cause he would be out of town on business for two days. Before he<br />
woke Peggy up he decided to give her one more post hypnotic sug-<br />
gestion. That suggestion took the form of the length of each of<br />
her orgasms. He would pyramid them. He told her that the inten-<br />
sity of her climax would be double what she ever experienced<br />
before.</p>
<p>     After assuring her that she would remember nothing about<br />
being in a trance, Jim woke Peggy up. Now would follow the first<br />
test. Would she awaken, go about the business of getting ready<br />
for the grocery store and not be able to see Jim. He waited with<br />
a great deal of interest as he watched Peggy get ready to go to<br />
the store. He sat in a chair in the corner of the master bedroom<br />
silently.</p>
<p>     Peggy got up from the bed and went into the bathroom off the<br />
bedroom without acknowledging Jim&#8217;s presence. He never took his<br />
eyes off Peggy as she began to pin her hair up to take a shower.<br />
Her hair secure, she removed her night clothes, and Jim&#8217;s blood<br />
began to race. His thick penis began to grow as he viewed her<br />
lovely bouncing breasts and the cleave of her ass cheeks. Her<br />
soft pubic hair was brought into view as she turned. She stopped<br />
in front of the mirror and began to admire herself.</p>
<p>     Her hands reached up and gently cupped her ample breasts.<br />
Peggy pointed the nipples at the mirror and a smile crept over<br />
her lips. As the thumb and forefinger of each hand pinched the<br />
generous pink nipples of each mound of flesh her eyes rolled up<br />
and closed. Maintaining her grasp on one of the nipples, she al-<br />
lowed her other hand to dip down to her bush. Jim had never seen<br />
Peggy alone and unaware of a spectator. He now understood what a<br />
voyeur must feel like. His hard rod stretched to its maximum<br />
length.</p>
<p>     Peggy began to furiously rub her clit and manipulate her<br />
breasts. Jim heard a soft moan and Peggy turned from the mirror<br />
to head for the shower. Jim&#8217;s excitement continued as Peggy en-<br />
tered the hot stream of the shower and soaped every inch of her<br />
hot body. She toweled herself off and moved toward the dressing<br />
table. As she bent over to open a drawer, her buttocks were of-<br />
fered to his intense view; so pink and round and tight. Suddenly<br />
she removed a tight kelley green pair of slacks and tossed them<br />
on the bed next to the dressing table.</p>
<p>     Next she removed a white knit top and placed it next to the<br />
slacks. Peggy entered her undies drawer and withdrew a sexy pair<br />
of panties. As she reached down for the panties, Jim could see<br />
her heavy breasts swing down and undulate as if they had a life<br />
of their own.</p>
<p>     Peggy stepped into the panties and pulled them up over her<br />
tight buttocks. She quickly donned her slacks and pulled the top<br />
on without a bra. Admiring herself in the mirror, her hands went<br />
to her breasts, and she felt the weight in her hands. Satisfied<br />
that her body would look its best in this outfit, she reached for<br />
a comb. She combed her hair and reached for her make-up case to<br />
place the final touches on this portrait. Uncontrollably, seminal<br />
fluid began to seep out of Jim&#8217;s straining cock. He began think-<br />
ing about old baseball games to keep himself from blowing his en-<br />
tire wad. Peggy left the room and quickly grabbed her coat and<br />
keys. She was out of the door before Jim could follow her through<br />
the house.</p>
<p>     Jim quickly got his essentials and began looking for his<br />
keys. He couldn&#8217;t find his god-damned keys. His mind was reeling.<br />
Suddenly he remembered that he had left them in his overcoat,<br />
retrieved them and headed for the garage. He was shaking with an-<br />
ticipation as he grabbed his jacket and reached into the pocket<br />
for his green ribbon. His wife was off to the grocery store and<br />
would likely find more that ground chuck upon completion of her<br />
mission. He headed toward the grocery store with his cock still<br />
heavy with anticipation.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s heart jumped once again as he pulled into the parking<br />
lot and saw Peggy&#8217;s van parked there. Still shaking slightly, he<br />
exited the car and began his journey into the store. On his way,<br />
he recovered a shopping cart in the parking lot and pushed it<br />
toward the automatic doors. He thought how humorous it must be<br />
that some of the observers in the area were likely thinking that<br />
he was doing his part to bring one of the carts back to the<br />
store. Actually, he was trying to hide his substantial hard on.<br />
As he entered the store, his eyes began to search for Peggy. His<br />
gaze then went to the zipper of his jacket to assure himself that<br />
his ribbon was in place. It was. Where would she go first? He<br />
would try the dairy isle. True to habit, Peggy was at the dairy<br />
section viewing the offerings. Jim just stood back and watched.<br />
She was a good shopper, moving through the isles quickly captur-<br />
ing all of those necessities that she was so used to buying.</p>
<p>     It wasn&#8217;t busy in the store. There were only several shop-<br />
pers there at the time. Many of them appeared to be single men<br />
struggling through this chore. It didn&#8217;t take Jim long to observe<br />
that Peggy had removed her coat and hung it over the back of the<br />
cart. Soon, it became apparent that the men in the store were<br />
watching her fine ass as it passed. When she reached for an item,<br />
her breasts would often swing against the material of her top and<br />
thrill the onlookers. Jim&#8217;s cock remained hard and ready. He<br />
decided that it was about time he allowed Peggy to notice him. He<br />
traveled the reverse way of the traffic pattern that Peggy had<br />
established so he could face her in his travels. As he rounded<br />
the soup section, there she was.</p>
<p>     Peggy was being followed casually by two men, one behind the<br />
other. At this point they were merely pretending to shop. It was<br />
obvious that they were benefiting from the view of her great<br />
body. This excited Jim even more. Soon Peggy&#8217;s casual gaze met<br />
Jim. She looked away and then her head snapped back to rivet on<br />
the green ribbon of his jacket. She immediately began to blush.<br />
She quickly looked away and began sneaking peeks at this<br />
&#8220;stranger.&#8221; As she turned the corner, Jim could see that she was<br />
trying to see more of him.</p>
<p>     Again they appeared in the same isle, the wine section,<br />
going in their respective directions. Peggy stopped to view the<br />
selection, Jim continued his slow walk toward her. Jim knew Peggy<br />
well enough to know that she would probably not make the first<br />
move. It was his responsibility. As he closed in, he stopped and<br />
asked her if she liked the brand of wine she held in her hand.<br />
She indicated that she liked to try different brands and types,<br />
and he indicated that he did also. As their conversation<br />
developed, she became more talkative. They began to walk in the<br />
same direction, talking about many of their interests. Her eyes<br />
periodically moved to his bulge. Her nose became filled with his<br />
scent. She was getting aroused just walking next to him.</p>
<p>     They found that they had quite a bit in common, obviously,<br />
and Jim suggested that they meet for coffee some day. Peggy indi-<br />
cated that the idea sat well with her and assured him that she<br />
would enjoy it. The next test was soon to come. Jim excused him-<br />
self and told her that he enjoyed talking with her. She offered<br />
her phone number and bid Jim good bye. As she began walking away,<br />
Peggy&#8217;s mind must have gone into high gear. The suggestion that<br />
she may never see this man again must have assaulted her aware-<br />
ness. She turned and Jim continued to walk.</p>
<p>     She caught his attention and indicated to him that she<br />
didn&#8217;t even know his name. He told her that his name was Eddie<br />
and, she advised him that she was Peggy. She then suddenly asked<br />
him it he had plans for the rest of the evening. He smiled and<br />
indicated that he did not. Peggy then told &#8220;Eddie&#8221; that she was<br />
not committed to anything either and thought that it would be a<br />
shame to have to drink her bottle of wine all by herself. She<br />
couldn&#8217;t believe her own ears. Did that come out of her lips?<br />
&#8220;Eddie&#8221; smiled and told her that it was late and she probably<br />
should be escorted to her home anyway. &#8220;Let&#8217;s get to check out<br />
and I&#8217;ll follow you home,&#8221; he offered. She agreed with a smile<br />
and a shake of her head and they approached the check out<br />
counter. Having completed this task they headed toward their<br />
cars.</p>
<p>     Jim actually felt as though Peggy was a stranger. She acted<br />
a little differently. She was infinitely more sexy, and she moved<br />
in such a way as to accentuate her lovely body. Jim continued to<br />
imagine Peggy being with a strange man, pressing her lips to him,<br />
touching his strange penis and offering him all of her charms.<br />
Naughtiness &#8211; that was it. It was naughty. Every conceivable sex<br />
act invaded his mind. He couldn&#8217;t remember being this aroused.<br />
Soon they were at &#8220;Peggy&#8217;s home.&#8221; She pulled into the drive and<br />
exited the van with packages in tow. She fumbled with her keys<br />
and opened the door. Jim was directly behind her, watching her<br />
buttocks move under the tight material. He felt it curious how<br />
her hands shook as she placed the key in the lock to allow them<br />
entrance.</p>
<p>     Once inside, Peggy told &#8220;Eddie&#8221; to make himself comfortable<br />
and she would be right with him. &#8220;Eddie&#8221; went to the couch and<br />
collapsed. He couldn&#8217;t remember ever sitting on the couch. He<br />
generally sat in an easy chair. He really felt as if he were in<br />
someone else&#8217;s house. He heard Peggy getting glasses and ice to<br />
chill the glasses. Soon she joined him in the living room,<br />
deposited the tray of wine and sat at the opposite end of the<br />
couch. Jim got a smirk on his face, and Peggy understood. She<br />
told him that she had never invited anyone over before, and Jim<br />
offered a fake frown. She then hastened to mention that she was<br />
married and it would probably be poorly perceived that she did<br />
invite him over.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Eddie&#8221; told her that if she was uncomfortable, he would<br />
leave. She indicated that she was uncomfortable, but she did not<br />
want him to leave. She found him so interesting that she wanted<br />
to know more about him. She wanted to know why he had accepted<br />
her offer to come over when he didn&#8217;t even know her. Jim pulled<br />
out all of the stops. &#8220;I find you to be one of the most exciting<br />
women I have ever met and was hoping that I could get to know you<br />
better. I can&#8217;t very well get to know you if you are sitting at<br />
the other end of the couch,&#8221; he shared as he reached and put his<br />
hand on her arm. They slowly moved toward each other and their<br />
lips met.</p>
<p>     Her body felt new. After twenty years of marriage, he was on<br />
fire. He felt her body tremble as she pressed her breasts into<br />
his chest. His hand cupped the back of her head and pulled her<br />
toward him. Soon her tongue touched his lip and begged for admit-<br />
tance to his hot mouth. His tongue met hers and they seemed to<br />
melt together. Jim placed his left hand under her sweater and<br />
found a warm breast with its nipple plump and straining. He felt<br />
the weight of her flesh. He gently pinched her nipple, and she<br />
sighed heavily as her tongue reached farther into his mouth. His<br />
hand now reached down and slipped into her slacks and beneath her<br />
panties to cup the swell of her buttocks. Dipping into the moist<br />
canyon of her ass cheeks, he squeezed and felt her respond by<br />
placing her hand on his now gigantic cock. Suddenly she stopped<br />
her aggression and seemed to become concerned. Jim asked her if<br />
there was something wrong. &#8220;Eddie, I have to make something clear<br />
to you. I am married, and I love my husband very much. I have<br />
never done anything like this before, and I&#8217;m concerned that it&#8217;s<br />
wrong,&#8221; she said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Do you think that Jim would be really upset with us?&#8221; he<br />
inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Actually, it would probably be quite the contrary. Jim has<br />
hinted many times throughout our marriage that the thought of me<br />
making it with someone else would be a real turn on for him,&#8221;<br />
Peggy explained.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Well, I promise not to take it too serious, if you don&#8217;t.<br />
What do you say? You tell Jim what you want to. You know him well<br />
enough to pick what to tell him and when,&#8221; Jim urged. She smiled<br />
at him and placed his hand back on her soft, waiting breast.</p>
<p>     After what seemed like only seconds, Jim reached under both<br />
sides of Peggy&#8217;s sweater and lifted it over her head. He saw the<br />
lovely breasts stretch upward as she raised her arms over her<br />
head to accommodate his efforts. Her eyes were glued to his to<br />
observe the appreciation on his face. His head immediately<br />
dropped to her juicy nipple as his hand lifted her heavy tit to<br />
his mouth. Again a moan escaped her lips, as her hand began work-<br />
ing on the zipper of his pants. Soon they were both naked.</p>
<p>     Peggy&#8217;s love tunnel was wet with her own juices. She knew<br />
that she had never been this excited, as the cream began running<br />
down her legs and into the crack of her ass. In a quick motion,<br />
her head fell onto his thick bone and devoured it. Up and down<br />
she went trying to stuff every morsel of his eight inch cock into<br />
her throat. Her hands manipulated the hairy balls as if she were<br />
trying to prepare his cum for its inevitable exit. He wanted to<br />
slide his tongue into her swollen cunt but didn&#8217;t want her to<br />
stop what she was doing. He just laid back and enjoyed what was<br />
happening. Quickly, he felt the come boiling in his heavy balls.<br />
He was going to ejaculate. Without a word, he withdrew his vein<br />
covered meat from her lips. He rearranged her on the couch and<br />
threw her legs back forcing his tongue into the deep, dark honey<br />
pot. She even tasted different. His lips began plucking at her<br />
now hard clit, dipping his tongue deep into her hole from time to<br />
time.</p>
<p>     Peggy soon let out what can only be described as a deep<br />
grunt. Her hips began pounding against Jim&#8217;s face as she held his<br />
head in place. Her breasts were flopping wildly as she shame-<br />
lessly fucked his face with her dripping cunt. &#8220;Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhhh<br />
my god &#8211; Oh &#8211; Oh &#8211; Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhh,&#8221; she cried. It went on and<br />
on. She continued to convulse as his tongue milked the cream from<br />
deep in her hole. He had never seen Peggy come this hard or this<br />
long. His face was becoming covered with her love juices and<br />
detached pubic hair. Soon she lay there completely spent and al-<br />
most unconscious. Jim went to the rest room and acquired a towel.<br />
He wiped his face, sat in his easy chair and continued to stroke<br />
his huge erection.</p>
<p>     Jim exited the chair and poured two glasses of wine. He<br />
moved to the couch and offered one to Peggy. She took it with<br />
what was clearly a weak hand. After a long sip on the cool wine,<br />
she offered a huge grin and told him that she hoped he didn&#8217;t<br />
think that she was done. He returned the smile, took a sip of his<br />
glass and returned to his chair, stroking his heavy penis. Peggy<br />
quickly recovered as the sexiest look came over her face. She<br />
moved over to the chair and placed herself between this man&#8217;s<br />
legs. She placed her lips over his flaccid penis, and he knew in-<br />
stantly that she still had wine in her mouth. The sensation was<br />
great. He felt the cool wine encompass his cock. Soon the wine<br />
was gone and only her hot quick lips remained, sliding up and<br />
down his shaft. He reached down and felt the weight of her heavy<br />
tits, bouncing as her head pounded his penis. He looked down her<br />
smooth back to the cleft between the cheeks of her tight ass.<br />
Surely, heaven was like this.</p>
<p>     Jim had the greatest urge in the world to drive his thick,<br />
long cock into this woman. Suddenly he rose and began to push<br />
Peggy over to the couch, spreading her legs as she fell backward.<br />
&#8220;Wait, Eddie. Would you please fuck me like a dog. I would love<br />
to feel your huge bone in my cunt as your thighs pound against my<br />
ass,&#8221; she begged. Jim backed off and allowed Peggy to get on her<br />
knees. He looked down and saw her buttocks displayed before him;<br />
her gaping cunt with soaked hair and dripping from excitement. He<br />
took his cock in his hand and began to stroke it once again, as<br />
he aimed it toward her dark slit. Her breasts undulating with a<br />
gentle bounce, she waited to be filled with this strange cock.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s thick rod encountered no resistance as it parted the<br />
lips of her fragrant hole and slid deep into this cavern of love.<br />
Upon initial entry, Peggy once again began to convulse with spasm<br />
after spasm of orgasm. Her box engulfed Jim&#8217;s pounding cock and<br />
squeezed it tight. He drove deeper and deeper into her belly.<br />
&#8220;Fuck me, fuck me harder, fuck me deeper. Drive that bone into my<br />
cunt, mother fucker. Fill my guts with your cream. Fuck that<br />
cunt, squeeze my ass; harder,&#8221; she screamed.</p>
<p>     He could take it no longer. Deep within his balls he could<br />
feel the cream exploding for release. Bang! It erupted. The first<br />
convulsion, he squirted a huge load of come into her cunt. He<br />
then pulled his jumping rod from her hole and shot several vol-<br />
leys of hot juice on her ass and back. She reached back and<br />
started to smear the thick sticky cream over her ass and back.<br />
She grabbed Jim&#8217;s cock and continued to milk it as she cried with<br />
joy.</p>
<p>     They both collapsed on the couch into one another&#8217;s arms and<br />
fell off to sleep. Jim was the first to awaken. He went to the<br />
rest room, cleaned up and returned with a hot wash cloth and a<br />
towel for Peggy. As he nudged Peggy her eyes slowly opened. As<br />
soon as she was aware, Jim snapped his fingers twice, and Peggy&#8217;s<br />
eyes closed again. Jim told her that she would soon awaken, feel-<br />
ing wonderful and remembering everything as though it actually<br />
happened. She would feel no guilt and would be proud that she<br />
finally obtained the courage to make love with a stranger. He<br />
further told her that she could feel free to tell him about her<br />
experience in her own good time. Peggy was awoken, freshened up,<br />
went to bed and fell off into a wonderful natural sleep.</p>
<p>     The next morning she was surprised to find Jim home, think-<br />
ing that he would be gone for another day. He told her that he<br />
had finished his business early and had missed her. She im-<br />
mediately reached for his cock and placed it in her mouth. &#8216;Let<br />
the games begin,&#8217; he thought. He also let his mind wander about<br />
the next experience he would treat her to. He was on fire again.</p>
<p>                     CHAPTER TWELVE &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     Jim sat in the office as his mind began to settle down from<br />
the day&#8217;s activity. His pushed back from the desk, leaned back in<br />
his chair, placed his hands behind his head and began to think<br />
about the last hypnosex experience with Peggy, his wife. As his<br />
thoughts began to touch those moments when his wife was making<br />
love with another man, his cock started to grow. With eyes closed<br />
his mind began painting pictures of Peggy parting her soaked<br />
pussy so that &#8220;Eddie&#8221; could bury his straining cock. He was con-<br />
vinced that it was time for another experiment. He would prepare<br />
for another mind altering experience.</p>
<p>     The ride home was a blur. His mind focused on the events<br />
that he would create for his wife&#8217;s enjoyment. Up until this<br />
point she had never shared with Jim that she had experienced<br />
&#8220;another man.&#8221; He pulled into the drive and pushed the button to<br />
open the garage. Peggy was in the kitchen as he entered. She<br />
smiled, welcomed him home and offered her lovely lips to him.<br />
Peggy continued her efforts to complete dinner as Jim went into<br />
the bedroom to change for dinner. As he undressed, he was happy<br />
to see that the thoughts he was having on the way home nicely af-<br />
fected the heaviness and length of his penis. He pulled it out<br />
and began stroking it. He could feel his nipples tingling at the<br />
thought of a new experience for Peggy. Jim dressed and made his<br />
way out of the bedroom.</p>
<p>     Jim entered the dining room and walked up behind Peggy plac-<br />
ing his extended rod against the crack of her ass. He reached up<br />
under her sweat shirt and cupped her bra-less breasts. Her<br />
nipples stabbed his respective palms, and his cock jumped. She<br />
pushed back slightly and indicated that she expected some of<br />
&#8220;that&#8221; later and giggled. He assured her that she would be<br />
pleasantly surprised. &#8220;What does that mean?&#8221; she inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You&#8217;ll see sweetheart. I want to see the look on your face<br />
when you get it, so I won&#8217;t spoil it now,&#8221; he added. Jim was<br />
trying to feel Peggy out about the last experience she had, to<br />
determine whether he was moving too fast and whether it turned<br />
her on as much as it did him.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Tell me honey; with the exception of Marty, your brother&#8217;s<br />
friend, have you ever entertained any thoughts about making it<br />
with another man?&#8221; Jim inquired after they had finished most of<br />
their meal.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You really do want me to fuck someone else, don&#8217;t you? You<br />
know Jim, I don&#8217;t really know how to take you sometimes. I get<br />
concerned that if I do experience another man you will find that<br />
you don&#8217;t really want that. I also get concerned that you will<br />
think I am a slut&#8221;, Peggy responded.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I told you before honey, that I would get a little jealous,<br />
but it would be a great turn on for me. I know you love me, and a<br />
piece of ass wouldn&#8217;t change that. I have more faith in our<br />
relationship after twenty years of marriage to think that I would<br />
care less for you. It&#8217;s actually my request. Why would I get<br />
angry with you. Like I told you before; if you ever want to or<br />
get the chance to have a strange cock in you, I would love it&#8221;,<br />
Jim assured her.</p>
<p>     &#8220;OK, I&#8217;ll take a chance. I did get fucked Jim. It was great,<br />
and I wanted to tell you about it, but I was afraid to, because I<br />
didn&#8217;t want to upset you&#8221;, she began to ramble. She got up from<br />
the table and turned away from Jim as she finished her sentence.<br />
Jim could feel the blood begin to flow in his loins, but he was a<br />
little concerned about Peggy.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Oh honey, you don&#8217;t have to worry about that. You&#8217;ve said<br />
it. I know it now, and I&#8217;m happy for you,&#8221; Jim said as he ap-<br />
proached her from behind. He grabbed her arms and slowly turned<br />
her to face him. Jim looked into her eyes, smiled and kissed her.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Are you sure that you&#8217;re not mad?&#8221; she asked. She was trem-<br />
bling slightly as she nestled into his strong arms.</p>
<p>     &#8220;No honey, I promise that not only am I not angry, I am very<br />
turned on by it. Would you feel comfortable telling me about it?&#8221;<br />
he asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Give me a minute while I think of where to begin. I&#8217;ll put<br />
on some coffee,&#8221; She said. Jim watched her move about the dining<br />
room. His blood was beginning to boil as he saw her buttocks move<br />
under her tight sweat pants and her breasts sway under her shirt.<br />
He began to remember how Peggy reacted to what she thought was a<br />
stranger. He recalled how powerful her orgasms were. He could see<br />
&#8220;Eddie&#8217;s&#8221; hands on her breasts, his lips on her nipples and his<br />
thick cock ramming her hole.</p>
<p>     Peggy put a cup of coffee in front of Jim and began speaking<br />
quietly, &#8220;I really don&#8217;t know what got into me. It was so out of<br />
character. I went to the store to pick up a few things while you<br />
were out of town. I entered the store and really became conscious<br />
of several men in the place. It seemed like they were all looking<br />
at me. I started feeling really sexy. After a short time, I ran<br />
into one man that really seemed to turn me on. I don&#8217;t know what<br />
it was about him. I just began thinking about how it would be to<br />
touch him, have him touch me and I wanted to see his body. I&#8217;m<br />
never like that. We talked and he really seemed to be too good to<br />
be true. He was intelligent, witty and not pushy. I almost let<br />
him walk out of the store, and then something came over me. I<br />
decided that if I could get this guy to come home with me I<br />
would. I kept hearing your voice in the back of my head telling<br />
me that you wouldn&#8217;t mind, and it would turn you on. I was<br />
shocked when he agreed to come over for some wine. You look like<br />
you really enjoy hearing this.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Jim stood up, unzipped his trousers and displayed his im-<br />
mense cock. She had never seen it this big. It&#8217;s head was swollen<br />
and shiny. It looked like a huge tower. Jim said, &#8220;this should<br />
tell you how I feel about it.&#8221; She went on to explain, in detail,<br />
what occurred as Jim stroked his cock. Peggy became so horny<br />
telling Jim about it, that she put her hand between her legs,<br />
pressed against her clit and swayed back and forth as she<br />
finished the story. Jim reminded her that he thought it was won-<br />
derful that she was able to have this new experience and en-<br />
couraged her to feel free to express herself in the future. Both<br />
rose and moved toward one another in the dining room. They fell<br />
into each others arms and joined in a deep kiss. Jim&#8217;s hands were<br />
all over Peggy. She began pumping against his leg as he continued<br />
to whisper sexy things in her ear about the man she had made love<br />
with. They decided that they would go into bed.</p>
<p>     As they reached the bed, Peggy crawled up pulling Jim after<br />
her. As her head hit the pillow, Jim snapped his fingers twice.<br />
Peggy&#8217;s smile began to fade and her eyes closed, as she seemed to<br />
melt into the bed. She became completely relaxed and fell into a<br />
deep sleep. Jim did what he could to make her more comfortable.<br />
He adjusted the pillow, straightened her legs and told her that<br />
she would fall deeper asleep than she ever had. She was again<br />
ready to accept any suggestions that Jim would offer.</p>
<p>     &#8220;When you awaken, I will be out of town again. You will<br />
begin to feel very sexy and horny. You will masturbate and enjoy<br />
a beautiful climax, but it won&#8217;t seem to be enough. You will want<br />
to fill your love hole with a thick, long, glistening penis. All<br />
you will be able to think of is this long cock. You can almost<br />
taste it now. You will want to hold someone&#8217;s heavy, hairy balls<br />
in your hand. You will feel your swollen nipples tingle in an-<br />
ticipation. Your breasts and buttocks will long to be held. You<br />
are beginning to feel the need increase now.</p>
<p>     After you masturbate, you will dress in a sexy outfit and go<br />
out to a single&#8217;s bar to see if there is anyone there who inter-<br />
ests you. When you enter, I will be there but you will not be<br />
able to see me. You will not notice me in any way. You will then<br />
sit at the bar by yourself and order a glass of wine. Several men<br />
may come up to you, but you will all but ignore them. If they ask<br />
you any questions, you will coldly tell them that you are waiting<br />
for a friend. If a man comes up to you and you hear the words<br />
&#8216;Green Ribbon,&#8217; you will become interested in this man. He will<br />
be very similar in appearance to the man that you met in the<br />
grocery store. You will not want this man to get away. You will<br />
want to get to know him better. If you hear the word<br />
&#8216;Catastrophe,&#8221; you will explain to the stranger that although you<br />
think he is nice, you are a married woman and must get home. If<br />
you are comfortable with this man, you will feel free to invite<br />
him to your house for drinks. If everything feels right and you<br />
decide to make love, you will do so in the bedroom.&#8221; Jim was sure<br />
that in this fashion, he could protect her from unwholesome<br />
types, someone who would turn sour during their conversation and<br />
direct her in terms of who she would be leaving with. The entire<br />
time that Peggy spent in the trance state, Jim&#8217;s cock was hard<br />
and anxious to spill. He controlled it, because he wanted to<br />
remain hot to see what the rest of the evening held. He told<br />
Peggy to remain in the trance state until he woke her.</p>
<p>     Jim went to the basement and disconnected the cable from the<br />
cable service and reconnected it to a VCR in the recreation room.<br />
He then connected the wire from the TV to a video camera that sat<br />
on top of a high dresser. After a little adjusting of the camera,<br />
her returned to the basement to see that he would have a ring-<br />
side seat for anything that would occur in the bedroom. Jim<br />
returned to the bedroom to awaken Peggy. She slowly became con-<br />
scious. Jim sat in the chair in the corner of the room and<br />
watched.</p>
<p>     Peggy began to squirm on the bed. Her hands went under her<br />
shirt and grabbed her bra-less breasts. She began to shake them<br />
and pinch at the nipples. Soon she removed it utterly and con-<br />
tinued to deeply massage her breasts. This was something that Jim<br />
rarely saw. She slipped her hand into her pants as her head bent<br />
back into the pillow. Shortly, in one motion, Peggy slipped her<br />
thumbs into the waistband of her sweats and slid them and her<br />
panties down her hips and off. Her hand went immediately to her<br />
slit and began rubbing her clit furiously. Breasts bouncing and<br />
hand gyrating in her quim, Peggy convulsed into marvelous orgasm.<br />
Her eyes squeezed tightly shut, and her mouth opened, gasping for<br />
air.</p>
<p>     Jim was forced to spill his cream as he watched Peggy mas-<br />
turbate. He continued to stroke his weapon as he watched Peggy<br />
get up from the bed and move toward the shower. He could never<br />
get enough of the sight of her lovely buttocks as they rolled<br />
with each step. Jim wished that the whole world could see and ap-<br />
preciate this beautiful view. Peggy pinned up her long brown hair<br />
and stepped into the shower.</p>
<p>     Good use of the time was made by Jim as he waited for Peggy<br />
to dress. He prepared himself in the main bath room and double<br />
checked the video equipment. He could feel himself begin to<br />
shiver as he saw Peggy walk across the bed room while she<br />
dressed. Preparations having been made, Jim went out to his car,<br />
pulled it down the street and waited for Peggy to exit the house.<br />
He didn&#8217;t have to wait long, as soon he saw Peggy&#8217;s car pulling<br />
out of the driveway and heading down the street. He was directly<br />
behind her. She drove down the major highway for about four miles<br />
and turned into a local single&#8217;s lounge. He crawled slowly into<br />
the lot and turned out his lights. Jim watched her confidently<br />
walk from the car to the lounge. He had never remembered her<br />
holding her head so self-confidently.</p>
<p>     As she disappeared inside the lounge, Jim exited his car and<br />
followed her. When he entered, he saw her sitting at the bar. She<br />
looked great and already Jim observed a few of the men looking<br />
her over. He took a position about three stools away from hers<br />
and ordered a drink. There was no one in the bar that he recog-<br />
nized. He had a little concern about that previous to entering<br />
the place as he lived so closely. Soon one of the patrons saun-<br />
tered over to her and asked her something. Jim couldn&#8217;t quite<br />
hear what it was. She turned to him and said something, and he<br />
returned to his seat. This happened on two other occasions with<br />
the same result. Suddenly, a rather tall, nice looking man in his<br />
mid-thirties walked into the lounge and his eyes traveled over<br />
the bar. When he saw Peggy, his eyes seemed to light up. He began<br />
walking in the direction of her bar stool. He sat directly next<br />
to Peggy but said nothing. Jim did feel comfortable with this<br />
man. He felt confident that Peggy would enjoy him.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Green ribbon,&#8221; issued from Jim&#8217;s lips. Peggy seemed to<br />
relax when she heard these words and crossed her shapely legs.<br />
Soon the man next to her said something to her, and Jim observed<br />
her turn toward the man and acknowledge him followed by a bit of<br />
a chuckle. Jim began to get excited. It wasn&#8217;t long before he<br />
noticed the man getting up to pull Peggy&#8217;s chair out. They walked<br />
together toward the dance floor and glided into each other&#8217;s<br />
arms. It was a slow dance and Peggy&#8217;s body was pressed against<br />
this stranger. Jim&#8217;s excitement continued to grow as he saw the<br />
man&#8217;s hand periodically dip down and touch Peggy&#8217;s buttocks. He<br />
wondered what must have been going through the stranger&#8217;s mind as<br />
Peggy&#8217;s lovely tits were pressed against his chest. They danced<br />
closer and closer as the minutes went by. Finally, they returned<br />
to the bar and ordered another drink. Jim followed their lead and<br />
ordered another.</p>
<p>     Jim watched them dance two times more and felt that this<br />
would be a hot experience for all three of them. He wondered what<br />
they must be talking about. Once again the stranger and Peggy<br />
began to get up. This time it was not to dance but rather to<br />
leave. The stranger held Peggy&#8217;s coat while she slipped into it,<br />
and Jim watched as the stranger&#8217;s hands lingered on the lapels as<br />
they covered Peggy&#8217;s ample breasts. Out the door they went fol-<br />
lowed by Jim. Jim got to his car first, as his was closer to the<br />
door. He was torn between sitting to see if they would neck in<br />
the car or rushing home to prepare himself for the show he hoped<br />
to have. He elected the latter and sped out of the parking lot<br />
toward home.</p>
<p>     As soon as Jim reached home, he parked the car and slipped<br />
into the house. Down the stairs he went and locked the door to<br />
the recreation room. He turned on the VCR and the monitor and<br />
again began to shake with anticipation. The moments seemed to be<br />
hours. He sat with frustration creeping into his bones when sud-<br />
denly he heard a car in the drive. Peggy and the stranger wasted<br />
no time in getting into the house. Jim could faintly hear the<br />
sounds of glasses and a wine cork being extracted with a pop. He<br />
sat and watched with anticipation. Nothing appeared on the<br />
monitor. He wished that he had the foresight to set one up in the<br />
living room.</p>
<p>     When Jim was just about to think that nothing would happen,<br />
he saw Peggy enter the bedroom. She walked over to the clothes<br />
tree and immediately removed her outfit. Jim&#8217;s heart jumped as he<br />
saw her shed her bra and panties. She reached into a drawer of<br />
the dresser and removed a little lavender teddy with matching<br />
panties. His cock jumped to attention as he watched her pull the<br />
panties up over the balls of her buttocks and slide the teddy<br />
over her head. She smoothed her hair, ran a comb through it and<br />
admired herself in the mirror. This also excited Jim. She was<br />
primping. He had never really seen this side of her. He felt like<br />
a voyeur, and he loved it. Soon Peggy exited the room.</p>
<p>     Jim sat impatiently waiting for Peggy and the stranger to<br />
return to the bedroom. It wasn&#8217;t long. Now he could hear them.<br />
The stranger&#8217;s name was Jeff, and he followed Peggy over to the<br />
area of the bed. Jim switched on the VCR. Their hands were all<br />
over one another. Peggy&#8217;s hands dropped to Jeff&#8217;s trousers and<br />
began working on the zipper. Suddenly, she dropped to her knees,<br />
and Jim could see her free Jeff&#8217;s huge cock. Immediately, she<br />
opened her mouth and engulfed his straining penis. Jim almost<br />
came in his pants. He took his own cock out and began to stroke<br />
it in long slow movements. He could see his wife&#8217;s lips cover<br />
this huge cock. Jim wondered if this is how it looked when she<br />
sucked his manhood. Peggy helped Jeff as he shed the rest of his<br />
clothes. Jeff&#8217;s cock jumped up and down as he moved over the a<br />
chair to set his clothes down. Jim could see Jeff&#8217;s heavy balls<br />
bouncing with his large penis stretching heavenward. Peggy&#8217;s<br />
hands returned to his balls and her mouth to the head of his<br />
cock.</p>
<p>     Peggy pulled Jeff over to the bed and they collapsed in one<br />
another&#8217;s arms. Only moments went by and Peggy&#8217;s teddy and<br />
panties were tossed to the floor. Her hands clawed Jeff&#8217;s tight<br />
buttocks and continued to return to his thick member. Jim went<br />
wild as he watched Jeff cup the cheeks of Peggy&#8217;s tight ass<br />
cheeks and squeeze them. Jeff&#8217;s hand dipped into the warm moist<br />
cleft between Peggy&#8217;s buttocks and down to her hot hole. The<br />
stranger&#8217;s head searched for and found her beautiful nipples and<br />
began to suck hard. Jim could hear Peggy say, &#8220;fuck me, I need<br />
fucked, I need fucked now Jeff. Put your big cock in my slippery<br />
pussy and fuck my brains out. Yes that&#8217;s it, bite my nipples as<br />
you drive that big bone in my hot cunt hole.&#8221; Jim was going wild.<br />
He couldn&#8217;t take it. His cock began to erupt in huge gobs of jism<br />
into the palm of his hand. He continued to stoke his cock as her<br />
heard the lovely horny screams of Peggy and Jeff&#8217;s deep grunts as<br />
they collapsed together on the bed. What a great climax! The next<br />
was sure to be better.</p>
<p>     The next thing that Jim wanted to orchestrate was being in<br />
the room and participating in Peggy&#8217;s next adventure. But surely<br />
that should be a story in itself.</p>
<p>                     CHAPTER THIRTEEN &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     It was a quiet evening in the den as Jim heard the clock<br />
strike seven. Has hands moved effortlessly over the keyboard of<br />
the computer, writing a letter to a computer friend in Baltimore.<br />
The letter had served the purpose of turning him on as he shared<br />
some rather sensual thoughts. Peggy was washing her hair, and<br />
music was playing softly on the compact disc player.</p>
<p>     Having finished his thoughts, his mind turned to the sight<br />
of Jeff&#8217;s long wet shaft driving in Peggy&#8217;s dripping love tunnel.<br />
That had to be one of the hottest times he had ever experienced.<br />
It was the first time that Peggy had ever had a strange cock in-<br />
side her body. Jim closed his eyes and remembered the sight of<br />
Jeff&#8217;s hands on her well rounded buttocks. He could see his lips<br />
on Peggy&#8217;s nipples; his teeth slightly and tenderly biting the<br />
rock-hard pink tips. Jeff&#8217;s huge hairy balls resting in Peggy&#8217;s<br />
hands. Her perfectly shaped lips spreading to admit the bulbous<br />
head of Jeff&#8217;s straining cock. The thought that drove him the<br />
wildest was when Peggy was on her hands and knees. Jeff came up<br />
behind her with cock in hand and slipped it into Peggy&#8217;s dripping<br />
cunt. Her lovely breasts were dangling and swaying. Jeff reached<br />
around and filled his hands with tit flesh as he drove his thick<br />
rod deep inside Peggy&#8217;s hole. Jim almost had a climax just think-<br />
ing about it. He had to create yet another memory and wasn&#8217;t<br />
quite sure how he would do it.</p>
<p>     He had a good friend that always teased Peggy about how<br />
lovely her body was. Tony often followed Peggy through the house<br />
with his eyes when he came over. Peggy seemed to enjoy Tony&#8217;s<br />
eyes on her body. A few times when they were in close proximity,<br />
Jim had noticed that Tony had &#8220;accidentally&#8221; touched Peggy. One<br />
time, when Tony was helping her lift a chair to move it, Jim was<br />
sure he noticed Tony&#8217;s hands brush up against Peggy&#8217;s ample<br />
breasts and linger a little longer than was necessary. Yet<br />
another time, when they had gone fishing together, Tony came up<br />
behind Peggy and seemed to press himself into her fanny to<br />
demonstrate how to cast the line. Peggy didn&#8217;t seem to pull away<br />
and it was obvious that Tony wanted his cock in her. From time to<br />
time their eyes would seemed locked in silent desire. Jim had<br />
even kidded Peggy about how Tony would die to have his hands on<br />
her naked flesh. It was apparent that Peggy had become excited at<br />
the prospect.</p>
<p>     He was somewhat concerned what Tony, or for that matter,<br />
Peggy would think if he simply suggested that Tony fuck her. No.<br />
That just wouldn&#8217;t do. He had to find another way. He wanted Tony<br />
to have the benefit of Peggy&#8217;s lovely body, but he didn&#8217;t want<br />
Tony to know just yet. He and Tony had previously cavorted<br />
together. They had previously enjoyed the same woman or women<br />
together. How would it be if he told Tony that he found this<br />
great woman, she was a real fox and she fucked like a mink. Would<br />
Tony be interested in meeting her with Jim at a motel. It might<br />
work.</p>
<p>     Jim would have to shroud the evening in mystery. The lights<br />
would be subdued. Peggy could even wear some kind of a fancy<br />
mask. If she wore her hair differently than she usually did, Tony<br />
would never suspect until it was too late that their lovely sex<br />
kitten was Peggy. The decision was made. Jim was convinced that<br />
she was ready. He would hypnotize Peggy and give her a post hyp-<br />
notic suggestion that she was the most lovely sex slave in the<br />
world. She would assume the role of a high priced call girl. He<br />
would send her to the motel to check in and prepare for her two<br />
lovers. He and Tony would arrive and suck and fuck to their<br />
hearts content.</p>
<p>     Now the task was to prepare Tony. They sat at the downtown<br />
cafe that they usually frequented after work. Here they often met<br />
with and got to know several women. Jim asked Tony if he had<br />
recently got any new pussy. Tony indicated that it had been a<br />
couple of months, and he was ready to fuck a snake if Jim would<br />
hold it down. &#8220;Listen Tony, what would you say if I told you that<br />
I ran into this great lady. She is about 5&#8242;3&#8243;, 115 pounds, light<br />
brown hair, lovely heavy titties, beautiful pink nipples, has a<br />
cute little waist, with an absolutely wonderful ass and a great<br />
set of legs. Not only that, but she wants to fuck both of us.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Get out of here. Where? Who do I have to kill?&#8221; Tony<br />
humorously inquired. Jim could see the interest in his sex-crazed<br />
buddy. Tony was a nice looking guy, and the thought of him enjoy-<br />
ing Peggy&#8217;s goodies was beginning to drive him nuts.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;m serious. I talked with this lady, she is about forty<br />
years old, and she said that she would love to take us both on.<br />
Does forty years old bother you,&#8221; Jim asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Hell no. Many ladies don&#8217;t even get good until they&#8217;re<br />
about thirty or so. They have more experience for the most part.<br />
The best piece of ass I ever had was thirty-eight. I&#8217;m game. When<br />
do we meet this princess?&#8221; Tony panted.</p>
<p>     Jim informed Tony that he had tentatively set them up for<br />
Friday night at about eight o&#8217;clock. He further added that she<br />
would meet them at a motel. They were supposed to bring a bottle<br />
of wine and their cocks. Jim when on to say that she was a little<br />
shy and got a kick out of wearing masks and sexy clothes. Tony&#8217;s<br />
eyes were bulging as he listened with lust. The trap was<br />
set.Thursday evening, as Jim was preparing for bed, he decided to<br />
put Peggy into a trance and give her the necessary post-hypnotic<br />
suggestions. As always, he snapped his fingers twice, and Peggy<br />
relaxed into a deep hypnotic sleep. He brought her deeper and<br />
deeper into her trance. He asked her several questions about pre-<br />
vious orchestrated fantasies as his eight inch cock began to<br />
grow. He loved hearing from her lips how she had enjoyed the at-<br />
tentions of other lovers. He could see her breasts swell as she<br />
related her deepest feelings. The soft lips of her vagina filled<br />
with lust blood at the thought of her sexual escapades. He could<br />
see her beginning to rub her legs together as her excitement<br />
grew. Jim asked her if she would like to make love with two men.<br />
Peggy responded by telling Jim how it would really excite her to<br />
have his cock in her mouth as a stranger filled her pussy with<br />
his long pole.</p>
<p>     Jim directed Peggy to clear her mind of all thoughts. He<br />
then advised her that on the following night at six o&#8217;clock she<br />
would become tired, go into the bed room and lay down on the bed.<br />
She would begin thinking of her previous adventures, become ex-<br />
tremely aroused. She would close her eyes and again fall into a<br />
deep trance. She would sleep for about five minutes. When she<br />
awoke, she would walk over to the mirror and when she looked into<br />
the mirror, she would see the most attractive call girl in the<br />
world. Her only desire was to service her customers to the best<br />
of her ability. She would get cleaned up, go to the motel, obtain<br />
a room and await her customers. He further indicated that she<br />
would bring some very sexy clothes and a facial mask with her.<br />
She would wear the clothes and the mask. While she would feel<br />
free to remove the clothes at any time she chose, she would feel<br />
compelled to keep the mask on until she heard her name, Peggy.</p>
<p>     When she heard her name, she would remove the mask and real-<br />
ize that her customers were Jim and Tony. She would not feel un-<br />
comfortable about this. She would remember everything and enjoy<br />
each experience of the night. She was asked if she understood<br />
everything and was directed to repeat it. This she did without<br />
hesitation. The stage was set. Jim woke Peggy up and found that<br />
she was extremely aroused. They enjoyed one another as they often<br />
did after such sessions.</p>
<p>     Friday morning found Jim with a huge erection. This was not<br />
uncommon, but he was unusually large this morning. His anticipa-<br />
tion kept him hard most of the day. Tony called at about two<br />
o&#8217;clock in the afternoon to verify the night&#8217;s arrangements. Jim<br />
assured him that everything was on for the Holiday Inn at eight<br />
o&#8217;clock. Tony indicated that he would meet Jim at the cafe at<br />
six.</p>
<p>     Jim didn&#8217;t go home from work, but went directed to the cafe<br />
at about 5:30. He engaged in some small talk with some of the<br />
regulars, and Tony came bouncing in at about 5:45 rubbing his<br />
hands together. &#8220;Where is Peggy tonight?&#8221; Tony asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Who knows. Maybe she&#8217;s out finding her own piece of tail.&#8221;<br />
Jim said with tongue in cheek. He could only imagine the look on<br />
Tony&#8217;s face when he found out.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Yea, sure Jim. You&#8217;d just shit if Peggy fucked around on<br />
you. Although, I have to admit, with a woman like that around the<br />
house, I don&#8217;t have the foggiest notion of why you would ever<br />
stick your dick in anyone else,&#8221; Tony commented.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I guess people are something like taste in candy bars Tony.<br />
Sometimes we feel like having a Milky Way, and every now and then<br />
you want some other kind. If all you ever ate was Milky Way, you<br />
would get tired of them. Have some other kind and the Milky Way<br />
is even better the next time. Your wife is a knock out, and you<br />
are going to suck and fuck someone else. Why is that?&#8221; Jim in-<br />
quired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I see what you mean. I never quite looked at it that way<br />
before. The way you described this woman has really got me inter-<br />
ested. What else can you tell me about her?&#8221; Tony quizzed.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I told you quite a bit. She is about forty years old, great<br />
body, sexy way about her, gives great head and really enjoys com-<br />
ing. You will love it when you shoot your wad in this angel. She<br />
will scream and cum in gushes,&#8221; Jim assured him.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Phone call, Jim,&#8221; the bar maid announced. Dax picked up the<br />
phone and spoke briefly. Tony thought that it had to be their<br />
princess calling with the room number.</p>
<p>     They finished a few more drinks and ordered a couple of<br />
bottles of wine to go. Tony was visibly ready to fuck. He sat<br />
there anxiously looking at his watch. It was time for them to<br />
move over to the Holiday Inn. Jim told Tony to follow him, and<br />
they were on their way.</p>
<p>     As they approached the room, Tony was almost shaking as he<br />
thought about lovely undulating breasts with juicy pink nipples.<br />
Jim wanted to shake but didn&#8217;t want to give anything away. He<br />
kept himself very calm and collected. Soon they stood in front of<br />
the door and looked at each other. Jim said, &#8220;what are you wait-<br />
ing for Tony, knock on the door.&#8221; Tony tapped lightly and heard<br />
from within a request to come in.</p>
<p>     The door was unlocked. They entered quietly noting that the<br />
only light on was a dim light just inside the door. The voice<br />
that they heard was a husky whisper. &#8220;Come in gentlemen; make<br />
yourselves at home. I hope it&#8217;s not too dark in here for you, but<br />
I like it subdued. There are glasses in the foyer. Fix us a glass<br />
of wine and get your asses over here. Both men were periodically<br />
shivering with excitement, thinking about the mystery of it all.</p>
<p>     Tony poured the wine into three glasses on a tray while Jim<br />
approached the bed. There she was. She graced the bed in the most<br />
seductive fashion. Lying across the open sheets, Peggy was<br />
dressed in a lace black teddy with built in wire bra holding her<br />
lovely breasts up for inspection, garter belt, black stockings<br />
and spike heels. Adorning the upper portion of her face was a<br />
black cat mask with red feathers framing her face. Hot. Very hot<br />
was all Jim could think. His cock was rock-hard. This was his<br />
wife. He had never seen this outfit before and continued to be-<br />
come even more aroused. &#8220;Hello Janet. Have you been waiting<br />
long?&#8221; Jim asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Too long. Now get over here and warm me up mother fucker. I<br />
need some of that glorious cock,&#8221; she demanded in her throaty<br />
manner. Jim immediately melted onto the bed. Tony almost felt as<br />
though he were being left out until Jim introduced them. Tony<br />
told &#8220;Janet&#8221; that he was enchanted and began to remove his shirt.<br />
Jim was kissing Peggy and noticed how Tony riveted his eyes on<br />
her body as he continued to undress. Jim indicated that they both<br />
had an unfair advantage as he still had all of his clothes on.</p>
<p>     Peggy said, &#8220;listen Jim, you and I have been around the cor-<br />
ner before. Why don&#8217;t you have a glass of wine while Tony and I<br />
get to know one another a little better.&#8221; Jim&#8217;s blood began to<br />
boil. He anxiously awaited the moment when they would first<br />
touch. Tony was no prude and had stripped all of his clothes and<br />
left them where they fell. He was hotter than a firecracker. The<br />
electric moment came. Tony, who had so often wanted to touch<br />
Peggy was now touching her and had no idea who she was. He began<br />
very gently by touching his lips to Peggy&#8217;s.</p>
<p>     Soon their tongues touched and the kiss became more pas-<br />
sionate. Jim watched as Tony&#8217;s experienced hands began searching<br />
for the hooks to her garment. It soon fell aside. Her breasts<br />
fell into the subdued light much to Jim&#8217;s excitement. Tony momen-<br />
tarily pulled back from Peggy to gaze at her gorgeous mounds.<br />
They were perfect in every way. They rolled gently from side to<br />
side with Tony&#8217;s advances. Her now hard nipples brushed against<br />
the hair on his chest. He reached up to cup one of the beautiful<br />
globes and pinch a nipple as he maintained his assault with his<br />
tongue in her mouth. Jim had everything to do to keep himself<br />
from coming in his pants as he heard Peggy begin to moan as he<br />
had never heard her moan before.</p>
<p>     Tony released the snaps between Peggy legs that held the<br />
bottom of the teddy in place. It was cast aside, and Jim watched<br />
as Tony&#8217;s hand dipped down into Peggy&#8217;s soft pussy curls with one<br />
hand as his other hand filled itself with pliant ass flesh. Jim<br />
had removed his clothing and was slowly stroking his thickening<br />
shaft. He had to be careful as he could come at any moment with<br />
such a hot scene in front of him. Jim watched as Tony&#8217;s lips<br />
began sucking harder on Peggy&#8217;s pert nipples. Her moans increased<br />
in intensity, and she started rubbing her clit against Tony.<br />
Peggy&#8217;s lover touched his lips to her belly and continued trail-<br />
ing down to her fragrant muff. Peggy moved around on top of Tony<br />
to accommodate a position of 69 and lifted Tony&#8217;s towering shaft<br />
into her mouth. She took this love organ deep inside her mouth<br />
and began to suck slowly.</p>
<p>     Jim&#8217;s excitement continued to grow as he saw the globes of<br />
Peggy&#8217;s ass come into view and Tony&#8217;s hands surround them. Jim<br />
moved toward the bed stroking his gigantic member. He reached<br />
down and felt the weight of one of Peggy&#8217;s heavy breasts as his<br />
hand moved up and down the length of his cock. Peggy reached<br />
around and drew Jim over to her. She released Tony&#8217;s cock and</p>
<p>replaced it with Jim&#8217;s. Just when Tony was about to feel as if he<br />
had been abandoned, Peggy switched to suck his tool again. Back<br />
and forth she went bringing bliss to both men. Soon, both men<br />
felt Peggy begin to change positions. They released their respec-<br />
tive grips as Peggy got on her knees, waving her fanny in the<br />
air.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Tony, I want your thick bone in my hole now,&#8221; she said.<br />
Tony quickly agreed and moved into position for a rear approach.<br />
He looked at the twin globes seemingly suspended in air and could<br />
smell the fragrant odor of her dripping love tunnel. Tony guided<br />
his now huge cock to the entrance to her gaping hair covered<br />
hole. He could see the soft pink lips pouting out, waiting for<br />
his organ. As the large mushroom-shaped head of his cock ap-<br />
proached Peggy&#8217;s slick quim, Jim watched in rapture stroking his<br />
own monster. Tony&#8217;s bone came closer and closer. Jim moved around<br />
in front of Peggy and offered his penis to her mouth. As Peggy&#8217;s<br />
lips started to engulf Jim&#8217;s cock, a deep moan escaped Peggy&#8217;s<br />
lips and deep hot breath caressed Jim&#8217;s cock. Tony&#8217;s penis was<br />
beginning to spread the lips of Peggy&#8217;s pussy. Slick with Peggy&#8217;s<br />
emissions, Tony entered her effortlessly. Deeper and deeper his<br />
cock traveled until his hairy balls were slapping against her wet<br />
pussy.</p>
<p>     Peggy began to suck deeply on Jim&#8217;s cock as Tony began pump-<br />
ing slowly. As he withdrew his cock from Peggy&#8217;s dripping cunt,<br />
Tony noticed how his thick shaft was glistening with her juices.<br />
Again he pressed forward and felt Peggy press her ass harder<br />
against his bone. She continued to suck on Jim&#8217;s cock. Then she<br />
hollered to Tony, &#8220;Fuck that cunt hole mother fucker. Fuck it<br />
harder. Deeper. Now.&#8221; Her mouth continued to draw deeply on Jim&#8217;s<br />
cock. Tony was stroking wildly now. In and out. Deeper and<br />
deeper. He twisted his hips as he drove forward and upward. He<br />
rotated his long tool inside of Peggy&#8217;s hot cunt as he reached<br />
forward and grasped one of her taunt nipples.</p>
<p>     Jim drove his cock into his wife&#8217;s mouth and reached for her<br />
other breast. The three of them continued to pound at one another<br />
until Peggy felt a new tightness in Tony&#8217;s cock. He was going to<br />
go off. She reached between her legs and began to massage Tony&#8217;s<br />
swaying balls. He drove once deep and hard as his hands grasped<br />
Peggy&#8217;s tightening buttocks. Peggy could feel the thick gobs of<br />
cum shoot deep into her fuck hole. As Jim watched Peggy&#8217;s mouth<br />
slide up and down his cock, he noticed her eyes, through her<br />
mask, roll up into her head. At this point he knew she was com-<br />
ing. Jim&#8217;s rod began to convulse as his cream crept up and out of<br />
the head of his swollen member. Over and over again he felt gobs<br />
of jism squirt into Peggy&#8217;s mouth. She was now grunting deep3ly;<br />
trying to get the most of her quaking hole. Tony, Peggy and Jim<br />
fell to the bed. They were all panting and somewhat out of<br />
breath. Jim heard Tony say that he had never had such a nut as<br />
this. No one moved for about fifteen minutes.</p>
<p>     Suddenly, Peggy got up from the bed and moved toward the<br />
rest room. Tony looked at Jim under half closed eyelids and asked<br />
him, &#8220;where in the hell did you find this gorgeous animal?&#8221; Jim<br />
merely smiled in response. Peggy returned after refreshing her-<br />
self and poured three more glasses of wine, handing one to each<br />
of her lovers.</p>
<p>     She pulled a side chair over to the bed and sat opposite<br />
them. Tony said, &#8220;listen lovely lady, I would sure feel better if<br />
you told me that this would happen again one day.&#8221;</p>
<p>Jim tapped Tony on the shoulder and said, &#8221;  &#8216;PEGGY&#8217; won&#8217;t mind,<br />
will you honey?&#8221; Peggy removed the mask in one quick motion.</p>
<p>     &#8220;No Jim, I don&#8217;t think I would mind, if you and Tony<br />
wouldn&#8217;t mind. I thought it was kind of fun, didn&#8217;t you think so,<br />
honey?&#8221;</p>
<p>     It took a full minute for all of this to register to Tony.<br />
He was incredulous and had no idea what to say. Jim told him,<br />
&#8220;don&#8217;t try to understand right now Tony. We will explain it to<br />
you later. Just put your eyes back in your head, remember how<br />
great it was and put your pants on.&#8221;</p>
<p>                      CHAPTER FOURTEEN &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>     Peggy had always admired the young relief mail man. Not only<br />
was he a nice looking man with a great build, he was always<br />
pleasant and cheerful. Her regular business letter carrier was an<br />
obnoxious, obvious liar. He must have stayed up nights thinking<br />
about some of the ludicrous tales that he shared with all of the<br />
business owners in the shopping plaza. She would often hide in<br />
the back of the store at the time that mail was delivered. Tim,<br />
the relief man was a welcome change, and she looked forward to<br />
him stopping in to chat for a few moments a day. Lately, and<br />
quite possibly unconsciously, she had been trying to dress a<br />
little more seductively so that he might notice her a bit more.</p>
<p>     Due to the worst illness reported to mankind, Bob, the<br />
regular mail man, announced that he would be on sick leave and<br />
may never return to the ranks of the walking or talking. &#8220;Damn<br />
shame,&#8221; Peggy thought. Well, at least she would have an oppor-<br />
tunity to see Tim periodically.</p>
<p>     &#8220;How are you today, Tim?&#8221; Peggy asked as the strong, young<br />
mail carrier entered her shop. Her shoulders rolled a bit more<br />
than usual causing her full breasts to dance slightly. She felt<br />
as if her fanny was rather well framed by the jeans she was wear-<br />
ing and would periodically turn around to offer them in their<br />
best light.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Great! Don&#8217;t the leaves changing colors make you think of<br />
when you were a kid?&#8221; he asked with his ever-present smile.</p>
<p>     &#8220;This is my favorite season. I brings to mind visions of<br />
marshmallow roasts, cider and hay rides. We used to always go on<br />
hay rides when we were kids. We didn&#8217;t too often have a horse to<br />
pull us; usually it was just a tractor,&#8221; Peggy said with a<br />
thoughtful, remembering look in her eyes.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Too bad we never had the opportunity to go on a hay ride<br />
together,&#8221; Tim offered with a slightly wicked grin as he turned<br />
to go.</p>
<p>     Peggy was caught off guard. She had often thought about what<br />
a nice young man Tim was. She hadn&#8217;t considered that he may have<br />
found her attractive enough to try to become intimate with.<br />
Before she could formulate a response, he was out of the door.<br />
She wondered whether he was serious or just being sociable. Peggy<br />
never gave much thought to having an affair. As a result she<br />
never developed many fantasies. Her husband, Jim had always indi-<br />
cated to her that he wouldn&#8217;t be opposed to her expanding her<br />
horizons so long as she didn&#8217;t become emotionally involved. She<br />
knew that he had gone astray on a few occasions, but she didn&#8217;t<br />
want to know about it. She knew he loved her and didn&#8217;t feel<br />
threatened.</p>
<p>     Tim and his winning manner began to make her think about it.<br />
What would be so wrong with making love with him. The one thing<br />
that she always thought about when it came to sex was the man&#8217;s<br />
buttocks. She would close her eyes and imagine how it looked un-<br />
clothed; rippling as he walked across the room. Visions of his<br />
strong buns tightening to pump his hard meat into her wet hole<br />
would generally drive her crazy with desire. She had done it now.<br />
She had placed the thought in her mind, and she could almost feel<br />
it. Peggy had to get her mind on something else.</p>
<p>     As she busied herself with some overdue paper work, the<br />
thoughts continued to visit her. She imagined looking down at the<br />
erect nipples of her ample breasts. His lips moved gently from<br />
one to the other as his teeth gently tugged and manipulated each<br />
in turn. As her mind wandered, she felt her nipples becoming<br />
hard. The thought of his strong hands massaging her naked but-<br />
tocks swam into her head.</p>
<p>     Again she could see his erect penis entering her hairy love<br />
tunnel as his ass tightened to drive his bone home. Almost<br />
without thinking her hand fell into her lap, allowing her fingers<br />
to delve into the swollen lips of her wet pussy. Paper work<br />
wouldn&#8217;t do. She would have to move around to get this out of her<br />
head. Peggy began to do some stock work. Moving around the shop<br />
seemed to help, at least for the time being.</p>
<p>     Six o&#8217;clock came and she was free to close the shop and head<br />
for home. By seven she had a light dinner on the table for her<br />
and her husband, and by eight the dishes were in the washer and<br />
she retired to the couch to relax and let the day dissolve. Again<br />
the thought that taunted her earlier returned. She tried<br />
desperately to get her mind on a sit-com that was on the TV, but<br />
it seemed futile. &#8220;Jim, would you like to go to bed a little<br />
early tonight?&#8221; Peggy asked with a feigned yawn.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Go ahead honey, I&#8217;ll be in just as soon as I get done with<br />
the paper. I won&#8217;t be but a few more minutes,&#8221; Jim responded<br />
without taking his eyes off of the newspaper. Peggy could think<br />
of nothing but cock driving deep into her greasy love hole. She<br />
began by imagining Jim&#8217;s pole, hard and long seeking new depths.<br />
Suddenly, her mind turned once again to Tim. She tried to imagine<br />
how long and thick his cock was, whether his penis rested on<br />
large, heavy balls and how his public hair looked. Peggy wondered<br />
whether one man&#8217;s penis tasted any differently or felt any dif-<br />
ferently than another.</p>
<p>     After brushing her teeth, she stood nude in front of the<br />
mirror. Her eyes were first attracted to her heavy breasts. She<br />
could see her nipples begin to harden. Without thought her hands<br />
rose to her breasts to feel their weight. Her sharp, painted<br />
finger nails gently scratched the surface of her marble-like<br />
nipples. Shivers of excitement shot like lightening from her<br />
ultra-sensitive nipples to her loins. Her hands dropped to her<br />
hair-covered pussy and spread its lips to reveal her pulsing<br />
clit. Uncontrollably, her buttocks tightened increasing the sen-<br />
sations in her moistening crotch as she slid her finger teasingly<br />
over this fiery nub.</p>
<p>     Her hands began to travel from one part of her fine body to<br />
another, touching, teasing, investigating and squeezing. Peggy&#8217;s<br />
legs became weak as her excitement increased. She thought better<br />
of standing for this welcomed torture. Peggy sought her soft bed<br />
and quite naturally got hotter and more aroused as her mind con-<br />
tinued its erotic focus. She allowed her fingers to dip down into<br />
the inner folds of her honey pot as one hand reached up and began<br />
to manipulate a soft pink nipple. Moistening her index finger<br />
with her saliva, she began to slide it back and forth over her<br />
expanding nipples. Her ear was tuned in to the sound of Jim&#8217;s<br />
recliner chair being released to the ground. Shit! She was ready,<br />
and she needed it soon.</p>
<p>     Jim came in shortly afterward, took off his clothes, set out<br />
his night clothes and began to brush his teeth in the adjoining<br />
bathroom. Peggy couldn&#8217;t take her eyes off of his hairy ass and<br />
his heavy member swinging gently between his strong legs. Each<br />
time the head of his flaccid penis came into sight, Peggy&#8217;s ex-<br />
citement increased. Each time she saw the flex of his buttocks<br />
she imagined that he was driving his bone into her slippery,<br />
tight crevice. Closing her eyes she could see the thick head of<br />
his penis pushing the lips of her tight vagina wide open. &#8220;Do you<br />
suppose that you can do me a favor and forget to put your pajamas<br />
on?&#8221; Peggy said seductively.</p>
<p>     Jim recognized the mood. Peggy needed to ride his hard cock<br />
and get a nut. He smiled his custopeggy smile and said, &#8220;anything<br />
for my beautiful love princess.&#8221; He entered the sheets to find<br />
that Peggy had removed her night clothes and was ready. He lifted<br />
the sheets to gaze at her lovely body. Her heavy breasts swayed<br />
delightfully back and forth as if they had a life of their own.<br />
Her nipples had hardened to the point of gathering a nice expanse<br />
of her lovely, soft breasts around them. There were wrinkles in<br />
her white tit flesh a full half inch around her dark pink<br />
nipples. As his eyes traveled lower, they settled on her soft,<br />
fluffy muff of pubic hair which warmed her slick vagina. The<br />
muscles of her stomach rippled with anticipation as she threw one<br />
leg over Jim&#8217;s thighs and devoured his waiting lips with her own.</p>
<p>     Peggy yearned with the excitement that she had allowed to<br />
build throughout the day. Her breasts ached to be sucked and<br />
squeezed. Her thoughts traveled back and forth between Jim and<br />
Tim. Each time that she felt the warmth of Jim&#8217;s hand on her<br />
flesh her excitement increased. She was thinking about Tim&#8217;s hard<br />
tool investigating her depths. Soon Peggy slid down Jim&#8217;s body<br />
and grabbed his stiff bone in a tight grasp. Without further<br />
warning or delay, she engulfed his raging cock with her hot<br />
mouth.</p>
<p>     Jim twisted around without dislodging his swollen member,<br />
filled his hands with the flesh of Peggy&#8217;s ass cheeks and drove<br />
his hot tongue into her fragrant pussy. They were locked in the<br />
careless, mindless embrace of passion as they had their fill of<br />
one another&#8217;s delights.</p>
<p>     Moving slowly and methodically, these lovers became locked<br />
together in the traditional embrace of lust. Ever so slowly, he<br />
placed the angry head of his thick staff at the threshold of her<br />
slick sex. He began to slow fuck Peggy as he watcher her eyes<br />
portray a hungry animal. Gradually he picked up the pace in<br />
response to her pleading. As Jim drove his thick spike into<br />
Peggy&#8217;s gyrating cock-glove, he filled his hands intermittently<br />
with her quivering thighs, bouncing breasts, and rounded ass<br />
cheeks.</p>
<p>     The globes of her full ass rolled and rippled with each<br />
thrust. Jim could never remember her being this horny. As Peggy<br />
came hard for the third time, Jim pulled his cock from her tight<br />
hole, aimed it at her gyrating breasts and shot his thick cream<br />
between her lovely globes. As she grunted away the last of her<br />
climax, thinking of Tim pouring his cream on her tits, Peggy<br />
filled her still twitching hole with one hand and smeared Jim&#8217;s<br />
hot come over her nipples with the other hand.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I don&#8217;t know what made you as crazy as you were tonight<br />
honey, but if it was some kind of a pill, take two next time. You<br />
turned me on more than I can ever remember being turned on. I<br />
think it was the wild animal look in your eyes. I hope you en-<br />
joyed it as much as I did, honey,&#8221; Jim said as he gasped for<br />
breath. Soon they were both in a deep rewarding sleep.</p>
<p>     The next morning Peggy woke first and found that she felt<br />
unusually sore; as if she had done hard physical labor the day<br />
before. Suddenly, she remembered why she felt that way. Peggy en-<br />
tered the hot spray of her morning shower and felt the pulse of<br />
the water dancing on her tender nipples. Soaping the hairy muff<br />
of her womanhood, her mind returned to the visions that she had<br />
trapped in her memory. Her soapy hands slid effortlessly over her<br />
heavy breasts, her tightening nipples, into the crack of her ass<br />
and between the lips of her sex. She was becoming turned on all<br />
over again. Realizing that time was limited, she hurried her<br />
shower and robbed herself of additional pleasure.</p>
<p>     As she fixed the coffee and began to realize why she had<br />
been so horny, she began to feel confusion and shame. She had<br />
been thinking of Tim. She could remember seeing his ass flying as<br />
he drove his cock meat into her slick hole. Her shame soon drove<br />
the thought out of her head. Jim came out into the dining room<br />
and smiled at her. She tried to avoid his glance so that she<br />
wouldn&#8217;t give herself away. Finally Jim said to her, &#8220;Peggy, is<br />
something wrong honey? It couldn&#8217;t have been last night. That was<br />
probably the best sex we&#8217;ve ever had. I woke up with such a hard<br />
cock I could probably cut diamonds with it.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Peggy began to whimper as she told Jim about her fantasy and<br />
the guilt she was feeling. Jim listened calmly as she explained<br />
her fantasy and who it was about. A slight smile came over Jim as<br />
he began to comfort her, &#8220;Peggy, you didn&#8217;t do anything wrong. I<br />
have fantasies all the time. It doesn&#8217;t mean that I don&#8217;t love<br />
you, or that I prefer to make love with someone else. It&#8217;s<br />
natural. Everyone has them. If it would guarantee that we would<br />
have sex like that all the time, you could ball this guy once a<br />
week. Just the thought of you having a fantasy about another man<br />
excites me beyond words.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;You&#8217;re out of your mind! I would never make love with<br />
another man. I am married to you, and my body belongs to you,&#8221;<br />
she said with some fire. &#8220;I just found that it made it exciting<br />
to think about someone else. I would never cheat on you Jim.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Your body doesn&#8217;t belong to me. It belongs to you. I don&#8217;t<br />
look at it as though you were cheating or even wanted to. I&#8217;m<br />
just glad that you enjoyed yourself. It&#8217;s always been exciting<br />
for me to know that others found you attractive and sexy. How do<br />
you think I would feel if no one else thought you were sensual or<br />
exciting?&#8221; Jim inquired.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Let&#8217;s not talk about it any more right now, OK Jim?&#8221; Peggy<br />
pleaded. &#8220;I feel very unusual, and I don&#8217;t really understand<br />
what&#8217;s going on in my head right now. I just want to stop think-<br />
ing about it right now and get ready to open the shop.</p>
<p>     &#8220;OK honey. Just don&#8217;t be too hard on yourself. You enjoyed<br />
it and there was no harm done. I told you once before that the<br />
only thing that would concern me is if you got emotionally in-<br />
volved with someone to the point that you lost your love for me,&#8221;<br />
he said.</p>
<p>     Peggy answered quickly and emphatically, &#8220;I could never love<br />
anyone more than I love you. You&#8217;re my partner and my best<br />
friend. You always will be.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Now that&#8217;s what I like to hear. Go and get ready, you&#8217;re<br />
going to be late,&#8221; Jim said in a simulated scolding as he tapped<br />
her on the fanny.</p>
<p>     As she completed the opening procedure at the shop, Peggy<br />
began to think about how she would feel when Tim brought the mail<br />
in. Would she feel embarrassed or dirty. Could she look him in<br />
the eye if he decided to talk to her. As the noon hour arrived<br />
her anticipation increased. &#8220;So did you hear the newest Pea Wee<br />
joke?&#8221; Tim asked as he opened the door and floated in. His good<br />
spirits seemed to make everything OK. She caught herself prancing<br />
a bit for him to show off her attributes. They talked about quite<br />
a few different topics in the short time that Tim was able to<br />
stay. As he began to make his last comments prior to departure,<br />
Peggy started to feel sad to see him go. &#8220;I wish we could have<br />
talked a little longer,&#8221; Peggy said to her own surprise.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;ll tell you what Peggy; I get off at four. What do you<br />
say I stop and get us some coffee and bring it by?&#8221; Tim sug-<br />
gested. Peggy began to stumble with her words, trying to formu-<br />
late an answer. Tim hurried to her defense by adding, &#8220;I guess<br />
that was a bit forward. You will probably be tied up, and I<br />
shouldn&#8217;t have asked. I&#8217;ll be able to stop tomorrow for a little<br />
while, and we&#8217;ll talk then when I deliver the mail.</p>
<p>     Peggy, having composed herself and got a grip on what was<br />
going on, thought for a moment and offered, &#8220;I&#8217;m not all that<br />
busy. It would be nice if you could stop back. I take my coffee<br />
with one cream and one sugar.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Incredulously, Tim answered, &#8220;OK Peggy. It&#8217;s a deal. I<br />
should be by at about four-fifteen. See you then.&#8221;</p>
<p>     What in the hell have I gotten myself into now? Peggy<br />
thought. I&#8217;ll just be leading this guy on, and he&#8217;s such a nice<br />
guy. Hey! Maybe he doesn&#8217;t even have anything on his mind other<br />
than conversation. Not all men are fuck bunnies. He may just want<br />
to talk and kill some time before going someplace. Her mind con-<br />
tinued to develop various scenarios until after four o&#8217;clock.</p>
<p>     &#8220;One coffee with cream and sugar coming up,&#8221; Tim announced<br />
as he entered the door negotiating his package. He had apparently<br />
removed his uniform shirt and was wearing his jacket over a tee<br />
shirt.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Come on in the back so we can drink our coffee without cus-<br />
tomers gawking at us,&#8221; Peggy invited. They sat at a small table<br />
next to the divan as Peggy prepared her coffee and began to test<br />
its heat with her lips.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I bet you were just counting the minutes until I got here,<br />
weren&#8217;t you Peggy,&#8221; Tim said with a humorous grin on his face. &#8220;I<br />
hope that I didn&#8217;t give you the wrong impression when I invited<br />
myself over for coffee. I know you are married and from what you<br />
say you are happy. It isn&#8217;t my intention to screw anything up,<br />
but you are very attractive and great to talk to. I just enjoy<br />
spending time with you. Don&#8217;t get me wrong. I would love to make<br />
love to you, but I fully understand the situation. So let&#8217;s have<br />
some coffee, talk about the regular mail man behind his back and<br />
then I&#8217;ll run.</p>
<p>     Peggy had a slightly shocked look on her face. It was soon<br />
replaced by a sneaking smile. She was flattered by what he had<br />
said and couldn&#8217;t help but think how cute he was being. &#8220;Tim, I<br />
would be lying to you if I told you that I didn&#8217;t think about<br />
being with you. You look great and I enjoy talking with you as<br />
well, but&#8230;&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I know. I know. Don&#8217;t say it. You don&#8217;t have to explain,&#8221;<br />
Tim said in an effort to spare Peggy from the embarrassment of<br />
rejecting him. Peggy set down her coffee and reached out to<br />
cradle his face. As if controlled by some unknown force, she<br />
pressed her full lips to his with closed eyes. His hungry lips<br />
caressed her own and soon moved to the side of her neck. She felt<br />
shivers running down her neck. Her nipples began to tingle, and<br />
she became aware of her moistening womanhood.</p>
<p>     As she held his lips close to her hot skin, she panted to<br />
Tim, &#8220;I&#8217;m always so damn concerned about everyone and everything<br />
around me &#8211; trying to be everything that everyone wants me to be.<br />
I&#8217;m tired of trying to be perfect. I want you, Tim.  I want to<br />
feel you touch me. I need to feel you inside of me. I want to<br />
feel your hard bone go off in me and paint my insides with your<br />
thick cream.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Peggy jumped up abruptly, excused herself and told Tim that<br />
she would return in a moment. She shot to the front of the shop,<br />
locked the door and turned the OPEN sign around.</p>
<p>     Upon her return, Peggy dropped to her knees, her hands fum-<br />
bling with his zipper. She slid her hands over the front of his<br />
trousers, around to his buttocks and returned to quickly released<br />
his raging manhood. Her boiling breath danced on the head of his<br />
penis, and his legs began to weaken. Holding his massive, hairy<br />
balls in her soft hands, she descended on his quaking tool. First<br />
one inch, then another slipped into the comfortable sheath of her<br />
warm mouth. As the head of his rock-hard penis touched the back<br />
of her wet throat, her lips closed on his engorged shaft. Gently<br />
his hands cradled her soft hair, guiding the path of his erect,<br />
searching member. As her lips and tongue played on the thick meat<br />
of his cock, her hands unbuttoned his trousers and lowered them<br />
to the floor. Sensuously, her hands slid up the back of his legs<br />
and clasped his hair-covered buttocks, squeezing him more deeply<br />
into her hungry mouth.</p>
<p>     Tim was heaven-bound. He reached down, lifted her sweater<br />
and released the catch to her bra. Peggy&#8217;s full, swollen breasts<br />
bounced into his waiting hands. Her nipples felt like marbles in<br />
his strong hands as he squeezed her soft, firm flesh. A croaking<br />
groan escaped her lips and made his swollen cock tremble as he<br />
rolled her nipples between each thumb and index finger. Reaching<br />
under her arms, Tim raised Peggy to her feet, pressed her close<br />
to him and drove his tongue deep into her open mouth. Tim&#8217;s hands<br />
slid into the elastic waistband of Peggy&#8217;s jeans, beneath her<br />
panties to grasp her smooth, warm buttocks.</p>
<p>     The spongy texture of her undulating ass cheeks only served<br />
to increase his excitement. While one hand cupped one of her<br />
ample breasts to test its weight, his other hand dipped into the<br />
moist crevice of her ass to feel its heat. Dropping yet further,<br />
Tim&#8217;s hand brushed her anal button, and he could feel the soft,<br />
wiry texture of her tangled pubic hair. His search soon resulted<br />
in the slick swollen prize of her gaping love tunnel. Moisture<br />
began to roll from her as her mind was totally devoted to this<br />
erotic moment.</p>
<p>     Peggy&#8217;s hands began to fumble with his tee shirt, his jacket<br />
having been summarily discarded. Her fingers searched through the<br />
lustrous hair of his strong chest as she continued to kiss his<br />
neck and shoulders. Soon they were both totally nude and began<br />
their short trip to the divan.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Let&#8217;s take it slow, Peggy. I want this to last as long as<br />
possible. Get up on your knees so I can enter you from behind and<br />
play with your lovely breasts,&#8221; Tim suggested softly as his hands<br />
continued to start new fires on her highly sensitized skin.</p>
<p>     Peggy slowly turned over and got up on her hands and knees<br />
on the divan. Tim placed his hand high on her shoulders to pres-<br />
sure her to lower her head and elevate her fanny. Taking a posi-<br />
tion behind Peggy, Tim&#8217;s eyes were blessed with the most lovely<br />
view of Peggy&#8217;s full buttocks and open pussy. He spread her<br />
cheeks with his strong hands and began tasting her sweet honey<br />
pot. Peggy groaned, &#8220;Oh, suck my pussy, Tim. Stick you tongue<br />
deep inside of me.&#8221; Tim obeyed her orders as he stiffened his<br />
tongue and rubbed it hard against her clit.</p>
<p>     Shivering, Peggy whispered, &#8220;Fuck me with your hard tongue,<br />
Tim. Drive it deep into my hole. Fuckkkkkkkkk me!&#8221; Peggy had<br />
begun to experience her first climax as Tim continued to pay<br />
homage to her burning love hole. She pushed back against his wet<br />
mouth and reached under herself to pinch and roll her nipples. &#8220;I<br />
need your cock, Tim. Stick that big piece of hard cock meat into<br />
me. Drive it home, honey.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Tim didn&#8217;t need much encouragement. He wiped his face with<br />
his hand and transferred the moisture to Peggy&#8217;s wiggling ass<br />
cheeks. Taking his long, thick pole in his trembling hand, Tim<br />
placed the enlarged head against the swollen, greased lips of her<br />
pulsating pussy. Immediately, Peggy began to press backward in<br />
hopes of expediting the entry. Tim filled his hands with her<br />
shuddering buttocks to control her rearward travel. His eyes were<br />
treated to the lovely texture of her ass. His hands were blessed<br />
with the spongy feel of her writhing globes. The scent of her sex<br />
filled his head with a heavy aroma that spoke pages of primal ex-<br />
citement. Slowly his starchy bone entered Peggy&#8217;s wet cavern an<br />
inch at a time. He heard her begin to cry ever so quietly. &#8220;Are<br />
you OK, Peggy?&#8221; concern filled his voice.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I haven&#8217;t been this OK in a long time, Tim. Fuck your long<br />
pole up into my greasy pussy. Fuck me hard! Fuck me deep! Fuck me<br />
like you&#8217;ve never fucked anyone before. Squeeze my ass. Tell me<br />
you need your cock in me. Feel the weight of my tits and pinch my<br />
nipples. Do my tits turn you on?&#8221; she continued her staccato<br />
series of wild statements and frantic demands.</p>
<p>     &#8220;I do need my cock in you, Peggy. I need it bad. Your tits<br />
turn me on more than I can say. The way you&#8217;re talking to me<br />
drives me wild. I can&#8217;t hold on much longer,&#8221; Tim said as he<br />
turned his attention to anything but what he was doing. He<br />
thought about taking out the trash. He thought about rug burn on<br />
his knees. He began to do math problems; anything to keep him<br />
from coming too soon. Suddenly Peggy rolled out from beneath his<br />
driving piston and collapsed on the floor.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Relax for a moment, Tim. I don&#8217;t want this wonderful feel-<br />
ing to be over so soon. Kiss me,&#8221; Peggy implored. Tim tenderly<br />
placed his lips against Peggy&#8217;s eyelids as they closed. Her arms<br />
reached up to cradle his head to her rolling breasts. Tim reached<br />
down between her splayed legs, and his eager hand rested in the<br />
nest of her pubic bush. It was damp with her juices and covered<br />
her thick, swollen pussy lips. They pouted for additional atten-<br />
tion. First one finger entered her body and then the other. His<br />
thumb began to circle her love button as her head began to roll<br />
back and forth in time with her moans. Lowering his head to suck<br />
on Peggy&#8217;s nipples, Tim began to rotate his fingers inside of her<br />
leaking tunnel. Deeper and deeper his efforts were directed,<br />
remembering that the &#8220;G&#8221; spot was within his reach.</p>
<p>     Soon a gush of climax was released from her deepest<br />
recesses, painting his hand as Peggy&#8217;s eyes rolled up into her<br />
ecstatic head. &#8220;Oh oh ohhhhhhhh Timmmmmm! I&#8217;m commminng,&#8221; she<br />
groaned long and low. &#8220;I need your hard meat to spray my wet hole<br />
with your cream. Put it in. Fuck me hard, please.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Opening her legs and raising her knees, Tim directed his<br />
gigantic rod into her slippery crevice. The excitement continued<br />
to build as he looked down and saw her pubic hair drenched with<br />
her own excitement. His immense member encountered no resistance<br />
as it quickly slid into her deepest channel. As he slowly<br />
withdrew his glistening rod from her tight pussy, he watched her<br />
pubic hair cling to his shaft. Looking across the room at a<br />
floor-length dressing mirror, Peggy saw the reflection of his<br />
perfectly shaped ass tightening to drive his bone as deeply as<br />
possible. She began to buck wildly. Tim rolled over with Peggy in<br />
tow. Holding her by her arms just above the elbows, Tim continued<br />
to drive his cock up into her swollen, glistening hole. Her heavy<br />
breasts dangled dreamily in his face. Periodically, he would<br />
lower her so that he could intermittently suck on one nipple and<br />
then the other.</p>
<p>     Peggy continued to urge him on in the throatiest voice she<br />
could muster, &#8220;fuck my hole, Tim. Squirt your thick come into my<br />
pussy. Kiss me! Kiss me.&#8221; She lowered her floating tits onto his<br />
chest as her tongue sought his open mouth. His hands reached be-<br />
hind her and began to squeeze her wiggling buttocks. Allowing his<br />
hand to dip into the crack of her ass cheeks, he found that it<br />
too was drenched with her juice. His fingers slid over her slip-<br />
pery anal button and dipped into the rear of her gaping, hairy<br />
hole. He felt his own rigid penis splitting the grasping lips of<br />
her sex.</p>
<p>     He drove harder and deeper as his hands continued their as-<br />
sault on her smooth, slippery buttocks. She whispered the lan-<br />
guage of love into his ear urging him on. &#8220;Fuck my cunt mother<br />
fucker. Drive your cock bone into my guts. Squeeze my buttocks<br />
and feel my heavy titties on your chest.&#8221; Suddenly he could feel<br />
the tell-tail constriction of his heavy balls as he prepared to<br />
spill his fluid into Peggy&#8217;s sucking hole. He drove it hard and<br />
deep one last time and froze as the love cream traveled up from<br />
his tight sack, through the rigid vessel of his throbbing cock,<br />
out of its bulbous head and into her gripping love muscle. Peggy<br />
took the last advantage of his unyielding bone and increased the<br />
speed at which her quivering channel slipped over the length of<br />
his penis. Her fingers dug deep into his flexing buttocks as her<br />
eyes returned to the mirror to lock the memory into her fiery<br />
mind. Soon, deep grunts began to issue forth from Peggy as if<br />
they had their origin deep within her. Their climactic juices<br />
mixed into a cocktail of aromatic desire.</p>
<p>     The soft tender moments following their union glided away<br />
slowly. Peggy rested in his strong arms as he tenderly kissed her<br />
hair and rubbed the smooth skin of her back. &#8220;I would have never<br />
believed that we would have been together,&#8221; Peggy spoke first.</p>
<p>     &#8220;It has been like a dream. Peggy, I don&#8217;t think that I have<br />
ever been that turned on. I have often thought of making love to<br />
you. I would come into the shop and look at you. I would try not<br />
to be obvious. I usually waited until your eyes were diverted to<br />
sneak peeks at your lovely body; the swell of your ass as you<br />
walked slowly across the room, the bounce of your breasts, the<br />
smile that slowly appeared when I would come in the door. I am so<br />
glad that you consented to let me make love to you,&#8221; he rambled.</p>
<p>     She quickly returned, &#8220;it wasn&#8217;t a matter of consenting,<br />
Tim. I wanted you to. I hope that you won&#8217;t think less of me now.<br />
Once the heat of the moment wears off, I hope that I won&#8217;t feel<br />
so guilty that I won&#8217;t be able to handle it. This is the first<br />
time that I have ever made love with anyone other than Jim.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Just promise me one thing, Peggy. Just promise me that<br />
there will be another day. Even if you don&#8217;t mean it. Promise me.<br />
Let me leave today knowing that I&#8217;ll have the opportunity to be<br />
with you again,&#8221; Tim pleaded. Faced with Peggy&#8217;s silence, Tim<br />
added, &#8220;if you can&#8217;t promise me that, promise me that we will<br />
continue to be friends.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Friends don&#8217;t need to make promises like that,&#8221; Peggy said.<br />
&#8220;Friends let things happen naturally and support one another when<br />
they do happen. Somehow I think that we&#8217;ll be together again. I<br />
hope so.&#8221; She silently wondered what Jim would think if he knew.<br />
She also wondered whether Jim had ever felt like this with<br />
someone else. She knew that she would again feel this wonder.</p>
<p>     Suddenly, Jim snapped his fingers and Peggy fell into a deep<br />
trance. Tim&#8217;s muscular young form had miraculously undergone a<br />
metamorphosis. Jim stood in Tim&#8217;s place, pleased with the fantasy<br />
that he had led Peggy through. I knew she always wanted to fuck a<br />
mail man, he thought. He left her with the suggestion that she<br />
would not be guilt ridden, and she would relish the memory as a<br />
dream.</p>
<p>                        CHAPTER FIFTEEN &#8211; MIND SEX</p>
<p>  Jim was out of town on another business trip. Peggy had been so<br />
busy lately with her new job as a electronic technician that she<br />
hadn&#8217;t had time to give much thought to feeding her sexual urges.</p>
<p>  It never failed though. She was at a new job site, here was a<br />
great looking guy, working close to her on this project for the<br />
past three days, and she continued to be too shy to show her<br />
interest in hi m. Michael was about 33 years of age, five feet,<br />
ten inches tall and about 165 pounds. He was in great shape and<br />
had a ruggedly handsome face that drew her like a magnet. He was<br />
always dressed impeccably and his dark hair was well groomed.</p>
<p>  Each time they came into close proximity, Peggy smelled his<br />
scent and could feel his masculinity. He had a great looking set<br />
of buns that Peggy enjoyed sneaking peaks at as he walked around<br />
the room. From the bulge in the front of his pants, she could<br />
imagine that he would have much to offer. However, she was<br />
concerned that at 43 years of age, he might perceive her as a<br />
little too old for his liking. She didn&#8217;t think she could deal<br />
with his rejection. As a result, she didn&#8217;t want to make it too<br />
obvious that she found him attractive.</p>
<p>  &#8220;How about lunch, Peggy? Have you made any plans?&#8221; Michael<br />
asked as they finished up the installation of part of the<br />
equipment that his firm had purchased.</p>
<p>  &#8220;I didn&#8217;t have any plans, Michael. What did you have in mind?&#8221;<br />
Peggy responded.</p>
<p>  &#8220;I thought that maybe we could stop by the Cortez. They&#8217;re<br />
supposed to have great Mexican food. Are you game?&#8221; he queried.<br />
Peggy was surprised and pleased that he would ask her to join<br />
him. They removed to the parking lot and Michael offered to<br />
drive. As they enjoyed a quiet lunch, Peggy began to think that<br />
Michael may be interested in her after all. &#8220;I hope that your<br />
husband won&#8217;t be upset that we&#8217;ve gone out together, Peggy,&#8221; he<br />
said.<br />
  &#8220;Jim wouldn&#8217;t mind at all, Michael. He is always encouraging me<br />
to meet new people. Besides, he&#8217;s out of town for the next couple<br />
of days. We could be running naked down the middle of the road<br />
and he wouldn&#8217;t know,&#8221; she responded.</p>
<p>  Michael thought for a moment and with his eyes focused on the<br />
rim of his margarita glass said, &#8220;Does he also encourage you to<br />
meet new people that find you as attractive as I do?&#8221; Peggy<br />
looked at him with disbelief. &#8220;You&#8217;re not hitting on me, are you<br />
Michael? I thought that I would have to make the first move and I<br />
was afraid that it would be the last as well.&#8221;</p>
<p>  Michael&#8217;s eyes lit up at hearing this, and a smile spread<br />
across his handsome face. &#8220;Is there any chance that we can get<br />
together later? I would very much like to get to know you on a<br />
social basis, if you don&#8217;t think it would compromise you too<br />
much. I can assure you that I am the soul of discretion.&#8221; His<br />
hand reached out and touched her nervous hand as his eyes danced<br />
from her lovely face to her swelling breasts.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Why don&#8217;t you call me at about seven tonight. I&#8217;ll know a<br />
little better what page I&#8217;m on then. If all goes well, you may be<br />
able to come over and watch a movie or something,&#8221; Peggy said as<br />
she became aware of his gaze on her breasts and began to feel a<br />
tingling stir in the pit of her stomach. She was nervous, but she<br />
didn&#8217;t want to pass up a chance at spending a little time with<br />
this wonderful looking and sweet man. Jim had so often suggested<br />
that she broaden her horizons. He usually created or helped to<br />
create her fantasies. It would be exciting to break fear&#8217;s icy<br />
grip and show Jim that she could be creative all on her own. He<br />
would be shocked and terribly happy to know that she had.</p>
<p>  Peggy got home at half past five, fed the fish and began<br />
straightening up the house. She couldn&#8217;t get her mind off of<br />
Michael. What had she gotten herself into? She was becoming more<br />
excited but increasingly apprehensive thinking about being with<br />
him. After putting the house in order, Peggy started to run her<br />
bath water. She quickly removed her clothes and suddenly caught<br />
her reflection in the full mirror. She did look great for a woman<br />
her age. Jim always told her that she was one of the most<br />
exciting women he had ever known. She threw her shoulders back<br />
and pressed her full breasts toward the mirror. They were indeed<br />
lovely.</p>
<p>  Her hands went to the mounds of tit flesh, felt their weight<br />
and squeezed gently. Her pink nipples were beginning to harden<br />
and contract into beautiful knobs of rubbery meat. Taking each<br />
into her thumbs and forefingers, she began to roll them back and<br />
forth, increasing the pressure. Her hands traveled down the sides<br />
of her firm breasts to her hips, around to her warming thighs and<br />
inward to the curls of her pubic garden. Electricity shot through<br />
her as her fingers sought the nub of her swollen clit. First one<br />
finger entered and then another. She could feel the slick<br />
emission of her love lubricant prepare the way for the searching<br />
fingers of her left hand. With her right hand she reached around<br />
her hip to feel the texture and weight of her tightening ass<br />
cheek. Damn was she hot. She w anted to fuck Michael in the worst<br />
way. She began to imagine how his stiff cock bone would feel in<br />
her hairy cunt when she noticed the bath water reaching a<br />
dangerous level.</p>
<p>  She stopped her self assault, turned off the bath water and<br />
tested its temperature. It was just tolerable so she pinned up<br />
her long brown curls and gently entered its heat, continuing to<br />
admire her poised body in the mirror. The heat of the water<br />
served to relax her tensed form. She quickly put herself into a<br />
light trance and seemed to melt into the porcelain of the tub.</p>
<p>  The time passed quickly and soon seven o&#8217;clock registered on<br />
the clock in the dining room. Minutes later the phone rang. Peggy<br />
slowly approached the phone already having made up her mind to<br />
invite Michael over. &#8220;It&#8217;s your new electronic friend, Peggy.<br />
Have I caught you at a bad time?&#8221; Michael asked.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Oh no, Michael. You&#8217;re right on time. Everything looks good<br />
over here, if you would like to stop over around nine. Would that<br />
work into your plans all right?&#8221; she asked in hopes that he<br />
hadn&#8217;t changed his mind.</p>
<p>  Michael didn&#8217;t hesitate for a moment, &#8220;My plans can only hope<br />
that you still want to see me. I can be there at nine. Can I<br />
bring anything with me?&#8221;</p>
<p>  &#8220;Just you. We&#8217;ll have a little pizza and watch some videos of<br />
the Little Rascals. Don&#8217;t be late,&#8221; Peggy encouraged prior to<br />
hanging up the receiver. Oh christ, she thought. He really is<br />
coming over. I better find something to wear.</p>
<p>  Peggy picked out a pair of stretch pants that accented her legs<br />
and fanny quite well and a fitted top that was a little more low<br />
cut than she wore out in public. Pizza in the oven and a bottle<br />
of white wine on ice, what else, she thought. Well, I guess<br />
that&#8217;s it. Now she had only to sit and wait on pins and needles<br />
until he arrived.</p>
<p>  The time couldn&#8217;t pass quickly enough. Five minutes to nine and<br />
the bell rang. Oh shit, she thought, I didn&#8217;t even put on the<br />
front light. She opened the door and Michael stood there with a<br />
cute grin on his face. &#8220;You look great, Peggy. What&#8217;s that I<br />
smell, pizza?&#8221; he said as he entered.</p>
<p>  Wine was poured, pizza served and the movie was put in the<br />
video player. Spanky was &#8220;hunt&#8217;n bugs&#8221; and the couple settled on<br />
to the couch to appreciate the antics of the classic kids. &#8220;What<br />
prompted you to invite me over, Peggy? I really didn&#8217;t think that<br />
you would look twice at me,&#8221; Michael said in a soft voice.</p>
<p>  Peggy twisted to face him and then diverted her gaze at the<br />
space between them, &#8220;In the last few days I&#8217;ve had a chance to<br />
work with you and I think I have come to know you well enough to<br />
know that you are a gentleman. That was my first concern. Beyond<br />
that, you look great and you treat me with respect. What&#8217;s there<br />
not to like? I&#8217;m not going to lie to you. I find you exciting,<br />
and I wanted to spend some time with you. You have&#8230;..&#8221; Her<br />
mouth was silenced when Michael covered her soft lips with his<br />
own. Immediately, his hands were on her breasts as her breath was<br />
stopped by his quick act ions. She seemed to melt right into his<br />
embrace.</p>
<p>  Soon his hands were under to blouse, but it was restrictive<br />
because it was so tight. He reached behind her and unzipped her<br />
zipper and gave himself room to roam. Peggy shrugged her<br />
shoulders without taking her lips from his. The blouse fell free<br />
and she helped him remove it. Her bra held her breasts upright as<br />
if an offering to a god. Michael&#8217;s seemingly skilled fingers<br />
found the catch and popped it free. Again she rolled her<br />
shoulders to shed this barrier. As her breasts fell free<br />
Michael&#8217;s eyes seemed glued to their sway and dance. His hands<br />
returned slowly and gently as he cradled them seeking the juicy<br />
nipples with his thumb and forefinger. A gratifying gasp escaped<br />
from her mouth directly into his lungs.</p>
<p>  Peggy&#8217;s fingers reached for the buttons to his shirt and began<br />
to release them. Michael twisted in an effort to dislodge his<br />
shirt tail from its hiding place and tore one of the sleeve<br />
buttons as he discarded his shirt. Peggy&#8217;s hands searched his<br />
hairy chest and tweaked his sensitive nipples. Michael could feel<br />
his cock begin its metamorphosis. It was straining within the<br />
confines of his trousers.</p>
<p>  Suddenly he rose, unzipped his trousers and left them were they<br />
fell. Peggy slipped her thumbs inside the waistband of her slacks<br />
and peeled them from her heated loins. Michael reached for Peggy<br />
and brought her to her feet to embrace her lovely curves. They<br />
stood locked in one another&#8217;s arms exploring, squeezing and<br />
holding each other.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Come with me, Michael. Let&#8217;s go where it is a lot more<br />
comfortable. Bring the glasses and the wine, would you?&#8221; Peggy<br />
invited. Michael watched the roll of her well-defined buttocks<br />
under her tight, pink panties as she preceded him to the bedroom.<br />
She seemed to be walking on air. His hot cock continued to become<br />
more rigid as he thought about her hot flesh wrapped around him.</p>
<p>  As Peggy deposited Michael in the bed, she excused herself,<br />
walked over to the stereo and turned on the soft sounds of love.<br />
The door to the bath room closed, and she reappeared moments<br />
later with a bottle of coconut oil. &#8220;Turn over on your stomach<br />
and relax, Michael. I want to rub your back for you,&#8221; Peggy said<br />
seductively as she sat on the edge of the large bed.</p>
<p>  Her hands, filled with oil, began to spread the oil on his<br />
back, neck, buttocks and thighs. She loved the feel of his taunt<br />
muscles under her invading hands. Moans escaped Michael&#8217;s mouth<br />
as her hands reached between the strong ass muscles to knead the<br />
strong flesh. He could feel the oil slowly run into the crack of<br />
his buttocks and down to his heavy cum sack. Her hands teased his<br />
hairy balls lightly and returned to deeply massage the tensing<br />
knots of his ass. &#8220;Turn over, love,&#8221; Peggy whispered as she<br />
gently encouraged him with a hand on his hip.</p>
<p>  Her eyes were treated as his growing cock meat came into view.<br />
She applied the oil to his pectoral muscles, belly and thighs. He<br />
closed his eyes, put his hands behind his head and relished the<br />
feel of her gentle, but firm hands caress his body. She watched<br />
his eyebrows raise without opening his eyes as she assaulted his<br />
stiff cock bone with one hand and his heavy sack with the other.<br />
A gasp of pleasure escaped his lips as her oil-drenched hand<br />
easily slid down his thick fuck pole to meet the hand on his<br />
hairy balls. &#8220;If you keep that up, no pun intended, I&#8217;m going to<br />
go off before I should,&#8221; he said with a smile with a deep, sultry<br />
voice.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Now its my turn, Michael. Would you mind giving me a massage?<br />
I&#8217;m dying to have your hands on me,&#8221; she said as her lips reached<br />
down to touch Michaels. She fell into his arms, and her tongue<br />
slipped between his open lips. She could feel her aching breasts<br />
slide across his greased chest.</p>
<p>  He broke the kiss and flipped her on the bed over his hip. &#8220;I<br />
can&#8217;t wait to touch your beautiful fucking body. Get on your<br />
belly and hand me the oil,&#8221; he said authoritatively. In seconds<br />
his strong hands were filled with the oil and touching the<br />
hollows and peaks of her flesh. His eyes moved from her flexed,<br />
towering ass cheeks to the hint of public hair nestled between<br />
her slightly spread leg s. They traveled to her back and the<br />
swell of her breasts on either side. Damn, this woman felt<br />
wonderful. His hands both glided and penetrated her hot flesh.</p>
<p>  Michael turned her over and applied the warm oil to her breasts<br />
and belly. Her spiked nipples glistened with the sheen of the<br />
lubricant as did her red-brown public curls. His hands treated<br />
themselves to her tit flesh, raising them into towers and<br />
allowing them to descend to their relaxed state. He teased her<br />
quivering pussy by approaching her enraged clit but not touching<br />
it. Suddenly, he reached deep between her slightly parted legs<br />
and jammed two fingers into her depth. &#8220;Ohhhhhhhh! Shit, Michael.<br />
Fuck my hot cunt with your fingers. Move them around, deeper,<br />
harder. Fuck my greasy pussy, honey,&#8221; she grunted as her hands<br />
reached out to pull his hand deeper inside of her quaking hole.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Oh fuck, baby. You are so wet and slippery. My cock is going<br />
to feel soooo good inside your treasure hole. Move around here so<br />
I can taste your honey,&#8221; he pleaded. His mouth gorged itself with<br />
her hairy pussy lips as he moved his bulk around so that she<br />
could have access to his furious cock meat.</p>
<p>  &#8220;Give me your bone, Michael. Let me suck your mother fucking<br />
cock. Squeeze my ass, honey,&#8221; she screamed as her lips spread to<br />
accommodate his oil-covered love pole. She drove his penis<br />
immediately into the back of her mouth and lodged its bulbous,<br />
purple-hued head into the tight muscles of her hot throat. Her<br />
moans served to rattle the head of his cock with the vibrations<br />
of her ecstasy.</p>
<p>  As Michael drove his tongue into the depths of her slippery<br />
hole, his nose nestled into the rubbery button of her ass hole.<br />
He could feel the tiny hairs surrounding this nether hole tickle<br />
his nose, and he drove it in harder. Her musky fragrance filled<br />
his senses and his cock felt as if it would burst. One hand<br />
reached behind her to fill itself with meandering ass flesh,<br />
while the other reached back to twist one of her glowing nipples.<br />
&#8220;Pinch it, Michael. Pinch my nipple hard, harder,&#8221; she demanded,<br />
momentarily releasing her mouth from his slippery, driving bone.</p>
<p>  Peggy came up, apparently for air, looked down at her breasts<br />
resting on his chest and his chin buried in her muff. &#8220;Oh, fuck<br />
me, Michael. I need your cock in my guts. Put your fuck pole in<br />
my cunt, honey.&#8221;</p>
<p>  Michael released his two-handed grip on her lovely flesh and<br />
rose from the position he was in. She quickly placed herself in<br />
the most vulnerable position; legs spread wide and pulled back.<br />
She saw him grasp his long cock and stroke it as his eyes seemed<br />
to memorize the folds of her slick pussy lips and the heaving of<br />
her breasts. Closer and closer his engorged member came to her<br />
waiting honey pit. As his cock reached the lips of her pouting<br />
cunt, she cradled her left breast with one hand and spread her<br />
hungry pussy with the other.</p>
<p>  His cock seemed gigantic with lovely veins feeding its length<br />
and an angry looking spear-head kissing the lips of her<br />
womanhood. She began to quiver in anticipation of the joy she<br />
knew would follow. Michael dipped his cock into her oily pussy<br />
only and inch and removed it. He slid it up and down the length<br />
of her slit to insure that he was well lubricated and then drove<br />
it to the deepest recesses of her canal. &#8220;Holy fuuuuck. Oh my god<br />
that feels so good and so deep. Fuck me. Move you cock in and<br />
out. Slam your bone into my hairy hole and fuck me,&#8221; Peggy was<br />
repeating with her eyes as wide open as they had ever been.</p>
<p>  The look on her face was similar to fear, but Michael knew that<br />
it was the look of love-lust. He continued to drive and withdraw<br />
his thick, rigid cock meat in her gaping love hole. Peggy reached<br />
between their perspiring bodies and inserted her fingers in her<br />
pussy to feel his cock enter. She continued her travels to his<br />
heavy sack and massaged his swaying balls. He felt so good inside<br />
of her a nd although she had her hopes, she never imagined that<br />
this man could make her feel this good. She hoped that his cock<br />
would never stop fucking her sloppy, deep hole.</p>
<p>  Michael abruptly stopped as his cock was driven in as deep as<br />
he could go. &#8220;Honey, I would like you to get on your knees so I<br />
can fuck your cunt hole from behind. I want to dog-fuck your<br />
wonderfully tight pussy. I want to watch your buns move as I<br />
drive my love bone into your hot hole,&#8221; Michael shared as his<br />
cock continued to fuck her sweet smelling honey pot.&#8221;</p>
<p>  She reluctantly allowed him to remove his shaft from her<br />
treasure chest, as she quickly moved into a kneeling position to<br />
accept his cock again. It was fortunate that he did stop his<br />
assault when he did, as he felt his balls begin to tighten to<br />
their eventual climax. He wanted to make his pleasure and her joy<br />
last as long as it could. As she turned over, he watched her hole<br />
close, and she turned over and assumed the suggested position.<br />
She lower her nipple-crested breasts to the bed, raiser her tight<br />
ass cheeks and greased pussy in the air and said, &#8220;Put your thick<br />
cock in my tight, greasy cunt and fuck me like a dog.&#8221;</p>
<p>  Michael lowered his stiff cock to her hairy, lust slit and<br />
inserted it as he began to talk to her, &#8220;Back your  smooth ass up<br />
against my cock bone and open your pussy so I can drive my bone<br />
into your love slot, Peggy. I love to fill my hands with your<br />
buttocks. I want to drop my hot fuck load into your guts and hear<br />
you scream with desire. That&#8217;s it! Point you sweet cheeks as me.<br />
Damn you tits look good hanging there and swinging like heavy<br />
sacks.&#8221; Michael filled his hands with the flesh of her ass cheeks<br />
and drove his straining cock in and out of her tight pussy.</p>
<p>  Peggy&#8217;s heavy breasts rested against the palms of his hands<br />
as the cock assault continued. Michael kissed her neck and<br />
periodically slipped his tongue into either ear. Peggy was<br />
senseless. At this point there was no romance. There was no<br />
conversation. There was no awareness of anything other than the<br />
raw animal instincts of fucking. Deep guttural grunts came from<br />
her mouth as her eyes rolled up into her head. Peggy bore down<br />
and pressed her gaping cunt and quivering ass cheeks as hard as<br />
she could onto Michael&#8217;s raging cock and swollen balls.</p>
<p>  A series of staccato, helpless grunts escaped her lips as she<br />
began to cum like never before. Hearing this, smelling the sweet<br />
aroma of sex, feeling his bone deep inside of Peggy&#8217;s belly and<br />
the sensation of Peggy&#8217;s hard nipples torturing the palms of his<br />
hands, Michael pulled his bone from her spasm-ridden tunnel and<br />
began to shoot his thick cream on her pumping, wiggling ass<br />
cheeks. With one hand Michael ran his spurting cock up and down<br />
the crack of her ass spreading the hot cream on her<br />
finely-textured buttocks. With his other hand he reached around<br />
to her clit and began to furiously rub this swollen nub to<br />
lengthen her pleasure. Then he fell forward, sliding his bone<br />
into the deep crack of her hot cheeks and refilling his hands<br />
with her heavy breasts. Soon they both lay exhausted and<br />
apparently paralyzed.</p>
<p>  After they recovered, Peggy and Michael retired to the shower<br />
and cleaned the perspiration and scent of love from one another&#8217;s<br />
body. Michael was soon recovered sufficiently to introduce Peggy<br />
to yet additional pleasures. Fantasy and hypnosis were wonderful.<br />
But now Peggy was armed with additional experiences to make the<br />
most of her time alone and with her husband.</p>
<p>  When Michael had left, Peggy went over to the bookcase where<br />
the stereo was and turned off the video tape recorder. Jim was<br />
going to get the show of his life when he came home. He probably<br />
didn&#8217;t think she had the nerve. Now it was apparent.</p>
<p>                            APPENDIX I</p>
<p>                SELF-HYPNOSIS INDUCTION TECHNIQUES</p>
<p>WHAT IT IS</p>
<p>     One of the most common questions about hypnosis is, &#8220;Can I<br />
be hypnotize? The answer is, you already have been. I&#8217;ll explain<br />
more about that later. However, in order to answer this question<br />
appropriately, one has to know what hypnosis is, and is not. Hyp-<br />
nosis is not sleep as we generally think of it. It is simply an<br />
altered state of consciousness. During hypnosis we put the body<br />
to &#8220;sleep&#8221; and increase the awareness or concentrate the mind in<br />
a specific direction. In a single word is can be defined as<br />
focus. Autohypnosis is nothing more than self induced hypnosis.</p>
<p>     It is only possible for the mind to become focused after the<br />
body does not serve to interrupt our focus. Therefore, our body<br />
feels relaxed, warm, sometimes slightly tingly and at rest. Many<br />
people describe it as the feeling of suspended animation. Our<br />
mind is completely aware of what is going on around us, it is<br />
receptive to suggestion and is still capable of making decisions.<br />
Many empirical studies have been done which suggest that 95% of<br />
the population can be formally hypnotized.</p>
<p>     When we are wide awake our mind is in the beta state. As we<br />
eliminate the influences of the body, such as the minor aches and<br />
pains or the muscle tensions, our mind drifts into an altered<br />
state called alfa. Once this state is reached we may then enter<br />
into the theta state. The theta state is hypnosis. With practice<br />
we can reach the delta state which is deep hypnosis.</p>
<p>     When I suggested that you already have been hypnotized, I<br />
was referring to common everyday states that are not tradition-<br />
ally considered hypnosis. If you have ever caught yourself<br />
daydreaming, you have reached the theta state. Your mind was<br />
focused and you were not aware of anything else around you. Have<br />
you ever driven your car to a destination you often drive to and<br />
wondered how you got there?  Your mind was on something else. You<br />
were in the theta state. Some people allow the thump of the road<br />
or the divider lines in the road to put them to &#8220;sleep.&#8221; This<br />
also is theta. Deep concentration associated with watching a<br />
movie or reading a book may also bring on the theta state. Vir-<br />
tually all of us have experience one or more of these phenomenon.<br />
If we have, we can be formally hypnotized.</p>
<p>THE PROCESS</p>
<p>     Begin the process of autohypnosis by selecting a place of<br />
privacy and comfort; someplace free of noise and distractions. It<br />
is also helpful to use the same place as often as possible, be-<br />
cause as time goes on, it will become a reassuring and comforting<br />
place conducive to your efforts. Relax on a bed, a lounge chair<br />
or even the floor. Many people find that the bath tub is most<br />
conducive to self hypnosis; but exercise caution with the water<br />
level. It is unlikely you would drown, but it can be uncomfort-<br />
able to take in a breath full of water. When possible use the<br />
same position to allow your nervous system to let go.</p>
<p>     Dress in a manner that will support your efforts. You will<br />
want to loosen or remove any tight or restrictive clothing.<br />
Removal of any jewelry or eye glasses will also assist in your<br />
initial efforts. Once you have obtained a comfortable position,<br />
empty your mind of any exact thinking and let your mind wander.<br />
Simply relax and enjoy the feeling of doing and thinking nothing.<br />
Just be one with yourself.</p>
<p>     You may encounter influences that attempt to interrupt your<br />
relaxation such as recurring specific thoughts or muscle<br />
twitches. Simply push them out of your mind. If you continue to<br />
experience difficulty use a technique called muscle-tensing.<br />
Tense the large muscle groups such as the shoulders, back, but-<br />
tocks, legs, stomach, groin and arms, one group at a time. Tense<br />
them each tightly as you think &#8220;Tighten up!; Tense!&#8221; Then relax<br />
each group of muscles completely while you think &#8220;Relax; Let go<br />
completely!&#8221; Next think of your body as something that you are<br />
not attached to. Imagine it as if it were a limp doll laying on a<br />
cloud.</p>
<p>     Your eyes are the next element to deal with. Select a spot<br />
above eye level on the wall or ceiling and concentrate your focus<br />
on it. It does not have to be a specific spot. A general spot<br />
will do, but it should be above eye level. Think of your eyes as<br />
becoming tired but do not close them yet. Count backwards from<br />
ten to zero slowly and tell yourself that at the count of zero<br />
you will be able to close your eyes. As you close your eyes think<br />
that there is nothing that you care to see with them; that you<br />
are turning them inward to experience the inner you.</p>
<p>     Breathing plays a vital part in your experience. Place your<br />
hand on your stomach just below your chest. As you breath deeply<br />
using your tummy, you will feel the rumble of your breath under<br />
your hand. Don&#8217;t use your chest to breathe. After you establish<br />
the correct deep-diaphragm breathing pattern, relax your hand and<br />
return it to your side. One third of the air we breathe goes<br />
directly to the brain. This will also serve to feed the mind and<br />
improve relaxation. When you exhale, your chest and tummy muscles<br />
will relax even more. The heart and internal organs also become<br />
relaxed, sending messages to the brain reinforcing relaxation.</p>
<p>     Now you are ready to relax completely. Stress and tension<br />
generally serve to squeeze the minor muscle groups, nerves and<br />
blood vessels. As you become more relaxed and relieve yourself of<br />
tension, the blood circulates better and sends more oxygen to the<br />
brain. You are now ready to give yourself suggestions that will<br />
deepen your relaxation. Start at the top of the head and work<br />
down the body to the feet. Tell yourself to &#8220;let go completely!&#8221;<br />
Suggest a heavy, limp feeling into each area of the body. You may<br />
even consider recording and playing it to yourself. Such a mes-<br />
sage could be as follows:</p>
<p>     &#8220;My scalp is relaxing completely. I can feel it reducing the<br />
     tension on my face and the temples of my head. My eyes are<br />
     heavy and at rest. All of the little muscles and nerves sur-<br />
     rounding my eyes are completely relaxed. As I think of my<br />
     head relaxing, I can feel it happen.</p>
<p>     &#8220;The muscles of my neck are continuing to completely relax.<br />
     My chest is relieved of tension and my arms are limp and<br />
     heavy. I feel a warmth and a heaviness in my back and in my<br />
     buttocks. It&#8217;s as if I am melting into the surface which<br />
     holds me. My hips are heavy and there is a wonderful relaxed<br />
     sensation running down my legs into my feet.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Now my entire body feels at rest and completely free of<br />
     pressure. I feel no tension &#8211; just an enhanced feeling of<br />
     relaxation and well-being.&#8221;</p>
<p>     If you experience any area of your body that does not sur-<br />
render to this feeling of relaxation and well-being, turn your<br />
focus to that region and continue your suggestions. It will not<br />
take long to correct the situation. One method to assist with<br />
difficult areas is to imagine the area being painted with a local<br />
anesthetic with each breath you take. Soon you will be completely<br />
and totally relaxed.</p>
<p>     Another method commonly used is to focus on a particular<br />
part of the body, such as the hands or a single finger. If you<br />
clasp your hands together, feel the sensations associated with<br />
your interlocked fingers. Look at the nails, the cuticles, the<br />
joints of each finger or the lines in each digit. As your focus<br />
increases, the feeling in your fingers will begin to melt away.<br />
You will then notice that you can, at will, recall or heighten<br />
the sensation in your fingers.</p>
<p>     Continued practice in this focus effort will provide you<br />
with the ability to turn your hands off and on. This can quickly<br />
be transferred to other areas of the body in a natural manner. As<br />
we concentrate on one area of the body, the rest of the body<br />
naturally relaxes. Whether it is the former method, this method<br />
or any other variation, you are learning to focus your attention<br />
and the body naturally relaxes and will eventually be devoid of<br />
feeling.</p>
<p>     You are just about there at this point. The body has been<br />
put to &#8220;sleep,&#8221; and the mind can become your focus. Imagine a<br />
very pleasant place from your childhood. If nothing immediately<br />
comes to mind, invent one. It could be a warm beach with sea<br />
gulls in the distance providing the music of nature. You are at<br />
rest on your back as you watch the puffs of clouds wander across<br />
the canvas of the sky. The sun is warm on your body. There is no<br />
decision that has to be made. There is nothing that you care to<br />
think about at this point. You simply want to relax your mind and<br />
create a passage to your inner self.</p>
<p>     At this stage of your induction you will feel a sense of<br />
well-being and a feeling of togetherness with yourself. You have<br />
hypnotized yourself.</p>
<p>DEEPENING THE TRANCE</p>
<p>     There are many techniques that can be used to deepen the<br />
trance. With a little practice, you will be able to reach the<br />
above state within as little as five minutes on the average. Some<br />
people have trained themselves to enter this state within<br />
seconds. At this point your body is &#8220;sleeping&#8221; and your mind is<br />
relaxed and open to suggestion. Imagine yourself going down a<br />
long escalator, skiing down a long hill, or walking down a long<br />
sloping grass-covered hill. You can select that scenario which<br />
you are most comfortable with. You can&#8217;t quite see the bottom,<br />
but you continue to go lower and lower.</p>
<p>     With each foot you descend, you are falling deeper and<br />
deeper &#8220;asleep.&#8221; Soon you will come to realize that you are half<br />
of the way down. At this point, continue to repeat the words,<br />
&#8220;Deeper and Deeper &#8211; Lower and Lower. More relaxed than I have<br />
ever been before.&#8221; Start counting backward from fifty to zero.<br />
With each number you will become deeper &#8220;asleep.&#8221; When you reach<br />
the bottom, you will be more deeply asleep and more relaxed than<br />
you have ever been before.</p>
<p>NOW WHAT</p>
<p>     Once you have reached the desired state of hypnosis, what<br />
will you do now? The answer is anything that you wish. In the<br />
initial several sessions, I recommend that you simply enjoy the<br />
sensation that you have created. Most people enjoy the sensation<br />
of deep relaxation. Your body becomes very lethargic and seems to<br />
melt into the surface which holds you. After this, it is impor-<br />
tant to determine what improvements you wish to make. Each of us<br />
have characteristics that we are happy with and others that we<br />
would like to change.</p>
<p>     Even at this level of hypnosis we can make remarkable ad-<br />
vances. We can correct our weight problems, quit smoking, get a<br />
more restful sleep, reduce or eliminate pain or correct some<br />
other habitual behavior. We can increase our sexual sensations,<br />
improve our memory or develop our waking focus in some other<br />
positive fashion.</p>
<p>     As you become advanced, positive and negative hallucinations<br />
can be created. We can create things that are not there or erase<br />
things that are. Each of our five senses can be hallucinated. We<br />
can give ourselves suggestions which make us actually see some-<br />
thing appear in a room. We can refrain from feeling something<br />
that we are touching. We can smell a roast beef dinner that isn&#8217;t<br />
there. We can increase or decrease the room temperature. Most of<br />
these hallucinations require a great deal of work initially. Once<br />
it is acquired, it can be called upon at any time.</p>
<p>     The reduction or elimination of pain is a useful tool, espe-<br />
cially if we encounter some chronic situation in our lives such<br />
as arthritis. Going to the dentist has its draw-backs. We can<br />
easily desensitize our mouth and teeth. Simply remember the sen-<br />
sation of novocain that you experienced at one time or another.<br />
These sensations are filed away in the computer that we call our<br />
brain. Every sensation that we have ever had is filed in this<br />
computer. Once you develop the ability to turn on your anes-<br />
thetic, it can easily be reproduced at the dentist&#8217;s office.</p>
<p>     These are only a few of the things that can be created with<br />
the use of self-hypnosis. Each phenomenon will be very real. Al-<br />
though virtually anything can be accomplished, I recommend that<br />
you begin slowly. Instead of creating an hallucination, try an<br />
illusion instead. The difference is, by way of example, turning<br />
something into something else. Visually, you may care to turn a<br />
coat rack into a tree. The first time you experience something<br />
like this, it will shock you. This shock factor will strengthen<br />
the foundation you are building for yourself. Soon you will be<br />
your own master. Weight loss, quitting cigarettes, memory reten-<br />
tion, improved sexual libido and pain reduction are only a few of<br />
the things that can be accomplished. Simply remember that you<br />
will get as much out of it as you put in. I&#8217;ll try to share more<br />
with you in the future. For now &#8211; just relax and enjoy!</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/bored-babes/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Sex with a married man</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/sex-with-a-married-man/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/sex-with-a-married-man/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Tue, 20 May 2008 15:40:57 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[erotic sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex story text only]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/sex-with-a-married-man/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[     This last weekend was a surprise for me, the first time  I&#8217;d
&#8220;done&#8221; a married man (though god knows I&#8217;ve looked at &#8216;em in  the
past!).  When it was all through, though, he could say he&#8217;d still
been (mostly) faithful.
     I  threw this small party [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>     This last weekend was a surprise for me, the first time  I&#8217;d<br />
&#8220;done&#8221; a married man (though god knows I&#8217;ve looked at &#8216;em in  the<br />
past!).  When it was all through, though, he could say he&#8217;d still<br />
been (mostly) faithful.</p>
<p>     I  threw this small party for a dozen or so  friends  Friday<br />
night,  sort of a kickoff for the July 4 weekend.  John  came  up<br />
from  The  City,  on  his way to  the  Sierras  for  a  weekend&#8217;s<br />
backpacking, something his wife never really liked.  I think  she<br />
went  home to mother, or somesuch.  Anyhow, the party went  late,<br />
and  when it was breaking up, John asked if he could stay on  the<br />
sleeper in the living room, rather than try to drive on at  night<br />
to a dark campground.  I said sure.<br />
<span id="more-49"></span><br />
     John  and  I made up the sleeper and then I went to  take  a<br />
shower.   When  I  came out, in my robe, he was in  the  bed  and<br />
reading. I said goodnight and turned to head for my bedroom  when<br />
he made some funny comment about what he&#8217;d just read.  I  laughed<br />
too, and went over to see more.  When he showed me the article, I<br />
recognized it and we started talking.  I was soon sitting on  the<br />
side of his bed, listening and watching.  As I looked I  realized<br />
what  a real cutie he really was&#8211;all that dark hair, the  strong<br />
shoulders  (all I could see of his body), and those  great  teeth<br />
that showed when he smiled.  I got to thinking what a great  find<br />
his  wife had.  Then, somehow, he made some gesture and his  hand<br />
ended up on my leg&#8211;and I really don&#8217;t know how to explain  this,<br />
but  my hand suddenly went there on top of his.  He looked at  me<br />
funny  and  gave me a gentle squeeze as he tried  to  pull  away,<br />
which  I returned.  He smiled and said, &#8220;Ann, I can&#8217;t.   Really.&#8221;<br />
You know, The Speech.</p>
<p>     I  just murmured and bent down to kiss him.  Of course,  the<br />
robe  fell open and of course his hand went inside it  and  about<br />
halfway  through the kiss I knew we were in trouble.  We sort  of<br />
stayed that way for a while and then I moved my legs up onto  the<br />
bed.   His hand went from my side to my back, and his other  hand<br />
went  to my butt, stroking it gently.  I pulled the  covers  from<br />
under  me and ran my hand down his chest and across his  stomach.<br />
He was so strong, too!  I nibbled on his ear and he just moaned.</p>
<p>     Well, this was fun and all that, but he was right, he WAS (I<br />
mean,  &#8220;is&#8221;) married, after all.  His hand was now on  my  breast<br />
and  I  was going to have to decide something, soon.   I  made  a<br />
decision, sat up, and then swung my leg over to straddle him.  He<br />
looked disappointed as I sat up, and then delighted as I moved my<br />
leg across his body.  He was on his back and I was sitting across<br />
his thighs.</p>
<p>     Now  he  could  put both hands on my  breasts.   He  was  so<br />
strong, and yet so gentle!  His hands just sort of came up my rib<br />
cage  and  stroked my breasts from underneath to the  nipple.   I<br />
found I could sort of sag into his palms.  I grabbed his cock and<br />
began  to  stroke it, and then every once in a while,  needing  a<br />
little  oral contact, I bent down and kissed him or let him  suck<br />
my tits.  I was warm all over and every part of him I touched was<br />
warm, too.</p>
<p>     Then  his  hand went around and began to play with  my  butt<br />
again.   I  lifted myself up and moved up until  I  was  directly<br />
above  his cock.  I was really wet by now and could feel  my  cum<br />
running out.  I set my pussy on his balls and just stroked it  up<br />
his  shaft.  Up, lift, back, down, again and again. His cock  was<br />
really  getting wet!  He just moaned, and then moved his hand  to<br />
grab  both my cheeks.  He tried to move me just that bit  farther<br />
up to where he could slide in, and I really wanted to, but I knew<br />
things would be different tomorrow and next week.  &#8220;No,&#8221; I  said,<br />
&#8220;but wait.&#8221;  He was getting even longer and really throbbing!</p>
<p>     His hand began alternating from my breasts to my butt.   His<br />
legs went up and then down, and I could feel his pelvis thrusting<br />
in  time  to my stroking.  His eyes were squeezed shut  and  that<br />
great smile of his was all across his face!</p>
<p>     I  could  feel myself throbbing, too.  I was  working  up  a<br />
sweat  (I  almost laughed out loud when I realized I&#8217;d  now  need<br />
ANOTHER shower!) but he felt so good beneath me I couldn&#8217;t  stop.<br />
My  clit  was bumping the top of his cock every time  I  slid  up<br />
there  and  I was just about out  of  control  until&#8211;THERE!&#8211;and<br />
there again!&#8211;and again!&#8211;I was coming and the contractions  just<br />
wouldn&#8217;t stop.  I collapsed onto him, with my legs wrapped around<br />
his  thighs  and my feet tucked between his  calves,  my  breasts<br />
crushed against his chest, and his hands stroking my butt and  my<br />
back.   I really don&#8217;t think he came, but he was  looking  really<br />
good!   Besides, it was too wet down there to really tell in  the<br />
half light.</p>
<p>     I  would have loved to stay all night. But, like I said,  he<br />
was  married  and  it just wouldn&#8217;t do to have  SLEPT  with  him.<br />
After  a few moments I tore myself away and staggered back to  my<br />
bed,  firmly and quietly shutting the door behind me  (no  ideas,<br />
John!).</p>
<p>     I  was  asleep  almost  before I was in  my  own  bed  (cold<br />
sheets!).  When I awoke, it was late Sunday morning and John  was<br />
gone.   He&#8217;d stripped the bed and left a pile of  musky  smelling<br />
sheets.  I&#8217;m sure he had to hike a few extra miles to get me  out<br />
of his system!</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/sex-with-a-married-man/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Get a hand into his pants</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/get-a-hand-into-his-pants/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/get-a-hand-into-his-pants/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Fri, 29 Feb 2008 18:43:59 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex text message]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sinful tale]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/?p=42</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[        The Rainbow Wizard carefully packed away his guitar in its case, and
closed the lid. He hefted the case easily in one hand, and smiled sweetly at
Flower. &#8220;I had a wonderful time this evening,&#8221; he said, &#8220;And I hope that we
can do it again sometime soon.&#8221;
   [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>        The Rainbow Wizard carefully packed away his guitar in its case, and<br />
closed the lid. He hefted the case easily in one hand, and smiled sweetly at<br />
Flower. &#8220;I had a wonderful time this evening,&#8221; he said, &#8220;And I hope that we<br />
can do it again sometime soon.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, I&#8217;d like that,&#8221; Flower replied, picking up her own guitar. &#8220;It<br />
was wonderful meeting you. I was beginning to feel like I wasn&#8217;t going to make<br />
any friends here at all. Well, goodnight!&#8221; With a wave, she turned and was<br />
gone, guitar case banging against her knees as she strode toward the elevator.<br />
        The Rainbow Wizard watched her leave, his smile contemplative in a<br />
manner only practiced by those in the Messiah business. After a long moment,<br />
he sighed gustily and turned to Mary Magdalene, who&#8217;d packed her guitar away<br />
and was standing with her arms crossed, looking at him with an expression that<br />
would curdle fresh milk.<br />
        He smiled at her disarmingly. &#8220;What&#8217;s wrong, my love?&#8221;<br />
        Mary Magdalene didn&#8217;t even wind up. One strong fist came up in a blur<br />
and caught the Rainbow Wizard right in the gut. He stumbled backward one or<br />
two steps with a grunt of pain, stumbled over a coffee table, and fell<br />
backward onto it, then onto the couch behind it, with a clatter.<span id="more-42"></span><br />
        Thud, who was idly playing a round of cribbage with himself in the<br />
corner, raised an eyebrow at that. Definitely unstable, he thought wearily. He<br />
should&#8217;ve seen it coming.<br />
        &#8220;I hope you&#8217;re satisfied,&#8221; Mary Magdalene hissed. &#8220;You fucking lecher!<br />
I&#8217;d rip your nuts off and feed them to the fish, if they&#8217;d eat them!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;What&#8217;s the&#8211;oof&#8211;matter with you, Mary? What&#8217;d I do?&#8221; The Rainbow<br />
Wizard scrambled to his feet clumsily. He ran after Mary Magdalene as she<br />
grabbed her coat and stormed out the front doors of the Habitat, fuming.<br />
        &#8220;Hey, Wiz! What about your guitars?&#8221; Thud called.<br />
        &#8220;Please keep them in your room, Thud. I&#8217;ll retrieve them later. This<br />
is much more important,&#8221; the Rainbow Wizard called over his shoulder. He was<br />
out the door in an instant, gone in a blast of cold air.<br />
        Thud watched them go, and sighed. He began to gather up his cards.<br />
Time to call it a night, I guess, he thought. No more fun stuff to watch.<br />
        Mary Magdalene was walking at full steam, her back stiff and her eyes<br />
straight forward as she crossed the campus, heading for the northern edge of<br />
Arcadia&#8217;s campus. Behind her, the Rainbow Wizard stumbled through the snow,<br />
calling, &#8220;MARY MAGDALENE, WAIT! PLEASE! TELL ME WHAT&#8217;S WRONG!&#8221;<br />
        At those words, Mary Magdalene stopped dead in her tracks and slowly<br />
turned to face the Rainbow Wizard as he caught up with her, panting. The sound<br />
of a party in another of the dorms carried faintly over the snowy field as he<br />
stopped just out of her reach, shivering in the wind.<br />
        &#8220;Tell you what&#8217;s wrong?&#8221; Her whisper was thick with disbelief. &#8220;Tell<br />
you WHAT&#8217;S WRONG? YOU STEAMING SHIT! HOW DARE YOU?&#8221; The whisper turned into a<br />
shriek in the space of a half sentence. &#8220;Do you think I&#8217;m blind? Or just<br />
stupid! I SAW you tonight, the whole fucking NIGHT, drooling all over that<br />
little cunt like a goddamned sled dog in heat! You motherfucking HYPOCRITE!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Mary&#8211;&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;SHUT UP!&#8221; Her eyes were wild in the dim moonlight, and spittle flew<br />
from her lower lip. She paused for a sobbing breath, and continued in a choked<br />
monotone. &#8220;Three years I sat with you, you son of a bitch. Three YEARS! Every<br />
other girl in the goddamned high school was out having a normal life, going on<br />
dates, having REAL boyfriends, and I just sat in a chair by a hospital bed<br />
waiting for you to open your eyes and tell me you loved me one last time<br />
before you DIED!&#8221; She gasped for breath. &#8220;I watched them open you up and haul<br />
out your insides! I watched them fill you with chemicals and shoot you full of<br />
radiation and I watched your h-h-hair fall out and I listened to them t-tell<br />
m-me that y-y-you were g-g-gonna DIE&#8230;.&#8221; She fell to her knees and buried her<br />
face in her hands, crying hysterically.<br />
        The Rainbow Wizard reached out and gently laid a hand on her shoulder.<br />
She shrugged away from it roughly, not looking up. &#8220;No, don&#8217;t pull away,&#8221; he<br />
said calmly. &#8220;Are you trying to tell me that&#8217;d you&#8217;d rather I&#8217;d died?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;No,&#8221; she sighed into her hands, her sobs subsiding a bit.<br />
        &#8220;It sounds that way to me,&#8221; he continued. &#8220;It sounds like you&#8217;re<br />
blaming me for wasting an awful lot of your life that you could have spent<br />
elsewhere, doing other things. If I&#8217;d died&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, shut up,&#8221; Mary Magdalene whispered.<br />
        &#8220;No, I won&#8217;t. This is important to you, or you wouldn&#8217;t have hurt me<br />
that way.&#8221; His tone never wavered, a perfect psychiatrist&#8217;s drone, comforting<br />
and insistent. &#8220;Where would you be if I were dead? Would you be happier?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;N-no.&#8221; Mary Magdalene slowly got to her feet. Her knees were soaked<br />
through and freezing, and she shivered under her coat.<br />
        &#8220;We both know what you did for fun before you and I got together,&#8221; the<br />
Rainbow Wizard said sternly. &#8220;I don&#8217;t consider hanging out at the Palladium<br />
and trying to get into the music business from the mattress up to be a<br />
terribly rewarding future, do you?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;That&#8217;s not FAIR!&#8221; Mary Magdalene sniffled. &#8220;I was making FRIENDS in<br />
the business! I had CONTACTS! I&#8230;I&#8230;.&#8221; Her head came up proudly. &#8220;I gave<br />
some of those visiting musicians the best times they&#8217;d ever HAD!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;And are you a better person for it?&#8221;<br />
        She glared at him, her eyes dark pits of rage.<br />
        &#8220;Why were you so angry at me tonight?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;You know damn well why I was angry at you! Why I&#8217;m STILL angry at<br />
you! Where the hell do you get off doing the romantic warrior routine with<br />
that sawed-off little twat? She&#8217;s NOTHING! Just a stuck-up brat from Crystal<br />
City who seems to think she can just waltz in and waltz out with MY MAN!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Your man?&#8221; His soft voice carried the faintest hint of danger.<br />
        &#8220;You&#8217;re&#8211;damn&#8211;RIGHT!&#8221; She jerked a thumb up, pointing at herself.<br />
&#8220;Stand there and tell yourself you&#8217;d be alive to CHASE that little shit if I<br />
hadn&#8217;t brought you through this! I wouldn&#8217;t make fun of you when your hair<br />
grew back a different color, I held your hand while you puked up the whole<br />
damn medicine chest, I changed your bedpans&#8211;hell, I even changed your I.V. a<br />
couple of times when the nurses were too busy!&#8221; Her tone gradually took on a<br />
note of triumph. &#8220;You owe me your life, you stinking cur! If it hadn&#8217;t been<br />
for me, you would&#8217;ve just given up and DIED! This life you&#8217;re living is yours<br />
because I gave it to you and YOU OWE ME! And I will NOT have you sniffing<br />
around at the crotches of every female that passes by! Is that clear?&#8221;<br />
        The Rainbow Wizard regarded her cautiously. &#8220;Very clear,&#8221; he said. &#8220;I<br />
hadn&#8217;t realized that you were so unsure of my love for you that you could<br />
misconstrue what happened tonight. That&#8217;s such a shame&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, come OFF it! You&#8217;re not going to tell me that there was nothing<br />
going on between you&#8211; she would&#8217;ve stuck her face in your crotch if I hadn&#8217;t<br />
been there, and you know it!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Yes, maybe she would have,&#8221; the Rainbow Wizard nodded. &#8220;And you&#8217;re<br />
quite convinced that I would have thrown away everything we&#8217;ve built and<br />
gleefully let her carry me away?&#8221;<br />
        Mary Magdalene was silent, her gaze wavering the tiniest bit.<br />
        &#8220;Are you so convinced that she&#8217;s your superior that I couldn&#8217;t<br />
possibly resist her,&#8221; he persisted. &#8220;Are you so sure that I wouldn&#8217;t have just<br />
told her, &#8216;No, my heart belongs to another. You are lovely, but you are not<br />
for me,&#8217; and made her leave it at that?&#8221; He shook his head. &#8220;That&#8217;s the most<br />
depressing news I&#8217;ve heard in a long time.&#8221; He turned and began to walk back<br />
to the Habitat. &#8220;I wonder if the Bandit&#8217;s still awake? He&#8217;d get a real charge<br />
out of hearing this&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        Mary Magdalene called after him, &#8220;Wait!&#8221; Her voice was still full of<br />
tears, but now they were tears of misery rather than anger.<br />
        &#8220;No, I&#8217;m cold. I don&#8217;t have a jacket,&#8221; he said, still walking away.<br />
        Mary Magdalene ran the few steps that brought her to his side, and<br />
opened her coat, casting it over his shoulders and drawing him inside it with<br />
her. &#8220;Don&#8217;t go,&#8221; she whispered. &#8220;I&#8217;m sorry I misjudged you. It just seemed&#8211;&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;I know what it must have seemed like,&#8221; he said softly, turning to<br />
face her. He slipped his arms around her, and she drew her hands into the coat<br />
sleeves and held it shut behind his back, a warm cocoon enveloping them. &#8220;But<br />
if I&#8217;m to be denied even the chance to admire a beautiful girl without seeming<br />
a traitor, wouldn&#8217;t it be better for me just to be struck blind?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, don&#8217;t say things like that,&#8221; she whispered, and kissed him.<br />
        &#8220;I love you. Never forget that. I love you.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;I love you&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        They stood huddled together under her coat, kissing tenderly, for what<br />
seemed like hours. Strange sounds seemed to come from somewhere inside the<br />
coat&#8217;s folds: first the clink of a belt buckle, then the distinct zip of a<br />
zipper being opened. Mary Magdalene gasped, then laughed deep in her throat<br />
and kissed the Wizard even harder. Another zipping noise.<br />
        &#8220;Ooohh,&#8221; Mary Magdalene husked. &#8220;What are you going to do with THAT?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Nothing, if it freezes off,&#8221; the Rainbow Wizard smiled.<br />
        She laughed and reached up to nibble his ear. &#8220;I have a place to keep<br />
it warm,&#8221; she whispered. &#8220;Hurry.&#8221;<br />
        The next few moments must have been as funny as hell to watch, as the<br />
coat bounced and flapped a bit around the two bodies jockeying for position.<br />
The edge of the coat whipped open for an instant in the wind, exposing a brief<br />
glimpse of what lay in the shadows: a silky thigh, the black curl of pubic<br />
hair, and something that seemed almost to glow&#8230;.<br />
        Then the pair turned to let the wind blow the coat shut again, and<br />
Mary Magdalene gasped and threw her head back. &#8220;UH! YEAH, YEAH!&#8221;<br />
        Mmmmmmm&#8230;.&#8221; The Rainbow Wizard bent forward and licked her neck as<br />
she drew herself back like a bow in his arms and began to gasp and moan in a<br />
familiar rhythm. Suddenly she went rigid, keening like a wolf as her orgasm<br />
swept over her, heat and bitter cold mingled in the night. She cried out in<br />
ecstasy as he gave a loud grunt and shuddered in her embrace, his eyes shut<br />
and his head lowered with the effort.<br />
        For a long while they stood very still, just holding each other. Then,<br />
they straightened up, kissing gently, and the odd buckling and zipping noises<br />
came back. A police car went by on the narrow street, its siren blaring,<br />
causing them to start like frightened deer and cling to one another. Then they<br />
laughed with the release of tension, and turned to leave the field.<br />
        &#8220;Would you like to go back for your coat?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;No, I&#8217;ll hold you close until we get to your house.&#8221;</p>
<p>        Conan crunched through the snow toward the brightly lit courtyard that<br />
fronted the Student Union, rubbing his tired eyes. I should know better than<br />
to read stuff like that before going to bed alone, he said disgustedly to<br />
himself. Now I&#8217;m gonna have to drink myself into a coma to be able to sleep!<br />
Bitch Goddesses of Thamazor, who&#8217;d I think I was kidding?<br />
        Students were going in and out of the Union, enjoying the late night<br />
hours of the bar and dance club as a release from studying. Conan caught a<br />
sudden whiff of grilling hamburgers, and his stomach responded with a burbling<br />
growl. Maybe I&#8217;ll eat first, he decided ruefully. You can never metabolize<br />
enough protein&#8230;.<br />
        &#8220;Let go of me, you pig! LET GO! HEELLLLLPPPP!&#8221;<br />
        Conan&#8217;s head jerked up at the sound of the terrified scream.<br />
        &#8220;Shut up, you bitch!&#8221; The roar of a drunken voice was followed by a<br />
slap and a cry of pain. Conan located the source of the sound; it was a<br />
shadowed area under one of the walkways, famous for private trysts at night.<br />
He kicked into a dead run and was there in bare seconds, his massive legs<br />
covering the distance in the time it took the students nearby in the courtyard<br />
to look around for the source of the scream.<br />
        An attractive young woman was struggling on the concrete bench with a<br />
young man who was trying to hold her wrists. Conan grabbed him by the scruff<br />
of the neck and bodily hauled him off of her, then up off the bench.<br />
        &#8220;Hey, what&#8217;s the&#8211;&#8221; The boy&#8217;s voice cut off abruptly as Conan turned<br />
him around and he got a good look at his assailant. He swallowed, then tried<br />
for a shaky smile.<br />
        &#8220;Leave her alone,&#8221; Conan said with a friendly grin.<br />
        &#8220;Uh, look, man, me and my girlfriend were just&#8211;UNGH!&#8221; With a sudden<br />
shove, Conan slammed him back bodily against the wall of the underpass.<br />
knocking his breath away.<br />
        &#8220;Leave, I said,&#8221; Conan repeated pleasantly. The boy gained his feet,<br />
gasped for breath, and took off like a spooked raccoon, pushing aside the few<br />
curious students who were just arriving on the scene.<br />
        Conan didn&#8217;t even watch him leave. He turned his attention to the<br />
girl, who was sitting on the bench, hugging herself and shivering.<br />
        &#8220;Are you all right? Did he hurt you?&#8221; Conan held out a hand to her.<br />
Hesitantly, she took it, and he led her out into the streetlights. There was a<br />
spattering of applause from the few people who&#8217;d remained to see what the<br />
ruckus was about.<br />
        &#8220;Yeah! Conan saves another damsel in distress!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Way to go, Conan!&#8221;<br />
        Conan grinned at the crowd, eating up the applause. His smile died on<br />
his face when he saw the girl clearly in the light. Her eye was rapidly<br />
swelling and turning black as he watched, and she was obviously in a lot of<br />
pain.<br />
        &#8220;Thank you,&#8221; she said in a feeble whisper.<br />
        &#8220;Let me walk you to the hospital,&#8221; he replied. &#8220;You should get a cold<br />
compress for that eye.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Okay,&#8221; she nodded. It took an obvious effort, but she smiled.<br />
        He offered an arm to her, and said to the crowd, &#8220;I&#8217;m taking her to<br />
Wright Memorial Trauma Ward. If the Security Squad want a statement, they can<br />
find us there, okay?&#8221; There were a few scattered nods of assent.<br />
        &#8220;Come on.&#8221; He smiled at her as she took his arm, and led her around<br />
the Union, toward the highway and the hospital.</p>
<p>        The noise and lights in the Clean Room were at their height. Zero<br />
cavorted on the dance floor, his body shaking to the beat as he watched Diva<br />
cut loose. She was squeezed into a spandex leotard in a tiger-stripe pattern<br />
and a pair of skintight black pants, and her eyes were shut as she swayed in<br />
time to the music. Zero&#8217;s eyes were fastened on her crotch, and on a small<br />
wedge-shaped bulge that went utterly unnoticed by everyone else in the room,<br />
as did the tiny remote control clutched in his fist and the thin wire that ran<br />
from his hand into the waist of her tights. He gave the power button a gentle<br />
stroke, and watched Diva contort and thrash in what must have seemed a<br />
particularly enthusiastic dance move.<br />
        &#8220;Oh Lord God Jesus Christ Almighty!&#8221; She threw herself at him, biting<br />
his neck and grinding her pelvis against his. He could feel the faint thrum of<br />
the clit-vibe against his penis as she frantically grabbed for the remote.<br />
&#8220;Gimme that thing you sonofabitch don&#8217;t keep turning it onnanoff yer killing<br />
me my clit&#8217;s gonna bust wide open you sonofAAAAAAAAAAAAA!&#8221; She hugged him hard<br />
as he gave the power button another jab, and he deftly held it out of her<br />
reach. One or two other people were noticing that Diva appeared a bit too<br />
enthusiastic about the song, and were looking their way with a mixture of<br />
confusion and amusement.<br />
        &#8220;Time to go, liebchen,&#8221; Zero said quietly, flicking the remote off and<br />
leading Diva off the dance floor and through the crowd. She followed along<br />
behind him, still trying to pry the remote from his hands.<br />
        A crowd was just dispersing out in the hallway of the Union where the<br />
entrances to the Burger Bar and the Clean Room met; from the broken glassware<br />
and the small spot of blood on the carpet, it looked as if the campus police<br />
had had a rough time with someone in the Bar. But Diva was too far gone to<br />
notice, and Zero was having too much fun torturing her to give the situation<br />
more than a passing glance. He whispered, &#8220;Ready to go home?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;NO NO God no,&#8221; Diva moaned, arms about his neck and teeth nibbling at<br />
his Adam&#8217;s apple, &#8220;I&#8217;ll never make it home you gotta do me here you gotta do<br />
me here gimme that thing you sonofabitch I&#8217;m dying!&#8221; She made one last attempt<br />
to get the remote from him, then gave up and began to rub her hands up and<br />
down the length of his penis, outlined against the crotch of his jeans. Zero<br />
blinked in surprise and did his best to start a nonchalant stroll down the<br />
hall away from the clubs, but Diva kept right beside him, groaning in his ear<br />
and trying to get a hand into his pants. &#8220;Gimme Jimi&#8230;gimme Jimi&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        Zero nodded politely to an elderly female professor who was walking<br />
by, her flabbergasted eyes on Diva&#8217;s busy hands. &#8220;Sorry about this,&#8221; he said<br />
pleasantly, &#8220;She&#8217;s had a bit too much to drink.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;So I see,&#8221; said the professor, hurrying by with a sniff.<br />
        &#8220;You bastard you bastard you BAAAAAAAA!&#8221; Diva shrieked and laughed<br />
like a madwoman, both feet leaving the ground for a moment as Zero nudged the<br />
button again. &#8220;I&#8217;m gonna getcha! I&#8217;m gonna&#8211;GETCHA!&#8221; She suddenly pushed Zero<br />
as hard as she could. Taken by surprise, he stumbled sideways into an open<br />
doorway that led into a small ticket office for the Student Theatre. It was<br />
empty, the cash register unlocked and open; the teller was obviously out for a<br />
moment to deposit the night&#8217;s gate in the safe upstairs. Diva slammed Zero up<br />
against the cash register and fell to her knees, frantically tearing at his<br />
belt buckle. In desperation, Zero kicked the door shut behind her and held it<br />
with one outstretched foot. His flailing hand reached over and pulled down the<br />
curtain on the teller window. The last thing he saw was the face of a young<br />
blonde freshman, her eyes bugging out and her mouth agape as she caught a<br />
brief glimpse of Jimi as the curtain went down, and Diva went down right along<br />
with it.<br />
        She wasn&#8217;t in the mood to mess around. One deep breath, a whispered<br />
screech of &#8220;Gimme!&#8221; and down she went, all the way to the base of his thick,<br />
slick shaft, sucking for all she was worth and screaming around the hardness<br />
filling her mouth and throat. Zero closed his eyes as she bobbed up and down,<br />
up and down.<br />
        &#8220;C&#8217;mon, glbph, you bas, gmmmph, bastard, glmmph, give it, blf, give it<br />
to me, mmmmbl, give it to me, gmllMMMMMM!&#8221; Her body went rigid as Zero turned<br />
the vibrator on full power, and she did something neither he nor she was<br />
expecting: she bit down. Hard.<br />
        &#8220;YYYYEEEEEEOOOOOOWWWWWWWTTCHH!&#8221; Off went the vibrator, and down into<br />
his chair went Zero, the last vestiges of his selfpreservation instinct<br />
keeping the door firmly shut against the rattling doorknob and clicking key in<br />
the lock.<br />
        &#8220;Is somebody in there? Hello?&#8221;<br />
        Diva&#8217;s mouth came off his dick and her eyes were wide and full of<br />
fear. &#8220;Oh, Liebchen, did I hurt you? I&#8217;m so sorrEEEEEEEEEEEEEE!&#8221; He flicked on<br />
the vibrator again and she convulsed against him. Zero quickly examined the<br />
damage to Jimi; he was bruised a bit and kind of red at the base, but there<br />
was no blood, and he was thicker and harder than ever. He let out a windy sigh<br />
of relief.<br />
        &#8220;Peel,&#8221; he whispered.<br />
        Diva looked up at him and smiled wickedly. One hard tug, and her<br />
tights were around her knees, exposing her wide, full hips unadorned except<br />
for the red nylon straps that held the buzzing vibrator over her clitoris.<br />
She turned around and presented her wide, smooth rump to him as he stood up.<br />
The door seemed almost about to open with his foot removed from it, but it<br />
slammed shut again as Diva fell against it with her full weight.<br />
        &#8220;Who&#8217;s IN there? Open the damn door!&#8221;<br />
        Zero spread her ass cheeks and exposed the luscious, drippy folds of<br />
her vulva with one hand, slowly increasing power to the vibrator with the<br />
other. He planted the tip of his dong against her pussy lips, and she mewled<br />
and thrust back against him, sucking him halfway in with a wet slurp. He<br />
slammed his hips forward against her, driving himself into her to the hilt as<br />
he ran the vibrator all the way up the scale.<br />
        The remote dropped to the floor, forgotten, as he grabbed her waist<br />
and started slamming into her with everything he had. Diva was screaming,<br />
bucking, going insane from the dual stimulation, and her body slammed against<br />
the door to the ticket office again and again. Finally, he gushed into her<br />
with a groan, and she let out one last long wail as the vibrator, its job<br />
valiantly done, drained its batteries and quietly died.<br />
        For a long minute, they just stood there, him leaning back against the<br />
cold metal of the cash register, her bent jacknifed at the waist and sobbing<br />
for breath. He gently withdrew from her, quickly grabbing a spare piece of<br />
paper to wipe himself and her off before pulling up his pants. She smiled<br />
weakly at him, leaning against the pounding door as she rolled up her tights.<br />
He tucked the remote in his pocket, put his arm around her to hide the wire<br />
while she quickly straightened his hair and her own, and opened the door.<br />
        &#8220;Eeeyesss?&#8221; Zero smiled pleasantly at the young lady who was standing<br />
at the door, in front of a small crowd of fascinated onlookers.<br />
        &#8220;What the hell were you DOING in there?&#8221; The crowd burst out laughing<br />
at the question, and the girl blushed crimson. Zero suddenly noticed the girl<br />
who&#8217;d seen him through the window, standing with two of her friends at the<br />
back of the crowd and making it-was-THIS-big-I-SWEAR motions with her hands as<br />
her friends gaped at her. She looked up, saw him, and blushed even redder than<br />
the ticket seller. He grinned and held up his hands, shaking his head as if to<br />
say, No-it&#8217;s-really-only-THIS-big-dear.<br />
        &#8220;Never you mind,&#8221; Diva laughed, licking Zero&#8217;s earlobe as she guided<br />
him toward the coat room. &#8220;We were just leaving, anyway.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Well, Jesus, would you look at that? Not even an apology, when I&#8217;m<br />
stuck out here trying to lock up and get my&#8211;&#8221; Behind them, they could hear<br />
the girl&#8217;s voice cut off short, and the crinkling noises of wet paper. &#8220;MY<br />
RECEIPTS! OH, GROSS!&#8221;<br />
        Zero&#8217;s eyes met Diva&#8217;s, and they both burst out laughing. All thoughts<br />
of further adventure forgotten, they ran hand in hand for the exit.</p>
<p>        &#8220;You waited? Oh, you didn&#8217;t have to do that!&#8221; Conan looked up from his<br />
magazine and smiled as Cricket came out of the Trauma Ward, a compress held up<br />
to her eye. He stood up and shrugged on his coat, and helped her ease into<br />
hers.<br />
        &#8220;That&#8217;s okay,&#8221; he said. &#8220;I had to talk to the police when they came<br />
by, and I didn&#8217;t want you walking home alone.&#8221; He opened the door for her into<br />
the night, and they hustled out into the cold wind, heading for the North<br />
Habitat.<br />
        &#8220;I appreciate your helping me,&#8221; Cricket said after a few moments of<br />
silence. &#8220;I really thought he was gonna kill me.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;What were you doing with a creep like that anyway, Cricket? You seem<br />
like too smart a person to go getting mixed up with someone who&#8217;d jump you<br />
like that&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Huh! So speaks the walking beefcake magazine!&#8221; Cricket&#8217;s voice held a<br />
trace of a sneer. &#8220;What the fuck do you know about getting trapped into doing<br />
shit you don&#8217;t want to do, big man? Huh?&#8221;<br />
        For a brief, horribly clear instant, Conan thought of Twink. &#8220;Too damn<br />
much,&#8221; he whispered. &#8220;Sorry. Shouldn&#8217;t have said it.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Damn right,&#8221; Cricket continued angrily. &#8220;I&#8217;ve seen you working out in<br />
the gym, all pumped up and nowhere to go. All the girls looking at you and<br />
talking about you&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;No shit, really?&#8221; Conan grinned widely. Now THAT was an interesting<br />
revelation!<br />
        &#8220;Yeah, really! And d&#8217;you know what they&#8217;re saying?&#8221; Cricket paused for<br />
emphasis. &#8220;They&#8217;re LAUGHING at you, you stupid motherfucker!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;What!&#8221; He looked down at her in shock. &#8220;WHY?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Because you&#8217;re so fucking narcissistic it&#8217;s enough to make them puke,<br />
that&#8217;s why! It&#8217;s so obvious, watching you pose in the mirror. The love affair<br />
between Conan and Conan will go down in history!&#8221; She shook her head and fell<br />
silent. Conan looked supremely uncomfortable in the silence that followed.<br />
        &#8220;I wish they could&#8217;ve seen you tonight, though,&#8221; Cricket whispered.<br />
        &#8220;Oh, shit, that wasn&#8217;t anything,&#8221; Conan said with a shrug. &#8220;He<br />
couldn&#8217;t have hurt me if he&#8217;d tried.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Yes he could&#8217;ve,&#8221; Cricket said tartly. &#8220;It doesn&#8217;t take a big man to<br />
carry a gun of a knife, Conan. You could&#8217;ve been killed! You didn&#8217;t know what<br />
you were charging into&#8211; you just did what you thought was right, without<br />
hesitation. He would&#8217;ve broken my nose if you&#8217;d hesitated before coming in<br />
after him. Or worse.&#8221; She smiled up at him. &#8220;You know what your problem is?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Yeah,&#8221; Conan muttered. &#8220;I&#8217;m a narcissistic scumbag.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;No, besides that,&#8221; Cricket chided with a smile.<br />
        Conan stopped and looked at her for a moment, unsmiling. &#8220;No, I don&#8217;t<br />
know what my problem is,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Why don&#8217;t you tell me?&#8221;<br />
        Cricket reached up and gently touched Conan on the tip of the nose.<br />
&#8220;Your problem,&#8221; she said softly, &#8220;Is that you don&#8217;t really know where your<br />
strengths and weaknesses are. You&#8217;re not impressing anyone when you squat a<br />
quarter ton or whatever, but you can bet that you&#8217;ll get a lot more respect<br />
from the women in the aerobics class when they hear how you saved my ass<br />
tonight! You&#8217;re no mean, macho hunk. You&#8217;re just a decent human being.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, really,&#8221; he said with a wry look.<br />
        &#8220;Yeah, really,&#8221; she replied, starting to walk again. The doors to the<br />
North Habitat loomed out of the darkness before them, and Cricket fumbled in<br />
her pocket for her security card with one hand while trying to hold her<br />
compress in place with the other. &#8220;Oh, damn it!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Here, lemme help you,&#8221; Conan said quickly, gently placing a hand over<br />
hers on the compress. She looked up at him with her good eye for a long moment<br />
before drawing her hand out from under his and fumbling for her card. She got<br />
it out, and got the door open by feel as he held the compress steady.<br />
        &#8220;Thanks.&#8221; She pocketed her card and put her warm little hand over his,<br />
taking the compress from him. She smiled up at him in the doorway. &#8220;For<br />
everything.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;No problem,&#8221; Conan grinned. He shivered in the wind, and said, &#8220;Well,<br />
I guess I better be getting back. It was nice meeting you, Cricket.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Wanna come in and warm up for a while?&#8221;<br />
        He looked at her long and hard, then shook his head. &#8220;I better not.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, stop looking like a kicked dog and get in here, you moron!&#8221;<br />
Cricket grabbed him with her free hand and dragged him inside. The door shut<br />
with a clang behind him, and the night was still once more.</p>
<p>        The Bandit awoke with a start, half sitting up in the darkness. His<br />
eyes were utterly unaccustomed to the gloom, but he could feel rather than see<br />
the warm presence in his bed. There was a quiet whisper in the dark.<br />
        &#8220;Oh, I&#8217;m sorry, love, I didn&#8217;t mean to wake you&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;That&#8217;s okay, that&#8217;s okay.&#8221; The Bandit settled back down onto the bed<br />
and ran his hands down the amazing curve of Twink&#8217;s broad back. She hummed in<br />
delight and burrowed closer to him, warm in the cold night.<br />
        &#8220;This is really wonderful,&#8221; she breathed. &#8220;It&#8217;s so cozy.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Yeah,&#8221; the Bandit said. &#8220;Cozy.&#8221; He suddenly realized what had<br />
awakened him: her hand on his penis, warm and soft, gently stroking him closer<br />
and closer to orgasm. He was almost ready to pop. &#8220;Y&#8217;know, if you keep playing<br />
with me like you are, I&#8217;m gonna come all over you,&#8221; he whispered.<br />
        &#8220;Oh, really?&#8221; Her giggle was low and almost liquid in the night. &#8220;Is<br />
that so bad? I like to make you feel good&#8230;.&#8221; Her inexpert hand stroked him<br />
more roughly and insistently now, and she crawled up until her lips were level<br />
with his, kissing him as she squeezed his penis and pumped it in her fist.<br />
        &#8220;You like?&#8221; Her mock Spanish accent was somehow fairly effective, he<br />
noted in a haze of mixed sleepiness and horniness.<br />
        &#8220;Si, I like,&#8221; he replied, and she giggled again. &#8220;But there are other<br />
things I like, too, and if you&#8217;re not going to let me sleep we may as well<br />
enjoy them&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh! Well, what did you have in mind?&#8221;<br />
        He grinned in the darkness. &#8220;Ever been eaten out before?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Uh, I don&#8217;t think so,&#8221; she said uncertainly. &#8220;What is it, exactly?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;What, being eaten out?&#8221; The Bandit paused, at a loss. &#8220;It&#8217;s when I,<br />
well, uh&#8230;.Tell you what. Let go of me and I&#8217;ll demonstrate, okay?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Okay.&#8221; Her fist released his penis, and he immediately rolled her<br />
over onto her back and began kissing his way down her body, pausing for a few<br />
luxuriant sucks at her huge nipples before making his way down lower. &#8220;Ohhhh,&#8221;<br />
she moaned as he squeezed her breasts, &#8220;That feels so GOOD!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;If you like that,&#8221; the Bandit said, &#8220;You&#8217;ll love what comes next!&#8221;<br />
His tongue flicked out and began to touch and probe beneath her pubic hair,<br />
and she gasped in surprise.<br />
        &#8220;Ooh! Careful, that tickles! Bandit, you can&#8217;t really want to lick<br />
down THERE, I mean isn&#8217;t it sort of&#8211;&#8221; Her breath caught in her throat. She<br />
took a deep breath and tried again. &#8220;It&#8217;s not too&#8211;&#8221; Her voice died again.<br />
When she finally spoke, it was in a different tone altogether.<br />
        &#8220;Oh, please don&#8217;t stop&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Mmmmmmm,&#8221; the Bandit replied, his tongue teasing her rapidly-swelling<br />
clitoris gently. There was no question but that she was primed and ready for<br />
his attentions; her pussy lips, neat and symmetric, were oozing moisture, and<br />
her clit was stiff and turgid. He licked and sucked on it, and drove his<br />
tongue between her outer lips to caress the entrance to her cunt. Back and<br />
forth, back and forth between them, listening all the while to her nonstop<br />
commentary.<br />
        &#8220;Oh! Oh! That feels heavenly! Don&#8217;t stop, PLEASE don&#8217;t stop! It feels<br />
like I&#8217;m burning up, I&#8217;m hot and cold, I&#8217;m shaking all over, Oh gentle Jesus,<br />
OH! OH! What is that you&#8217;re licking? More! More, oh, yes, oh, God, I&#8211;Bandit!<br />
BANDIT! I FEEL FUNNY! I FEEL, I FEEL LIKE I&#8217;M GONNA&#8211;EEEEEEEEEEEEEK!&#8221;<br />
        Her body arched off the bed from heels to head and he rode her like a<br />
cowboy rides a bucking bronco, his tongue never leaving her sopping vulva. She<br />
moaned, shrieked, and gasped, her clutching hands buried in his mop of long<br />
dark hair, holding him in place as she spent and spent.<br />
        Finally, he let go of her, and she collapsed sobbing onto the bed, her<br />
body soaked in a thick film of sweat. &#8220;Oh, God, oh, God, I love you, oh,<br />
Bandit, that was so, so BEAUTIFUL!&#8221; He crawled back up to join her and hugged<br />
her hard, and she buried her face in his hair and cried.<br />
        &#8220;Sweetheart, don&#8217;t cry, it&#8217;s okay. Shhhh, don&#8217;t cry,&#8221; the Bandit<br />
soothed her, stroking her long hair. &#8220;Please don&#8217;t cry&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Can&#8217;t, hic, I cuh-cuh-can&#8217;t HELP it,&#8221; Twink sobbed gustily. &#8220;It was<br />
so, suh-suh-so BEAUTIFUL, I cuh-c-c-can&#8217;t help crying, uh, oh, I LOVE you!&#8221;<br />
She cried even harder, and the Bandit didn&#8217;t know what else to do but to hold<br />
her close and rock her gently until her sobs gradually died away and she<br />
relaxed against him, kissing his neck. &#8220;Oh thank you, thank you&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Uh, you&#8217;re welcome,&#8221; the Bandit said uncomfortably. &#8220;Are you sure<br />
you&#8217;re all right? I mean, I&#8217;ve never had anyone start crying on me before.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, I&#8217;m feeling wonderful,&#8221; Twink sighed, grabbing a fistful of<br />
toilet paper from the roll the Bandit kept by the bed and blowing her nose<br />
with a honk. &#8220;I couldn&#8217;t help it, it felt so good I just had to cry. Was, was<br />
that an orgasm?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Uh, I think so,&#8221; the Bandit said soothingly, smiling despite himself.<br />
&#8220;If it wasn&#8217;t, when you finally have one it&#8217;ll probably kill you!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Mmmmm, but what a way to die!&#8221; Twink laughed and ran her hand back<br />
down his chest to his penis, which was just as stiff as ever. &#8220;My turn to make<br />
you feel good, now,&#8221; she breathed, sliding down his body and kissing his chest<br />
as he&#8217;d kissed hers.<br />
        The Bandit suddenly recalled what she&#8217;d said about Conan. &#8220;Uh, Twink,<br />
are you sure you want to do that? There are other ways&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Mmmmm, shut up, Bandit,&#8221; came her voice from somewhere under the<br />
covers. &#8220;I love you, and I want to make you feel as good as I do&#8230;.&#8221; The<br />
Bandit&#8217;s whole body tensed as a long, wet tongue licked its way down the<br />
underside of his penis and gently kissed his balls, then travelled back up to<br />
the head. &#8220;You like?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Uh, uh-huh,&#8221; he managed.<br />
        &#8220;Oh, good,&#8221; she replied, &#8220;Because I don&#8217;t feel like stopping! It<br />
tastes so gooommmmbbllmmmmph&#8230;&#8230;&#8221; The Bandit began thrusting his hips up off<br />
the bed as her moist, warm mouth enveloped him and gently sucked him in. She<br />
teased him with tiny nips and rolled her tongue obscenely over the head of his<br />
penis as if trying to lick a lollipop to death in under three minutes. As<br />
excited as he was, it was no time at all before the Bandit was feeling himself<br />
tense up under an impending orgasm.<br />
        Twink, feeling him tense, stopped her labors for a moment. &#8220;Are you<br />
all right? Am I hurting you?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, God, DON&#8217;T STOP NOW, I&#8217;M COMING!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oops! Sorry! Glmmmmm&#8230;.MMMM! MMMM! MMMMMM! Mmmmmmmmmmm&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;UH! UNGH! UH! UH! OH! UH! Uhhhhhhhhhhh&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        Twink swallowed and swallowed again, downing every drop of hot, thick<br />
semen he gave her. She got up on her hands and knees and looked up at him,<br />
licking the last bits of sticky come from her lips. &#8220;How was that?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, god,&#8221; the Bandit moaned. &#8220;I&#8217;m dying&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        Twink laughed lightly and snuggled up next to him, kissing him deeply.<br />
The mixture of sweat, pussy juice and semen in the kiss was indescribable. The<br />
Bandit broke the kiss, and muttered, &#8220;So much for a night without doing<br />
anything&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;I don&#8217;t mind a bit,&#8221; Twink said, yawning. &#8220;I&#8217;m so sleepy all of a<br />
sudden&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;S&#8217;okay, me too,&#8221; the Bandit mumbled. &#8220;Sleep well.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Mm-hmmm&#8230;.&#8221;</p>
<p>        &#8220;Shhh,&#8221; Zero whispered as he opened the door to his room slightly. &#8220;I<br />
just need to get fresh clothes, and I don&#8217;t want to wake anyone up.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Okay,&#8221; Diva said softly, tiptoeing into the living room with him. The<br />
door to Conan and the Wiz&#8217;s room was ajar, and Conan was stretched out on his<br />
bed under the covers, snoring like a steam engine.<br />
        &#8220;Him, we won&#8217;t waken,&#8221; Zero laughed, shutting the door. &#8220;But the<br />
Bandit&#8217;s a light sleeper, so&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        He eased the door to the bedroom he shared with the Bandit, and both<br />
he and Diva simultaneously smelled the familiar odor of sex. Zero peeked<br />
inside. The first thing he saw was the rumpled blue nightgown on the floor.<br />
Diva gasped; the first thing she saw was Twink&#8217;s gorgeous back, half uncovered<br />
by the blankets.<br />
        Zero looked at Diva. Diva looked at Zero. Their astonishment was<br />
comical. Quickly Zero reached into his closet and grabbed fresh clothes, and<br />
they backed out of the room and shut the door.<br />
        &#8220;That was TWINK in there with him, wasn&#8217;t it?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Hard to say, I&#8217;ve never seen Twink naked before.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Oh, come on, I&#8217;m serious! The BANDIT, and TWINK?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Hey, she&#8217;s been gunning for him for months, and I have to admit that<br />
what I saw didn&#8217;t look too bad&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;That&#8217;s enough of that, mister,&#8221; Diva said sharply. &#8220;You&#8217;re spoken<br />
for already.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;No problem,&#8221; Zero said amiably. &#8220;Just commenting, that&#8217;s all.&#8221;<br />
        The outer door closed, cutting off their voices. The Bandit smiled,<br />
his eyes still shut, and drifted back to sleep.</p>
<p>        The breakfast table was abuzz with conversation when the Bandit came<br />
out of the hot food line with his tray in his hand. He&#8217;d sent Twink off to<br />
shower and dress with a kiss, and had promised to meet her at the breakfast<br />
table, but she wasn&#8217;t there yet. Zero, Diva, Conan, Bone, Thud, Plaids, and<br />
a young blonde girl he&#8217;d never seen before were sitting at the table. When<br />
they saw the Bandit, there was an uncomfortable pause, conversation dying down<br />
as the Bandit set his tray down.<br />
        &#8220;What&#8217;s everyone looking at me for,&#8221; he asked pleasantly.<br />
        Conan looked at him with a big grin, and waggled a finger at him. &#8220;Na,<br />
na ne NA na! Na, na ne NA na!&#8221; Pretty soon the whole table was doing it, and<br />
the Bandit just sat down, shaking his head and grinning.<br />
        &#8220;So how was she?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Getting a bit desperate, are we?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Any port in a storm, I guess&#8230;.&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Yes, but is she &#8216;port&#8217;?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;All right, ALL RIGHT!&#8221; The Bandit waved them all to silence. &#8220;I have<br />
only this to say. It was not an act of desperation. Okay?&#8221;<br />
        The laughter redoubled at that. &#8220;Prove it,&#8221; Thud said mildly.<br />
        &#8220;Okay, I will,&#8221; the Bandit said with a smile. Keep your promise,<br />
Twink, he thought to himself. Don&#8217;t wimp out on me, please? It&#8217;s a stupid<br />
thing to have to do, but it&#8217;ll make my life so much easier&#8230;.<br />
        &#8220;How?&#8221; Bone challenged.<br />
        &#8220;Well, it&#8217;s easy enough, when&#8211;Ah, hello, sweetheart!&#8221; The Bandit<br />
stood up and pulled up a chair beside him for Twink as she entered the room.<br />
Conversation died.<br />
        Thud&#8217;s eyebrows went north for the winter. Conan&#8217;s jaw hit his tray,<br />
and Cricket elbowed him in the ribs. Bone&#8217;s eyes nearly popped out of his<br />
head, and Plaids nervously took off his glasses and began to polish them<br />
furiously. Twink had told the Bandit that she&#8217;d owned one set of clothes that<br />
he&#8217;d probably consider &#8220;sexy,&#8221; and had agreed to his request that she wear<br />
them to breakfast. And sexy she was, in a clinging silk jumpsuit that was<br />
unzipped halfway to her waist. She&#8217;d foregone the bra for the meal, too.<br />
        &#8220;Good morning, love,&#8221; she said huskily, slipping into the Bandit&#8217;s<br />
arms and doing her best Diva-kissing-Zero imitation. She then sat down beside<br />
him, and said with a bright smile, &#8220;Happy Valentine&#8217;s Day, everyone!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Uh, Twink, that&#8217;s, uh, that&#8217;s quite an outfit you&#8217;ve got there,&#8221;<br />
Conan ventured. Cricket looked over at him, one eyebrow raised.<br />
        The Bandit had coached Twink on that eventuality, though; she didn&#8217;t<br />
even look up. &#8220;Eat your heart out, thumbdick,&#8221; she said, opening her napkin.<br />
        Cricket almost spat up her milk laughing. &#8220;You, I like,&#8221; she said with<br />
a grin. &#8220;I&#8217;m Cricket. You must be Twink!&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;The one and only,&#8221; Twink replied. &#8220;What happened to your eye?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;Well, I&#8211;&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;HEY! HEY, EVERYONE! LISTEN!&#8221;<br />
        All heads turned about as Lanky came running in, obviously in a panic.<br />
The Bandit stood up and made shushing motions with both hands. &#8220;Take it easy,<br />
Lank. What&#8217;s the matter?&#8221;<br />
        &#8220;It&#8217;s Livewire.&#8221; Lanky&#8217;s face was ashen. &#8220;The police came and took him<br />
away last night. It looked like they&#8217;d beaten him half to death.&#8221;</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/get-a-hand-into-his-pants/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Threesome Hot Wife Tale</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/threesome-hot-wife-tale/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/threesome-hot-wife-tale/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Sun, 24 Feb 2008 07:37:17 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[letter sex swinger]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex text message]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/threesome-hot-wife-tale/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[You may remember Easy, that I had met your lady (whose name is also
Renee) when she was wearing those great little dolphin shorts and
riding her bicycle, and I was out running.  We had had a wonderful
time that morning, as you may well remember.  Well, I was pleased
when Renee called, and asked if I [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>You may remember Easy, that I had met your lady (whose name is also<br />
Renee) when she was wearing those great little dolphin shorts and<br />
riding her bicycle, and I was out running.  We had had a wonderful<br />
time that morning, as you may well remember.  Well, I was pleased<br />
when Renee called, and asked if I would come over and help her with a<br />
surprise.  I agreed, and went over to her place.  Renee was looking<br />
just great, in a knit tank top, shorts, and sandals.  I asked her<br />
what the surprise was, and she said &#8220;Well, Easy has been asking me to<br />
shave my pussy, and I finally decided I would to surprise him.  I<br />
liked yours from the last time we were together, so I thought you<br />
might help me.&#8221;  I said &#8220;I will be glad to&#8221; also remembering the last<br />
time we were together.  Renee then said &#8220;What do we do first?&#8221;  I<br />
said &#8220;Get an old sheet, the cream you use when you shave your legs,<br />
and a fresh razor.&#8221;  She did, and then we went into her bedroom.  We<br />
spread the old sheet over her bed, and I told her to get undressed. <span id="more-44"></span><br />
Taking off her top and shorts she stood in front of me naked, her<br />
pretty breasts standing out.  She said &#8220;Renee, I&#8217;d feel more<br />
comfortable, if you were undressed too,&#8221;  so I took off my clothes<br />
too.  She came over, gave me a little kiss, and rubbed my pussy with<br />
her hand saying &#8220;Oh, I can&#8217;t wait to look like that.&#8221;  I told her we<br />
would need some scissors, so she got them, and then I told her to lay<br />
on the bed.  She got on the bed, leaned back and spread her legs,<br />
she was so beautiful laying there, it was all I could do, not to<br />
start kissing her, and making love.  I got a comb from her dresser,<br />
and began combing her pubic hair, as I cut it with the scissors.<br />
Renee laughed and said it tickled.  I carefully cut all the hair so<br />
that it was about a quarter of an inch long.  I told her that it<br />
would make it easier to shave if it was already short.  I got a warm<br />
face cloth, and placed it on Renee&#8217;s mound, to soften up the<br />
remaining hair.  She smiled, and &#8220;Said, ohhhhh! Renee, that feels<br />
quite good.&#8221; I removed the cloth, and put the shaving cream all over<br />
her pussy.  Starting at the top, and the sides between her legs, I<br />
worked toward her slit.  When I got to the hair on her pussy lips, I<br />
pulled the skin from the side to stretch it, and very gently shaved<br />
the last of the hair off.  I took the wet cloth, which was cool by<br />
now, and removed the last of the shaving cream.  I got some lotion<br />
from Renee&#8217;s dressing table, and gently rubbed it over her pussy.  I<br />
was starting to feel even more horny, so I let my fingers stray into<br />
her slit, and I started massaging her clitoris.  As Renee started to<br />
utter little pleasure noises, she lifted herself up on her elbows to<br />
look at her now cleanly shaven pussy.  &#8220;Oh Renee&#8221;, she said, &#8220;it<br />
looks so beautiful, I just know Easy is going to love it.  In fact,<br />
that is the surprise.&#8221;  As she finished saying that, her closet door<br />
opened the rest of the way, and out stepped Easy, wearing nothing but<br />
a big smile. He had his hand on his hard cock, and it looked as if he<br />
had been masturbating a bit.   &#8220;Hi Renee&#8221;, he said &#8221; I hope this<br />
isn&#8217;t a shock, but my Renee and I enjoyed the last time you were here<br />
so much, we though we&#8217;d try it again.&#8221;  Renee said &#8220;Look Easy, isn&#8217;t<br />
it beautiful, I&#8217;m so glad you wanted me to do this.&#8221;  I stood back as<br />
Easy walked over to the bed, and leaned down to give Renee&#8217;s pussy a<br />
close look.  &#8220;Yes it is nice&#8221;, he said, and then he gently kissed it.<br />
Renee still a little warmed up from my rubbing her, started to squirm<br />
as Easy ran his tongue up and down her slit.  I got on the bed with<br />
her, and started to massage her breasts, as Easy sucked and licked<br />
even harder.  Renee said &#8220;Ohh Renee, I want to taste you.&#8221;  So I laid<br />
down next to her, Easy stopped licking her pussy and she got up and<br />
knelt over me.  As her tongue slowly ran up and down the length of my<br />
slit, and slowly opened me, waves of pleasure started to build.  As<br />
she spread me, her tongue found my clitoris and a shock went through<br />
my body.  Easy took advantage of the fact that Renee had her bottom<br />
sticking up in the air, so he slid his hard cock into her wet pussy.<br />
His movements in and out of her forced her head to push into my<br />
pussy, turning me on even more.  I orgasmed for minutes, the waves of<br />
pleasure swept up my body.  With Easy still moving inside Renee, I<br />
got up, moved behind them, and reached under to massage Renee&#8217;s clit,<br />
as I did, my hand also brushed against Easy balls.  He moaned with<br />
pleasure as I did that, so I continued to do both.  I had not touched<br />
a man for several years, but I was caught up in the pleasure of the<br />
situation.  Renee started screaming that she was coming, so I<br />
massaged her clit even more vigorously, and as she was at the height<br />
of her orgasm, I felt Easy tense up as he started to have his orgasm<br />
and I felt his balls tighten as he shot his load deep into Renee.  We<br />
all relaxed in the afterglow, with both Easy and I kissing Renee,<br />
sometimes on the lips and sometimes on that now beautifully shaved<br />
pussy of hers.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/threesome-hot-wife-tale/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>The Three Of Us</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/the-three-of-us/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/the-three-of-us/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Fri, 14 Dec 2007 18:03:03 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[interracial sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex story text only]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sinful tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[text sex story]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/the-three-of-us/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[I await for Sam to get here. An old friend dating back for some
35 years. I do not know what happened to him, flying high on the
Texas oil boom for so many years and now without a penny to his
name, I do not really feel sorry for him but I can not leave him
in the [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>I await for Sam to get here. An old friend dating back for some<br />
35 years. I do not know what happened to him, flying high on the<br />
Texas oil boom for so many years and now without a penny to his<br />
name, I do not really feel sorry for him but I can not leave him<br />
in the cold since he really wants to come back to the area to<br />
live. Hope I can help him get back on his feet!</p>
<p>Its around 9PM when he arrives, his gleeful smile and happy-go-lucky<br />
attitude mask the depression he must be feeling. &#8220;Hi Dan how&#8217;s every<br />
little thing?&#8221; he asks then turning to her he say &#8220;Hi Karen&#8221;. My wife<br />
does not want him staying with us as she feels that the drain on<br />
our finances will be to great. She manages to utter &#8220;Hello Sam, glad<br />
your finally here we were worried about you on the long trip!&#8221; What<br />
tripe but it sounded warm and friendly, what more can I ask for. &#8220;Let<br />
me show you to your room so we can put you bags there and you can get<br />
use to a hard floor under your feet again.&#8221; I said feeling happy that<br />
all the ill had been melted and things were off on the right track!<span id="more-37"></span></p>
<p>We quickly went out to his Jeep Wagoneer and unstrapped some of his<br />
belongings from the roof of the car. This was sad as almost all of<br />
him was carried in a car. We took a few of the suitcases and bags to<br />
our fourth bedroom so Sam could unpack the items he needed most for<br />
the next few days. As we walked up the stairs I looked back at him<br />
and could see the tiredness in and around his eyes. He said &#8220;I&#8217;ll get<br />
the rest tomorrow, I need a glass of pop and some rest! This 1200<br />
mile trip with only a night sleep has me pooped!&#8221; &#8221; I understand and<br />
we can do whatever when you wake up.&#8221; were the only words I could<br />
muster up.</p>
<p>We walked into the family room and Karen sat there watching TV. She<br />
was about to turn off the tube from what we had been watching when<br />
I said &#8221; Leave it on, Sam&#8217;s tired and going to bed so we might as well<br />
watch the rest.&#8221; She smiled and asked if things were to his liking<br />
and comfort? As he poured his pop over the ice he smiled at her as<br />
he assured her that everything was great. He sat with me on the couch<br />
as he drank with his body slouching as he deeply relaxed. Finishing<br />
his first and second glasses of pop he said &#8220;Good night all &#8211; I&#8217;ll<br />
catch you in the morning&#8221; and started the walk to his room.</p>
<p>&#8220;Karen, thanks for being friendly. You did not even ask what had<br />
happened to him?&#8221; I spoke quietly. &#8221; He would do the same if the<br />
roles were reversed. When he can speak freely about it, he will let<br />
us know.&#8221; her firm voice continued &#8221; I only hope he can sleep and<br />
rest up from coming back.&#8221; That was reassuring to me to hear the<br />
concern in her voice instead of worrying about our household. With<br />
that we watched the rest of the program and the 11 O&#8217;clock news and<br />
trotted off to bed.</p>
<p>I awoke the next morning feeling like a million dollars, the sun behind<br />
the curtains let me know it was daybreak. On Saturday mornings I always<br />
slept in but with Sam around I did not want to miss a wakening moment<br />
that I might spend with him to help him out. I looked over and Karen<br />
had all ready arisen, the thoughts of pancakes and sausage filled my<br />
mind as I new breakfast could not be but minutes away from my<br />
belly, but the smell was missing where was that smell?</p>
<p>I walked down the hallway toward the stairs, my ears picked up the<br />
soft moaning sounds that were emerging from the spare bedroom. Quietly<br />
I approached the door and found it cracked open. All I could see was<br />
Sam&#8217;s hairy ass as it raised and lowered in Karen. Her legs were wrapped<br />
around Sam&#8217;s ass and the two of them were going strong. Both of them were<br />
moaning like animals in heat. I wanted to burst in to stop this fucking<br />
but something just held me back as I watched some more. Sam&#8217;s pounding<br />
ass was moving faster as he slammed away at her box. His breathing was<br />
becoming more labored as was hers. You could tell that her legs were in<br />
a vise grip on him so he had to lift her weight as well as his on each<br />
mighty stroke. She would clench her legs to move her cunt up his rod<br />
as he lifted her off the bed and she slid down his cock on the downward<br />
thrust as he would bury his rod deep in her twat. My cock started to<br />
rise just as if I were watching an &#8220;X&#8221; movie or reading a BBS adult text<br />
file. They were moving at a quickened pace then Sam hung in mid air and<br />
Karen raised herself on his rod until his grunting was all over. She<br />
just hung their as his cum must have been filling her hot box. Then Karen<br />
continued to ride on his cock, moving at great pace so she could cum too!<br />
She hurried, then slowed her pace, as I heard that little scream that<br />
indicated that she had just released her own spasm and I could feel<br />
her contractions pulse around my now rigid cock as I watched. Sam then<br />
collapsed onto her body, holding her tight to kiss her lovely lips, then<br />
rolled his body off to the bed. Her eyes were closed so I could tell that<br />
she had enjoyed herself.</p>
<p>As he lay there Karen rose and kissed him hard on his mouth. I saw<br />
her then lick down his body till she found the shriving cock that<br />
had just brought her to extascy. Her mouth opened and she took it in,<br />
sucking his last drops of cum from his now limp rod. She must have also<br />
been cleaning her own juice off his outside skin. She was down there<br />
for some 5 or 10 minutes before the rod started to stiffen in her mouth<br />
you could see her head raise from his thighs. Soon her head was a full<br />
6 inches off his torso as she held his cock head between her sultry lips.<br />
Her mouth sucked harder as her head moved up and down his cock length<br />
with those cheeks caved in showing the great suction that was being<br />
applied. She looked as hungry as I had ever seen her as her head moved<br />
down that pole till her lips brushed his pubic hair, hanging their, not<br />
moving as she must provide a warm and wet sheath around his rod to make<br />
it as comfortable as could be.</p>
<p>I watched with mixed emotions, I so wanted to break it up but was<br />
afraid. I knew in my mind that to do so would end Sam&#8217;s stay and he had<br />
nowhere else to go. My best friend and wife, how could I allow this to<br />
be in front of me? My wife and my best friend, how to stop this without<br />
loosing one or both. I thought for a moment as my hardon raged, telling<br />
me I had to take care of my stimulation first, so I went back to the<br />
bedroom. </p>
<p>Laying down on the bed all my mind would allow me to think of was my own<br />
my own pulsing cock. The sight of the 2 of them had made me so horny that<br />
my thoughts were only of myself. Could it be that this watching was going<br />
to be my turn-on. The feeling of my hand grasping my rod tightly felt ever<br />
so good. The soft pumping in its up and down action tingled the spirits<br />
of my soul, this was great. My stroking on my pulsing cock became harder<br />
and faster, I could feel all of her as if she had been doing me instead<br />
of Sam. The precum that had moistened my cock felt good in my hand as<br />
their figures danced in my mind. Those balls of mine started to ache. My<br />
pumping became faster till the hot cum shot up in the air splattering<br />
all over myself and the bed, the warmness of her mouth being all that was<br />
in my head helped the lust of the moment. I still felt her mouth as my<br />
rod slackened in my palm and the room smelled of my self induced sex. I<br />
could only lay there, exhausted and drained. </p>
<p>My sex released, I quickly returned to reality. The thought of never<br />
making a decision that would not hurt, one way or the other, dwelled in<br />
my brain. Sam and Karen must never know I watched or how much I enjoyed<br />
it. I then drifted back to sleep, as I should have been all along, never<br />
to have seen the 2 of them together.</p>
<p>I was awakened by a soft hand on my shoulder. There she was, my loving<br />
wife, Karen looking down at me telling me it was time to rise and shine.<br />
The breakfast was ready and they were awaiting only me. I rose and taking<br />
her arm pulled her over to kiss her, my mouth met her lips and my tongue<br />
pierced her lips and teeth. Argh, only mouthwash was to be had, instead<br />
of tasting the sex that she had so boldly participated. Not wanting her<br />
to sense the test I let my kiss linger as her hands roamed my head.</p>
<p>&#8220;STOP&#8221; or we will never get any food this morning she said. With that<br />
Karen pivoted away and walked downstairs. Yea I thought she&#8217;s all ready<br />
had her fill this morning but all I had was my hand, no wonder she was<br />
fulfilled. I threw on my old clothes to walk after her to have a seat at<br />
the kitchen table.</p>
<p>Not suprizingly Sam was already seated and looked up at me as I entered.<br />
&#8220;Great morning isn&#8217;t it!&#8221; he spoke cheerfully. &#8220;Sure is, the suns out and<br />
the weathers excellent. What more could you wish for.&#8221; I spoke as I know<br />
I would feel the same way had Karen just done me as she had him. Without<br />
to many more word of greeting we all sat down to scrambled eggs and bacon.<br />
As the food enter my mouth my gaze kept going toward the 2 of them. They<br />
were concerned more about each other than me and I caught them exchanging<br />
glances back and forth, just smiling at each other. The food was good<br />
but the conversation was lousy.</p>
<p>After breakfast Sam and I returned to unloading his car. I had never<br />
realized how much the wagoneer could hold or how many steps it was<br />
carrying stuff upstairs. We made load after load upstairs, filling<br />
what use to be an uncluttered room. Now things were piled high all over<br />
the bed and floor. Sam brought up a single sack that he held like a<br />
baby. &#8220;Hope you didn&#8217;t strain yourself&#8221; I said. &#8220;No its for later this<br />
evening and I didn&#8217;t want it to break&#8221; he uttered.</p>
<p>Finishing the pack mule stuff I left Sam to put it away as I headed<br />
downstairs to watch some TV. You could hear Sam cussing as well as<br />
his heavy footsteps as he tried to clear his clutter. The TV was<br />
showing some great football and I was soon lost into the professional<br />
game. Time always slipped by for me during football games. Sam had<br />
joined me for the last half of the game and the male bonding we shared<br />
arose in my mind as I realized why we invited him here in the first<br />
place. All that was seen was soon forgotten as it no longer was a main<br />
stream emotion. </p>
<p>His hurt shown through his cheerful exterior. This proud man had lost<br />
all most everything he had and was now seeking my help to reestablish<br />
himself as a human being. As the game went on I was attentive to his<br />
needs, listening, cheering, and generally boosting his ego to main<br />
stream his emotions so he knew he wasn&#8217;t alone. </p>
<p>Our nostrils were filled with good smells as the game ended and the<br />
news came on. Pungent smells of Italian food filled the air as we knew<br />
that Karen was fixing something delicious for our meal. We were called<br />
for dinner and went to the table as if starved, which we were. There<br />
before us were an assortment of goodies salad piled with olives, a bowl<br />
of nectarines, and pizza piled high with black olives. As we sat we were<br />
told that this is a passion dinner so we better eat well and with that<br />
she  brought forth a bottle of red wine. She poured the wine and as a<br />
glass would empty she would refill it to the brim.</p>
<p>Later that evening things had gotten boring, most of all the chit-chat<br />
had subsided and lulls of silence filled the air. My concentration was<br />
on keeping empty my glass of wine till the bottles were empty. Karen<br />
jumped up and said she had a gift for us, a video we hadn&#8217;t seen before.<br />
She ran to get the tape as Sam said since the wine was gone he would<br />
break out what he brought with him. I watched as now both had disappeared.</p>
<p>Sam reappeared first with the bag he had gently carried. Opening the<br />
bag uncovered a gallon bottle of wine, the red type with fruit pith in<br />
it. Karen soon came back and stuck the tape in the VCR and switched the<br />
channels for the movie to come on. As I swallowed the sweet wine that<br />
tasted like pop the movie exploded into view. It wasted no time and got<br />
right to the point.</p>
<p>There before us was a gal sucking on a monster cock. The gal was licking<br />
the cock up and down its length. She would pause now and then to put<br />
the cock head between her lips to hold it there like to warm it from<br />
the cold. She then licked it some more before squawatting over this hard<br />
rod and making it disappear in her twat. She pumped up and down with her<br />
puss for a long time then rose so the load of semen shot up into the air<br />
all over the guy. Then she licked him clean all up and down his body.<br />
The picture faded and another came up of the same gal doing a black stud<br />
who had a more well endowed manhood. The black must of been 10 inches<br />
long plus had an enormous thickness. She licked up and down this rod as<br />
her tongue looked much smaller in comparison than in the last scene.</p>
<p>Karen came over to sit between Sam and I on the couch. She leaned toward<br />
me and whispered &#8220;You shouldn&#8217;t be alone to watch this&#8221;. With that the<br />
movie panned the gal taking the black cock between her lips and going<br />
down over its length. I felt my zipper coming down with my hardness<br />
popping from my underware as they were opened. The video was showing<br />
her lips pursed around the blacks cock just as Karen&#8217;s lips encircled<br />
mine. My god what a feeling, the wetness, the warmth, the tongue as<br />
it played with my cock head. My head went back as I scooted forward to<br />
give her a better shot of my stiffness.</p>
<p>My head swilled as my lust grew higher. Karen&#8217;s head moved slowly as if<br />
she was meeting a stranger and wanted to make sure she didn&#8217;t overlook<br />
anything important. Her tongue flicked past the opening on my cock just<br />
pausing long enough to lick her tip across its slit. My eyes were well<br />
shut as in the darkness my feelings heightened. Her warmness was making<br />
my balls ache as she brought her head farther down my hardness. Her lips<br />
were in my pubic hair as I felt the rear of her throat as my cock went<br />
deeper toward her stomach. She rocked my cock left to right never taking<br />
it form deep in her oral cavern, she kept rocking it side to side with<br />
only an occasional breath passing by. My ears pulsed with the pressure<br />
as my blood had raised. With my pulse quickening my breathing became<br />
harder as she raised her head to bob up and down on my shaft length.<br />
Her lips were lightly touching my cock as her teeth came in contact<br />
with my under skin and she inhaled just as my wad exploded into her<br />
mouth. A huge breath was inhaled into her lungs as it race past my cock<br />
head and into her mouth. Karen twitched, bobbing recklessly about my<br />
cock sometimes slurping others lightly sucking. Having cum I opened my<br />
eyes to see that her gown had raised and Sam had been pumping at her<br />
cunt. She had cum with my cock in her mouth to perhaps explain the<br />
greatest blow job I had ever had.</p>
<p>She raised her cum filled mouth and frenched me letting my salt be a<br />
main course for the 2 of us as she swallowed. It takes more that one<br />
to make a gal super happy, you should know that Dan was something like<br />
she muttered. Sam&#8217;s cock was hanging limply from his torso, mine was in<br />
a flaccid state also. His sticky goo was running down her legs as she<br />
kept on all fours. The delight on Karen&#8217;s face was an indicator of her<br />
joy and pleasure, even if I wanted to, how could I deny her this.</p>
<p>Karen told me and Sam to undress and sit on the couch on each side of<br />
her. We both did as she requested. Once there she grabbed both of our<br />
manhoods to play with as we started to watch the movie again. A new<br />
woman was in this flick licking the balls off some guy. The woman then<br />
spit all over the guys cock and rubbed it up and down, I was ready to<br />
see this man explode all over the camera. She brought forth a jar of<br />
KY jelly and lubed the cock from top to bottom. Without hesitation she<br />
got up and lowered herself butt first down his stiffness, ever so slow<br />
was her lowering that you could not tell it unless you watched  his<br />
cock shorten into her rectum. when it was all the way in she started<br />
to raise and lower those sweet buns on his cock as he tried to raise<br />
himself deeper up her. As the woman felt him rise she would just lower<br />
her butt as the additional weight made his ass fall.</p>
<p>&#8220;Come on you 2 you&#8217;re both ready again&#8221; Karen said &#8220;I need you both on<br />
the floor and remember this is for my enjoyment also.&#8221; She led us into<br />
the middle of the room and had us lay down toe to toe with each other.<br />
We scooted at her command till finally our knees touched as Sam&#8217;s legs<br />
were over mine. Karen positioned her body so she could suck Sam as she<br />
would fuck me. Her pert ass was all that faced me. I looked up to the<br />
TV just in time to see the woman lift her body of his rod as goo flew<br />
into the air drenching the back of her ass and falling all over his<br />
manhood. My eyes drifted to Karen&#8217;s cute ass waving in the air as looking<br />
between her legs I saw Sam&#8217;s shaft fade into her mouth. As if on que she<br />
reached my cock and holding it sank that wonderful twat around and down<br />
over it. As i rose on an elbow I touched the hole in her butt as my TV<br />
screen displayed another lass giving a butt fuck lesson to a guy. She<br />
wasn&#8217;t prepared for that an wiggled her ass away from my finger so I<br />
just lay back to enjoy the fuck and video.</p>
<p>My senses were filled, the velvet of Karen&#8217;s twat was working its magic<br />
on my cock. Karen new how to make her muscles tighten and loosen around<br />
my shaft to cause the greatest sensation but I had nothing to cling to<br />
and that made me feel strange. Meanwhile I watched the movie of the lass<br />
in the butt fuck. The lass had gotten off the guys cock when it dawned<br />
on me she had not used any jelly so when she turned to suck on his rod<br />
it all dawned on me. His rod looked clean as the lass&#8217;s lips moved all<br />
over his rod, licking, sucking, with some biting. I was more into the<br />
movie than my thoughts were on Karen or her pussy. What a great butt the<br />
lass had and what a mouth but I would hold Karen&#8217;s mouth to hers any<br />
day. Karen was thrashing wildly on my cock, her muscles beating out ITS<br />
TIME TO COME. With that my body took a stronger stance as my ass lifted<br />
higher in the air so penetration could be deeper. As my body was in mid<br />
air I heard the scream but this time felt her convulsions around my<br />
cock. The twitching muscles sometimes tickled but these were robust and<br />
heavy, she had cum to the best climax I had felt.</p>
<p>Karen turned to me &#8220;What&#8217;s the matter with you? Sam came minutes ago,<br />
you should have too.&#8221; Taking inventory of myself I found the video on<br />
the TV must have held my mind captive with allot of motion being wasted<br />
on me. &#8220;Must be old age&#8221; I replied, not wanting to admit the video was<br />
more interesting than what was going on with me. We&#8217;ll fix that and she<br />
turned on my cock to face me. Damn she blocked my view of the TV but<br />
there in front of me was her beautiful face with its green eyes ablaze.<br />
We&#8217;ll milk that wad from you one way or the other as she started her<br />
gyrations on my rod. Karen&#8217;s boobs swayed back and forth till my mouth<br />
leapt up to suck on one. She bucked and heaved and POW my pecker let<br />
go of its spunk. What a relief as my body weakened as my rod subsided.</p>
<p>We were all worn out and Karen had stopped the video. An old western<br />
came to light up the screen. Well boys you were good to me and I was<br />
good to you, lets forget it and hit the bed. Karen was right as usual<br />
and to bed we all three went, glad it is a king size.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/the-three-of-us/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Gays in the lockerroom</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/gays-in-the-lockerroom/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/gays-in-the-lockerroom/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Fri, 23 Nov 2007 13:48:45 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[movie sex tale watch]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[text sex story]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/gays-in-the-lockerroom/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[Marty Carlson couldn&#8217;t believe his eyes.  He had only been
working as waterboy for The Longhorns, the football team of
Leland College, for two daysnow, after Coach Keeley allowed
him to work of his required physical education credit by
working maintenance for the team.  Two hours a day with all
those naked, sweaty jocks, peeling off dirty, grass-stained
uniforms [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>Marty Carlson couldn&#8217;t believe his eyes.  He had only been<br />
working as waterboy for The Longhorns, the football team of<br />
Leland College, for two daysnow, after Coach Keeley allowed<br />
him to work of his required physical education credit by<br />
working maintenance for the team.  Two hours a day with all<br />
those naked, sweaty jocks, peeling off dirty, grass-stained<br />
uniforms for Marty to take to the laundry hamper as they<br />
snapped wet towels at each other&#8217;s asses, asses hairy and<br />
smooth, thick and muscular or trim and tight bulging out of<br />
the back of their white jockstraps which, in the front, held<br />
firm, full baskets of prime meat which Marty had to restrain<br />
himself from reaching out and grabbing.  He had been trying<br />
not to be too obvious in his admiration of the player&#8217;s<br />
muscular torsos and especially the showers full of<br />
glistening soapy studs much like the one he was staring into<br />
right now (from the back of an adjoining stall several rows<br />
of lockers down, through the reflection from the overhead<br />
mirror that ran the length of the locker room).<span id="more-35"></span></p>
<p>        The locker room was empty, save for the two naked<br />
football players in that shower stall.  The coach, had gone<br />
home for the day leaving Marty to clean up after them.  The<br />
two studs in the shower obviously had more important things<br />
on their minds-and in their hands-than worrying about a<br />
wimpy waterboy.</p>
<p>        Brian Johnson was the team&#8217;s center, a blond, curly<br />
haired junior, with his big able hands, a tight, hairless<br />
ass and a milky white, freckled, well-muscled body with<br />
golden, wiry body hair on his chest and forearms.</p>
<p>        Steve Gage was the team&#8217;s all-important quarterback.<br />
He stood over 6 feet tall, and had a deep, all-over tan on<br />
his thickly muscled body.  Marty had something of a crush on<br />
Steve, struck as he was with Steve&#8217;s bold features, his<br />
strong jaw and black straight hair and moustache.  His eyes<br />
were piercing green and he had a dazzling smile.  Marty had<br />
only glimpses of what he blieved to be a magnificent cock,<br />
as big and tan as the rest of him.  It was hard for Marty<br />
not to stare around here, especially around Steve.  Trouble<br />
was, Marty was afraid that if he ever got a good view of<br />
such &#8216;choice areas&#8217; he would never be able to tear his eyes<br />
off of them.  Now was such the case, since Marty&#8217;s eyes were<br />
glued to Steve&#8217;s steadily lengthening uncut cock-meat which<br />
Brian held firmly in his left hand.  Brian stared fixedly as<br />
Steve&#8217;s wet, bobbing meat-pole as he pumped it slowly back<br />
and forth with his left hand.  His right hand worked in time<br />
on his own stiffening dick.  Steve&#8217;s jutting prick erected<br />
itself more and more with each stroke of Brian&#8217;s fist, it&#8217;s<br />
pink head bobbed in and out of the tightly clenched fist,<br />
slick and glistening with soap suds and drooling precum.</p>
<p>        Steve&#8217;s moans of pleasure echoed through the empty<br />
locker room.  &#8220;Mmmmmmmmmm, yeah, man, that feels fantastic!<br />
Lube it up some more, and pump it harder, man!&#8221;</p>
<p>        Brian squirted some more soap into his right hand and<br />
lubed up his cock with it, which like Steve&#8217;s was almost<br />
fully erect.  He moved both of their cocks together, one on<br />
top of the other, pumping them simultaneously while he<br />
squeezed them together.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Shit, dude, I&#8217;ve been waiting to get my hands on your<br />
tool for a long time!  Now I got my own dick on it, too!&#8221;<br />
said Brian as the muscular quarterback&#8217;s cock-head<br />
rhythmically nuzzled against Brian&#8217;s low-hanging, dripping<br />
balls, smearing them with precum which was washed away by<br />
the hot, steady pounding of the shower overhead.</p>
<p>        The blond center squashed the underside of his piss<br />
tube down hard on the vein filled, roughly textured cock-<br />
meat of the young quarterback&#8217;s pulsating flesh-pole.  He<br />
used his thumb to rub his sensitive dick-head deep in and<br />
out of Steve&#8217;s wiry, dark, soapy pubes.  The sensation<br />
filled his groin and his head with deeply flooding waves of<br />
pleasure which made the back of his knees throb and his toes<br />
tingle.  He sucked and bit down on his lower lip as his head<br />
reeled.  His prick became stiffer still.</p>
<p>        Meanwhile, Marty watched, wide-eyed.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Wow,&#8221; Marty said, under his breath, to himself, &#8220;these<br />
guys should drop football and take up swordfighting.&#8221;<br />
Marty&#8217;s hand started unconsciously squeezing and rubbing his<br />
growing crotch which strained the button -fly of his<br />
tightening jeans.  He wished he had a pair of binoculars.</p>
<p>        Brian pulled his stiff cock back and poked his pricktip<br />
against Steve&#8217;s pisshole.  Shielding it from the spray of<br />
the shower with his body, he pulled them slowly apart,<br />
making a strand of crystal-clear precum which hun from one<br />
piss-slit to the other.  Brian the snatched the slimy string<br />
of fuck-juice up with his middle finger and popped it into<br />
his mouth, savoring the rich saltiness with his wet tongue.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Mmmmmmmmmmmmm.  Yum!  Fuckin&#8217; juicy!&#8221; said Brian as he<br />
licked his own smiling lips.  He ran his free hand through<br />
the sick soapy hair that liberally covered Steve&#8217;s heaving,<br />
muscle-bound chest.</p>
<p>        &#8220;You know, it&#8217;d probably taste better if you got down<br />
there and sucked on that fucker,&#8221; said Steve as he pulled on<br />
Brian&#8217;s right nipple which stood out as pink and erect as a<br />
pencil eraser tip.</p>
<p>        &#8220;I thought you&#8217;d never ask,&#8221; Brian replied with a big<br />
stupid smile on his face.</p>
<p>        Steve pushed down on the center&#8217;s thick, broad<br />
shoulders, forcing him down on one knee then both knees,<br />
hanging onto Steve&#8217;s now fully erect cock all the while.<br />
Even from Marty&#8217;s obscure vantage point, he could see it was<br />
at least a good ten inches long from pubes to tip, and so<br />
thick that Brian could barely encircle it with one of his<br />
large, football-toting hands.  Brian wasted no time, though.<br />
Opening his mouth as far as possible, he pushed Steve&#8217;s<br />
bulbous cockhead, as big and round as a wet, rubber ball,<br />
past his sucking lips and gently scraping teeth.  His fleshy<br />
tongue squirmed along the underside of Steve&#8217;s veiny cock,<br />
the smoothness of the head, the warm, fleshy sheath of<br />
foreskin covering the flap of skin under that, down, down as<br />
it nestled the thick pisstube, until the oozing tip of<br />
Steve&#8217;s cock rubbed up against his tonsils.</p>
<p>        Steve held Brian&#8217;s head between his big hands as he<br />
impaled it on his jutting fuckpole, over and over.  Brian<br />
let out little moans of excitement and pleasure with each<br />
thrust of the big dick made, deeper and deeper, into his<br />
smacking, licking mouth.  Even from where Marty sat, he<br />
could hear the wet, slurping sounds from the shower stall<br />
the two studs occupied.  Marty&#8217;s cock was straining to get<br />
free as he unbuttoned the top two buttons of his buttonfly,<br />
the pink-reddish head of his cock peeked out as he pinched<br />
it between thumb and forefinger, his middle finger rubbing<br />
up and down the underside of his cock which was firmly<br />
packed against the straining material of his jeans through<br />
which he pulled at his straining ball-sack with his other<br />
hand.  He could hear Steve&#8217;s wet, fleshy nuts slapping<br />
loudly again and again, faster and faster, against Brian&#8217;s<br />
bobbing chin.  The smacking sound carried its echo<br />
throughout the empty locker room.  Marty undid another<br />
button and moved his jeans further down on his hips while<br />
his straining cock moved out into his pumping hand that<br />
worked it up and down.</p>
<p>        Steve pulled his lurching dickhead from the depths of<br />
Brian&#8217;s mouth and throat.  Brian drew the tip to his eager,<br />
straining lips, unwilling to give up his prize.  He rubbed<br />
the tip of Steve&#8217;s prick along the blond stubble of his<br />
upper lip causing Steve to cry out in ecstasy.  Brian<br />
nibbled the bunched up foreskin and inserted the pointed tip<br />
of his tongue into the inch-wide piss slit and probed the<br />
soft, salty meat inside.  Drawing back, he pursed his lips<br />
and used them to cover Steve&#8217;s pisshole and sucked as hard<br />
as he could.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Wooooaaaahh!&#8221; Steve cried, his eyes closed tight.<br />
&#8220;Calm down man, you keep that up and I&#8217;m gonna cum all over<br />
your fuckin&#8217; face, and I don&#8217;t want to just yet!&#8221;</p>
<p>        Steve pulled his lurching dickhead from Brian&#8217;s<br />
suctioning lips with a wet, popping sound, and Brian drew<br />
much needed air in sharply through lewdly pursed lips.  A<br />
thin strand of precum ran from his upper lip to Steve&#8217;s<br />
dickhold and he swept it into his mouth eagerly with a flick<br />
of his tongue.  Steve clenched Brian&#8217;s wet, blond curls<br />
between both fists and dres face to his dick&#8217;s underside.<br />
Brian nibbled the length of Steve&#8217;s cum-tube gently with his<br />
trembling front teeth.  He was lost in a frenzy of cock-<br />
lust.  </p>
<p>        &#8220;Go for the balls now, man, suck on those babies,&#8221;<br />
Steve moaned.</p>
<p>        Brian nuzzled his nose into Steve&#8217;s fleshy, fuzzy ball<br />
sack as his tongue darted from one egg-shaped nut to the<br />
other.  He smelled the rich, musky odor of ball-sweat<br />
mingled with cleansing smell of soap and running water.<br />
Finally the young blond center drew Steve&#8217;s left ball gently<br />
between his teeth and slurped it into his mouth.  Brian<br />
sucked greedily, savoring the salty runoff of soap, sweat,<br />
and precum.  His tongue darted inside his suctioning mouth,<br />
laving the hairy flesh pulled taut against the jizz-filled<br />
nugget it held, while his right hand pumped up and down on<br />
Steve&#8217;s hot, throbbing dick and his left worked on his own.<br />
Steve&#8217;s head was thrown back in abandon as the hot water of<br />
the shower pounded his face, held in a pleasure-filled<br />
grimace of ecstasy.  Brian&#8217;s hot mouth pulled and sucked on<br />
Steve&#8217;s nut like he wanted to pull it from his body.  His<br />
hand moved from Steve&#8217;s twitching hard-on and grabbed his<br />
ball-sack above his balls so they pushed forward and<br />
together like one big juicy piece of flesh-fruit.  Brian<br />
laved both firmly packed balls with the flat of his tongue<br />
over which he rubbed them faster and faster causing Steve&#8217;s<br />
stiff pole to bob up and down, back and forth over Brian&#8217;s<br />
stubbly cheek.  </p>
<p>        &#8220;Yeeeaaaaaahh.  LIck my fuckin&#8217; nuts, man, rub your<br />
face all over them.&#8221;</p>
<p>        Brian was more than pleased to oblige, sucking Steve&#8217;s<br />
nuts for all he was worth in wild abandon.  As he devoured<br />
the quarterback&#8217;s heavy, hairy sack, his roaming tongue<br />
swathed the soft mound between his balls and his tight,<br />
flexing asshole, sending a tingle of pleasure soaring to the<br />
top of Steve&#8217;s head and causing his cock to further strain<br />
against the point of bursting.  </p>
<p>        &#8220;Uhhhhh.  Ooohhhh, shit, buddy, get down on your back,<br />
I want you to rim me!&#8221;</p>
<p>        &#8220;oh, yeah, dude, sit on my fucking face!  I wanna lick<br />
that butt1&#8243;</p>
<p>        This time it was Steve&#8217;s turn to oblige.  Brian was on<br />
his back on the wet floor, legs spread widely his straining<br />
pinkish-white fuck muscled jerking spasmodically upward, in<br />
his hand, toward the far wall, seeking release. </p>
<p>        Steve placed his feet as firmly as he could on the<br />
slick surface on either side of Brian&#8217;s head.  He faced<br />
forward, toward Brian&#8217;s feet.  In a position more suited to<br />
the center than to the quarterback,Steve reached down and<br />
rubbed the young blond&#8217;s washboard stomach as it heaved in<br />
pleasure, running his fingers through his wet pubes and<br />
finally latching onto his twitching fuckpole, running the<br />
slick column of flesh between his thumb and fingers.  The<br />
quarterback&#8217;s ass, spread wide, the hairy crack open and<br />
inviting, hovered and bobbed above the center&#8217;s upturned<br />
face.  Brian reached up with both hands and placed them on<br />
either asscheeks with a loud SMACK!  He stared up,<br />
fascinated, his eyes wide as he massaged the firm globes of<br />
flesh, his tongue snaking out of his mouth lewdly in a<br />
&#8216;come-hither&#8217; gesture that STeve could not see.  The<br />
beautiful, hairy bronze ass dropped down onto the young<br />
blond&#8217;s smiling face, enveloping it with its downy musky<br />
warmth.  Brian drank in the aroma like that of fine wine as<br />
his snaking tongue darted in and out of Steve&#8217;s puckered<br />
butthole.  Brian hummed contentedly.</p>
<p>        Marty kicked off his jeans as his right hand moved<br />
quickly up and down on his prick.  His naked groin was a<br />
dark and light blur of pistoning flesh.  His left hand<br />
reached down and probed his throbbing asshole with its<br />
middle finger as the lockers he was leaning against rattled<br />
rhythmically as he stroked himself steadily.  Gritting his<br />
teeth in fierce concentration, he noticed it was hard to<br />
keep an eye on the unfolding action in the shower because<br />
the sweat from his fevered brow kept falling into his eyes,<br />
and he couldn&#8217;t spare a free hand to wipe it away.</p>
<p>        Brian buried his face in Steve&#8217;s butt as the<br />
quarterback squatted on his upturned face and pulled at his<br />
spasming dick.  Steve rocked back and forth, lewdly rubbing<br />
the hairy crack up and down and all over Brian&#8217;s nose, hair,<br />
eyes, chin and especially his frantic tongue.  Brian seemed<br />
intent on covering every square inch of Steve&#8217;s spread ass<br />
with tongued-on spit.  Then, Brian held his tongue stiff,<br />
hard and stilld like a little upturned cock as Steve&#8217;s ass<br />
moved back and forth on it, finally bouncing up and down,<br />
impaling his dripping hole onto Brian&#8217;s pointed tongue again<br />
and again.  Brian reached up and, if possible, spread<br />
Steve&#8217;s asshole open even wider so he could savor the hot,<br />
pink ass-meat inside that winked at him behind the wiry<br />
black forest of asshair that covered the quarterback&#8217;s<br />
asscrack.  Steve rocked back and forth like a human seesaw<br />
between Brian&#8217;s dick on one side, which he pulled on<br />
steadily, and Brian&#8217;s hot tongue on the other which he<br />
squatted n driving it into his muscle-bound tan butt, down<br />
on one, up on the other, back and forth, again and again.<br />
The hot spray of the shower continued to rain down.</p>
<p>        &#8220;I wanna get my dick off now, buddy-boy, it&#8217;s your<br />
ass&#8217;s turn to get worked over.&#8221;  Steve growled, &#8220;come up<br />
here and bend the fuck over, man, I&#8217;ve been wanting to stick<br />
this big cock up that prettylittle ass of yours for as long<br />
as I can remember!&#8221;</p>
<p>        Steve got up and Brian got to his feet and bent over in<br />
front of the huge quarterback, his knees slightly bent, his<br />
little white ass perched and ready.  Steve looked down at<br />
the center&#8217;s spread asscheeks, water dripping from his nose<br />
and upper lip, down onto his bulging, twitching cock<br />
pointing at an angle at Brian&#8217;s pink little asshole.  He<br />
cupped one of the firm milk-white ass cheeks in one big,<br />
dark hand, one finger probing the puckered hole gently,<br />
teasingly.  He experienced a moment of deja vu, from the<br />
counless times he and Brian had been in, more or less the<br />
same position so many times on the playing field and in<br />
practice.</p>
<p>        Steve ran the length of his cock up and down Brian&#8217;s<br />
spready open ass-crack, his piss tube building up maddening<br />
friction against the center&#8217;s puckering butthole.  Steve<br />
reached down with his big meaty thickly veined hands and<br />
kneaded Brian&#8217;s muscular chest, twisting and pulling the<br />
blond stud&#8217;s throbbing eraser tip nipples between the thumb<br />
and forefinger of each hand.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Uuhhhhhhh, c&#8217;mon man, I gotta have that dick!  You&#8217;re<br />
driving me crazy,&#8221; said Brian, turning his face toward Steve<br />
as much as he could, his dripping mouth talking into the<br />
other&#8217;s &#8220;Why don&#8217;t you stick that big dick up my asshole,<br />
buddy?  C&#8217;mon!  Fuck my butt!&#8221;</p>
<p>        Steve leaned back on his heels with one hand firmly<br />
planted on the back of Brian&#8217;s neck for support, the other<br />
hand wrapped firmly around the base of his prick and pressed<br />
it forward against Brian&#8217;s pink little hole, hard, harder,<br />
harder, until it finally gave!</p>
<p>        &#8220;Mmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmnnnnnnuh!  Ow!  Ow, oh, shit, buddy.<br />
FUCK! Ooooooooh, keep going.  It hurts, but&#8230; but, keep<br />
going!&#8221;</p>
<p>        Steve&#8217;s knobby dick head sliding millimeter by slow<br />
millimeter expanding the tight asshole ring it sought to<br />
invade wider and wider to the point of what seemed maximum<br />
expansion, a little farther, a little farther, then Steve&#8217;s<br />
cock was halfway in.  The quarterback hungonto Brian&#8217;s<br />
buttcheeks for dear life as he squeezed and kneaded them in<br />
his hands.  Brian had one hand on the wall for support, his<br />
other hand holding his cock in a viselike grip and slowly<br />
pumping it feverishly up and down.  He closed his eyes in<br />
concentration as STeve&#8217;s cock continued its descent into the<br />
uncharted territory of his ass canal.  It was painful and<br />
frightening and yet, at the same time, wonderfully exciting.</p>
<p>        Steve let go of Brian&#8217;s asscheeks, reached around to<br />
the front of his hips and held on tightly for leverage and<br />
shoved his big cock home.  The tip of that huge column of<br />
meat was at its furthest penetration, nestled depp within<br />
Brian&#8217;s hot bowels.  They both felt the hilt of Steve&#8217;s cock<br />
the rim of Brian&#8217;s spread open ass and gave a simultaneous<br />
sigh of pleasure and satisfaction.  Steve moved his big<br />
hands around the sides of Brian&#8217;s slim waist and started<br />
pulling out to get ready for the next fuckthrust.  Brian<br />
gaspedin pleasure.  Though Steve was big and uncut, Brian<br />
felt as if he could feel every curve of vein, every nuance<br />
of texturein Steve&#8217;s meaty fuckpole throughout every square<br />
inch of his ravaged asshole.  Then, Steve&#8217;s foreskin started<br />
to move, which was nestled even more tightly against the<br />
meaty walls of Brian&#8217;s spasming ass-trench and he knew he<br />
was in heaven.  Steve thrusted back in a little bit faster,<br />
a little bit rougher than before and sent Brian into higher<br />
and higher realms of sensual pleasure.  HIs head reeled as<br />
he threw back his head in ecstasy, his eyeballs rolled back<br />
so just the whites showed, he gasped and sighed as STeve<br />
began to thrust and withdraw, thrust and withdraw, faster<br />
and faster and began to fuck him in earnest.  Steve ran his<br />
hands up and down over Brian&#8217;s heaving chest and washboard<br />
stomach as Brian reached behind him and drew Steve&#8217;s mouth<br />
to his, their tongues dancing as they swapped spit and<br />
sucked on each other&#8217;s tongues and lips.  The hot water ran<br />
from the spout above Brian&#8217;s head, down his sloped,<br />
streamlined, muscular back down over his ass, providing a<br />
waterfall of constant lubrication to Steve&#8217;s increasingly<br />
impassioned thrusts.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Uh!  Fuck me&#8230; Uh!  Fuck me&#8230; Uh!&#8230;&#8221; Brian<br />
whispered hoarsely as Steve pounded into him, the sound of<br />
his big balls smacking lewdly against Brian&#8217;s bouncing buns<br />
filling the locker room.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Let me get over on my back so you can fuck me deeper,<br />
stud&#8221; Brian said.</p>
<p>        Steve gave three more hard rams, one after the other,<br />
into Brian&#8217;s bobbing butt, grunting sharply with each thrust<br />
and finally moving his hand down in an arc and smacking<br />
Brian&#8217;s right butt cheek with a loud crack.  Brian closed<br />
his eyes and bit down on his lower lip as the blow sent<br />
shivers of pleasure through him.</p>
<p>        Flipping over on his back, the center spread his legs<br />
wide as the quarterback knelt in front of him, pushing his<br />
legs farther back, drawing his asshole up to the tip of his<br />
cock. </p>
<p>        &#8220;Fuck it in, man!&#8221; Brian growled.</p>
<p>        Steve moved one hand from the inside of Brian&#8217;s thigh<br />
to his twitching prick and guided it inward.  Getting in<br />
more easily now, he arched his back and pushed his cock all<br />
the way inside. Brian slid back on the slick surface of the<br />
floor until his head butted against the wet tile wall behind<br />
him.  Not letting up, Steve slid forward and continued his<br />
assault on Brian&#8217;s asshole in a building frenzy of lust.<br />
Steve ben Brian&#8217;s legs backwards as far as he could, raising<br />
Brian&#8217;s asshole higher as he fucked in and out of it<br />
mercilessly. Water fell from STeve&#8217;s head onto Brian&#8217;s<br />
upturned face as he pounded away.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Fuck, man,&#8221; Steve Said, &#8220;your asshole is good and<br />
tight.  Feels great, GOD!&#8221;</p>
<p>        Brian&#8217;s asshole puckered in and out with each lurch of<br />
STeve&#8217;s hips, twisting all out of shape as STeve thrusted<br />
and pulled his prick in and out of it.  A thin trail of<br />
blood and fuckjuices ran down the bottom of his asscrack<br />
that the rain of hot water all but washed away.  His<br />
butthole was a burning fire of passion that consumed the<br />
massive dick-meat rammed into it over and over.  Steve&#8217;s<br />
huge dickhead, buried deep within Brian&#8217;s butt, continued to<br />
pound like a battering ram at the center&#8217;s churning guts.<br />
Brian&#8217;s head was thrown back in pleasure, his eyes clenched<br />
tight against the overpowering sensations he felt all<br />
through his quivering body.  Steve&#8217;s head was thrown back as<br />
well as he pounded the young blonde&#8217;s assflesh to a pulp.<br />
Lost in their worlds of ecstasy they could have both drowned<br />
from the shower that rained down on their faces and never<br />
have noticed. </p>
<p>        As Steve&#8217;s cock plunged into Brian&#8217;s ass meat over and<br />
over, a tingle ignited at the base of his balls and grew<br />
steadily.  Brian, reaching around the back of his splayed<br />
left leg, jerked his cock as fast as he could.  Steve&#8217;s<br />
building orgasm spread all through his ball sack and the<br />
base of his fast-moving cock throbbed with the desire to<br />
release his load.  The feeling grew.  He gritted his teeth<br />
and his face contorted in a grimace of concentration as his<br />
cum churned in his balls, threatening to erupt at any<br />
second. His brain reeled and seethed with powerful<br />
sensations. </p>
<p>        &#8220;Shit, man,&#8221; Steve rasped huskily, &#8220;Gonna cum like a<br />
motherfucker.&#8221;</p>
<p>        &#8220;Do it, man,&#8221;said Brian, under him.  &#8220;Shoot on me, cum<br />
all over my fuckin&#8217; face!&#8221;</p>
<p>        Steve pulled out with an audible slurping sound as<br />
Brian, his ass aching, lifted his head up as far as he could<br />
toward Steve&#8217;s cock as he brought it a foot away from<br />
Brian&#8217;s face.  Grasping it firmly as he pumped hard, Steve<br />
felt as if the cum was rushing up from his feet and out of<br />
his cock-tip as his dick exploded.  He grunted over and over<br />
in pleasure as a long, full stream of cum came rushing out<br />
of his spasming dick, drenching Brian&#8217;s cheek and forehead<br />
as it spurted out.  The white viscous liquid spilled onto<br />
Brian&#8217;s upper lip and he licked it greedily into his mouth,<br />
moaning with pleasure.  The cock continued to shot, like a<br />
squirt-gun, sending five more big loads into the blonde&#8217;s<br />
dripping face and onto his outstretched tongue before the<br />
force of the bursts started to dwindle.  Brian&#8217;s cock<br />
squirted hot white cum, flying in an arc at least three feet<br />
into the air, landing on STeve&#8217;s lower back and ass in long,<br />
ivory streams that dripped down onto Brian&#8217;s legs.  Brian<br />
took Steve&#8217;s spasming cock deep into his throat as it<br />
spurted its last meager but savory loads into his sucking<br />
mouth.</p>
<p>        As the two hunky football players finished cumming all<br />
over each other, Marty wasin the midst of his own world of<br />
pleasure.  He pulled frantically at his own drooling dick,<br />
his head thrown back, his eyes closed tight in fierce<br />
concentration, oblivious to everything around him.  He<br />
arched his back as the cum flew in a long white stream<br />
shooting over his shoulder and dripping down the cold metal<br />
of the locker. </p>
<p>        Marty did not hear the sneakered feet pad up to him;<br />
wasn&#8217;t aware that halfback Mike Kelly was even watching him<br />
until his hand slammed down on Marty&#8217;s quivering shoulders.</p>
<p>        &#8220;Busted!&#8221; Mike yelled triumphantly.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/gays-in-the-lockerroom/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Mike the shy guy</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/mike-the-shy-guy/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/mike-the-shy-guy/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Mon, 19 Nov 2007 13:02:16 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[movie sex tale watch]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex text repository]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/mike-the-shy-guy/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[Mike is somewhat shy and quiet.  He is married to Betty, a
vivacious, outgoing girl who likes to flirt with other men.  When
they go to parties together, Mike usually winds up being
something of a wallflower while Betty disappears into the crowd.
     Mike was actually enjoying himself.  He couldn&#8217;t believe [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>Mike is somewhat shy and quiet.  He is married to Betty, a<br />
vivacious, outgoing girl who likes to flirt with other men.  When<br />
they go to parties together, Mike usually winds up being<br />
something of a wallflower while Betty disappears into the crowd.</p>
<p>     Mike was actually enjoying himself.  He couldn&#8217;t believe it.<br />
Normally, he didn&#8217;t particularly like parties.  He went because<br />
his wife liked to go and he usually wound up in a small group<br />
talking while his wife disappeared on the dance floor.  But<br />
tonight Mike was enjoying himself.  <span id="more-34"></span>He was dancing with the<br />
hostess, June, and he was enjoying every move they made together<br />
in the crowded den.  He caught sight of his wife across the<br />
crowded room, dancing with June&#8217;s husband.  Even seeing the way<br />
she was molding her body to her partner&#8217;s didn&#8217;t upset him<br />
tonight.  It didn&#8217;t bother him because June&#8217;s body was glued to<br />
his.</p>
<p>     Mike couldn&#8217;t believe how he and June were dancing.  She had<br />
her face buried against his neck and he could feel her lips sort<br />
of nibbling at his throat.  Her body was molded to his own and he<br />
could feel her ample tits against his chest through the pullover<br />
shirt which he wore.  He was sure she wasn&#8217;t wearing a bra.  He<br />
had been pretty sure before he danced with her, because he could<br />
see her nipples pressing against the soft thin blouse she wore.<br />
Now he was absolutely sure she was braless, because he could feel<br />
her tits pressing against his chest.  He was amazed at the way<br />
she was rubbing up against him as they danced.  He could feel her<br />
crotch against his thigh.  She was actually rubbing her pussy<br />
against his leg!  And her hip was pressing against his crotch.<br />
He knew that his dick was getting hard in his pants as they<br />
danced.  He wondered if she could feel it.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Umm, Mike, you must be enjoying this as much as I am,&#8221; June<br />
whispered in his ear.  &#8220;You&#8217;re getting a hard-on.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;I&#8217;m sorry, June,&#8221; he said, &#8220;I just couldn&#8217;t help it.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Don&#8217;t appologize,&#8221; she giggled.  &#8220;I think of it as a<br />
compliment.&#8221;  As she said this, she boldly rubbed her stomach<br />
against the bulge in his pants.  He gasped with pleasure.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Why don&#8217;t we go out and dance on the patio where it isn&#8217;t<br />
so crowded?&#8221; June suggested.  &#8220;Besides, it&#8217;s cooler out there.&#8221;</p>
<p>     June pulled away from him and took his hand.  They threaded<br />
their way through the swaying couples and went out through the<br />
sliding glass doors onto the patio.  There were two other couples<br />
dancing in the semi-darkness away from the light which came<br />
through the sliding glass door.</p>
<p>     June led him over to a dark corner of the patio and snuggled<br />
up against him.  He took her in his arms and they began to move<br />
to the music again.  As they danced, he glanced at the other two<br />
couples.  He could see that one couple was the gal who lived<br />
across the street from him and a guy from across town.  He<br />
suddenly realized that the guy had one hand in the woman&#8217;s<br />
blouse!  He was feeling her tits as they danced!</p>
<p>     If he had thought June was dancing close inside, it was<br />
nothing compared to what was going on now.  She was actually<br />
rubbing her stomach up against his hard dick!  She seemed to be<br />
enjoying the feel of it against her belly.</p>
<p>     Mike caught a glimpse of the other couple and suddenly<br />
realized that it was his wife and June&#8217;s husband.  They didn&#8217;t<br />
seem to realize that Mike and June were there.  He saw that<br />
June&#8217;s husband had his hand down on his wife&#8217;s ass.  He was<br />
squeezing it and probing between her legs with his fingers from<br />
behind.  Then he realized that she had her hand down between them<br />
and was rubbing his dick through his pants.</p>
<p>     &#8220;They really seem to be enjoying themselves, don&#8217;t they?&#8221;<br />
June whispered in his ear.</p>
<p>     &#8220;You don&#8217;t mind?&#8221; Mike asked.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Oh, no,&#8221; June chuckled.  &#8220;Sam has been wanting to get in<br />
Betty&#8217;s pants ever since we met the two of you.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;What?!&#8221; gasped Mike.  He drew back and looked down at her.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Oh, don&#8217;t be like that,&#8221; she told him.  &#8220;Actually, I&#8217;ve<br />
been wanting to get in your pants ever since Betty told me what a<br />
big dick you have.&#8221;  She reached down and boldly grasped his hard<br />
dick through his pants.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Boy, she wasn&#8217;t lying,&#8221; June giggled.  She slid her hand up<br />
and down the length of his big rod, massaging it through his<br />
pants.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Come on, forget them,&#8221; June whispered to him.  She took one<br />
of his hands and slid it inside the bottom of her blouse.</p>
<p>     Mike found himself sliding his hand up over her warm flesh<br />
in spite of himself.  His hand closed on her big tit and he began<br />
to squeeze and manipulate it.  She gasped into his ear.  Out of<br />
the corner of his eye, he saw Sam slide the zipper down in the<br />
back of Betty&#8217;s pants and slip his hand down inside.  He knew<br />
that Betty wasn&#8217;t wearing any panties so he knew that Sam had his<br />
hand on Betty&#8217;s bare ass.  He saw that Sam had his other hand up<br />
inside Betty&#8217;s blouse, and he knew that she wasn&#8217;t wearing a bra<br />
either.  He wondered for a moment if Betty knew he was there,<br />
then he realized that she had her head buried in Sam&#8217;s neck, and<br />
couldn&#8217;t possibly know who else might be on the patio.  Stangely,<br />
Mike found himself almost as excited by what Sam and Betty were<br />
doing as by what he and June were doing.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Why don&#8217;t you pull my skirt up and feel my pussy?&#8221;<br />
suggested June.  &#8220;I&#8217;m not wearing any panties,&#8221; she added.</p>
<p>     Without hesitating, Mike pulled her short skirt up in the<br />
back and slid his hand down over her warm bare ass.  When he<br />
reached the bottom of her ass, he just slid his hand right in<br />
between her legs from behind and dipped his middle finger into<br />
her crack.  He found her pussy flowing with juice!</p>
<p>     Glancing at Sam and Betty again, he saw that Betty was<br />
unzipping Sam&#8217;s pants.  Evidently, Sam was not wearing any<br />
shorts, because his dick sprang right out through the open fly.<br />
Mike was a little relieved to see that Sam&#8217;s dick wasn&#8217;t quite as<br />
big as his own.</p>
<p>     Mike felt June&#8217;s hand pulling his zipper down.  She pushed<br />
the front of his jockey shorts down and wrapped her hot hand<br />
around his hard prick.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Umm,&#8221; she purred in his ear.  &#8220;That thing is huge.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Mike removed his hand from June&#8217;s blouse and boldly began to<br />
unbutton it.  When he had it unbuttoned all the way, he pulled it<br />
wide open and palmed one of her big jugs.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Why don&#8217;t we find someplace a little more private?&#8221; June<br />
suggested.  Mike didn&#8217;t resist when she pulled away from him and<br />
took him by the hand, leading him towards a gazebo in the back<br />
corner of the yard.  Boldly, they walked hand in hand towards the<br />
gazebo, with June&#8217;s blouse hanging open and Mike&#8217;s dick sticking<br />
out of his open fly.  When they reached the gazebo, June led him<br />
inside and then turned to face him.  She wrapped both her arms<br />
around his neck and pulled his lips to her own.  Mike palmed both<br />
of her tits as he kissed her.  He felt her breath quicken in his<br />
mouth as he pinched her nipples.</p>
<p>     Pulling his lips away from hers, he bent down and took a big<br />
rubbery nipple in his mouth.  He sucked it in between his lips,<br />
gently nibbling on it.  While he sucked her tit, he reached down<br />
and pulled her skirt up, sliding his hand up between her legs.<br />
He palmed her pussy, feeling the heat from it against the palm of<br />
his hand.</p>
<p>     Gently, Mike inserted the tip of his finger between her<br />
pussy lips, gradually sliding the finger down deeper into her<br />
slit.  He rolled her clit with his finger, then slid his finger<br />
farther down and swirled the end of it around in the entrance to<br />
her pussy hole itself.</p>
<p>     He felt her slowly backing up.  He raised his head from her<br />
tit to see what she was doing.  Then he realized that she was<br />
maneurvering them to a table located over against the wall.  He<br />
followed her, keeping his finger busy in her pussy.  When they<br />
reached the table, June just reached down and pulled her skirt up<br />
around her waist and sat her ass up on the edge of the table.</p>
<p>     She reached down and began to unfasten his belt and unfasten<br />
his pants.  When they were unfastened, she let them slide down<br />
and pushed his shorts down.  She wrapped her fingers around his<br />
massive hard-on and slowly slid her hand up and down the length<br />
of his shaft.  Mike now had his finger buried in her wet pussy.<br />
He was sliding it in and out of her, fingerfucking her with the<br />
entire length of it.</p>
<p>     Suddenly, whe began to pull on his dick, drawing him close<br />
to her.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Fuck me, Mike,&#8221; she begged him.  &#8220;Stick that big dick up my<br />
hot pussy and fuck my ass off,&#8221; she told him.  Mike pulled his<br />
finger out of her pussy and moved up against her.  He reached<br />
down and took his dick in his hand, sliding the head of it up and<br />
down in her juicy slot.  He could feel the heat coming from her<br />
cunt.  It felt like an oven.  She pulled her legs up and spread<br />
them.  Mike slid the end of his dick down to her cunt hole and<br />
slowly began to push it up into her.  She groaned as his big dick<br />
slowly penetrated her hot cunt.</p>
<p>     Mike couldn&#8217;t believe how hot her pussy felt as it slowly<br />
engulfed his dick.  He looked down and watched his dick disappear<br />
up between her legs, sliding right up into the pink opening<br />
framed by her black cunt hair.</p>
<p>     When he had it all the way up in her, he stood for a moment,<br />
just feeling the wet heat surrounding his dick.  He reached down<br />
and hooked his arms under her knees, lifting her legs and<br />
spreading them wide.  June leaned back on the table and supported<br />
herself on her hands.</p>
<p>     Mike slowly withdrew his dick until only the end was still<br />
in her, then slowly pushed it back up into her again.  She<br />
groaned as he fucked her, slowly and deeply.</p>
<p>     Mike began to pick up speed now, screwing his dick in and<br />
out of her faster and faster.  She was responding to his thrusts,<br />
pushing herself up to meet him on every thrust.  Harder and<br />
harder he fucked her, slamming his dick in her up to the balls on<br />
every stroke.</p>
<p>     Mike could feel it building up, deep in his balls.  He could<br />
feel the pressure moving up along the shaft of his dick,<br />
indicating that he was just on the verge of coming.  He wasn&#8217;t<br />
sure he could hold off much longer.</p>
<p>     Suddenly, June let out a little muffled scream, and her legs<br />
began to jerk and spasm.  Her eyes were shut tight, her face a<br />
picture of intense pleasure.  Mike groaned and suddenly thrust<br />
forward hard, burying it as far up in her as it would go.  His<br />
dick jerked and throbbed as it shot squirt after squirt of his<br />
hot cum deep into her cunt.  Finally, the spasms of pleasure<br />
subsided and he just stood there with his dick still buried in<br />
her cunt.</p>
<p>     After a few moments, he slowly withdrew his prick from the<br />
juicy hole.  She kind of moaned a little as the end slipped out<br />
of her.  He lowered her legs and pulled her back up to a sitting<br />
position.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Oh, boy,&#8221; she smiled at him.  &#8220;That was really something<br />
else!&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;You can say that again,&#8221; he agreed with her.  &#8220;I can&#8217;t<br />
remember when I have come so hard.&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;It&#8217;s that strange pussy,&#8221; she told him.  &#8220;Getting some that<br />
you haven&#8217;t had before will always do that to you, or so Sam<br />
says.&#8221;</p>
<p>    &#8221; Speaking of Sam, I wonder where he and Betty are,&#8221; Mike<br />
said.</p>
<p>     &#8220;Why don&#8217;t we find out?&#8221; June suggested, sliding down off of<br />
the table, letting her skirt fall back down into place and<br />
beginning to button her blouse.  Mike quickly pulled his shorts<br />
and pants up and got himself fastened up.</p>
<p>     They moved over to the entrance to the gazebo and June<br />
peered out.</p>
<p>     &#8220;There they are,&#8221; she said, pointing into the darkness.<br />
Mike looked out past her and saw them.  Betty was sitting on a<br />
bench in the semi-darkness, leaning back in much the same<br />
position which June had been in.  Her blouse was hanging open and<br />
her pants were lying on the ground beside her.  Sam was on his<br />
knees, between her wide-spread legs.  His pants were down to his<br />
knees and Mike could see his dick, appearing and disappearing<br />
below Betty&#8217;s ass as he fucked it in and out of her pussy.  He<br />
could hear her moaning and groaning, saying &#8220;Fuck me, Fuck me&#8221;<br />
the way she always did when she was really getting her ass<br />
screwed off.  And it was obvious that she was really getting<br />
herself fucked good.  Sam was banging her as hard as he could.</p>
<p>     As June and Mike watched, the other couple suddenly went<br />
into orgasm.  Betty was pulling and clawing at Sam, who had his<br />
dick buried to the hilt in her cunt, pumping load after load of<br />
cum deep into her spasming twat.  Finally, they raised up and<br />
separated.  Mike and June watched them rearrange their clothes<br />
and head back for the house before they themselves left the<br />
shadow of the gazebo.</p>
<p>     Something suddenly occurred to Mike.  &#8220;Why didn&#8217;t Sam bring<br />
her to the gazebe?&#8221; he asked June.  &#8220;They could have walked in on<br />
us.&#8221;</p>
<p>     June giggled.  &#8220;That happened once,&#8221; she told him.<br />
&#8220;Actually, I walked in on him screwing the wife of the guy I was<br />
about to fuck.  The guy got very upset and was about to try to<br />
punch Sam&#8217;s lights out when his wife asked him what he was so<br />
upset about when he was oviously there to fuck me.&#8221;</p>
<p>     Mike chuckled.  &#8220;What happened?&#8221;</p>
<p>     &#8220;Well, we wound up watching them fuck, then they watched us<br />
fuck, but Sam and I decided that people are too unpredictable to<br />
take a chance on that again.  So we decide ahead of time who is<br />
going to get the gazebo for a particular party and the other one<br />
has to find someplace else.  It has worked fine for us ever<br />
since.  Mike laughed.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/mike-the-shy-guy/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Watching Thru Window</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/watching-thru-window/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/watching-thru-window/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Tue, 23 Oct 2007 14:54:18 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[letter sex swinger]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sinful tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[text sex story]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/watching-thru-window/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[     The sun was just starting to set as the cab dropped me off
on the corner of my apartment complex.  I&#8217;d been flying all day
and was dead tired, all I was looking forward to a hot shower and
a warm bed.
     I closed my front door and [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>     The sun was just starting to set as the cab dropped me off<br />
on the corner of my apartment complex.  I&#8217;d been flying all day<br />
and was dead tired, all I was looking forward to a hot shower and<br />
a warm bed.</p>
<p>     I closed my front door and collapsed into my easy chair for<br />
a few minutes to rest my feet.  I disposed of my high heels,<br />
dimmed the light next to the chair and fell back with my eyes<br />
closed to let the hectic day I&#8217;d had disappear along with the sun<br />
that slowly drifting below the horizon.  I could still see rays<br />
of sunlight peeking across the roof of the house next door.</p>
<p>    I must have fallen asleep there in the chair, because when my<br />
eyes opened again, it was dark outside.  My own living room was<br />
dark as well, the only illumination coming from a window in the<br />
house next door..<span id="more-31"></span></p>
<p>    I sat there for a few minutes just daydreaming; the nap had<br />
refreshed me and I was feeling a lot better.  I was just getting<br />
ready to head for the shower when I saw a figure move in the<br />
window of the building next door.  The window was a rear bedroom<br />
and the room was lit only by a small lamp on a bedside table.</p>
<p>My eyes opened wider when I realized that the figure was a man<br />
moving around in the room wearing only a pair of jockey shorts.</p>
<p>He sat on the edge of the bed with his back to me.  I couldn&#8217;t<br />
quite make out what he was doing but he was leaning over toward<br />
the table at the side of the bed.</p>
<p>     I was still in need of a hot shower and some sleep but I was<br />
frozen in place at the sight of this near naked man in front of<br />
me.  His bedroom window was not very far away and I could see<br />
that he had a fine body, and was in very good shape.  I hadn&#8217;t<br />
met the man since he&#8217;d moved in a couple of weeks ago but the<br />
growing warmth coming from between my legs was making wish that I<br />
had.</p>
<p>     The man was still leaning over his bedside table, so I stood<br />
up and stretched.  I was still surrounded by darkness so I knew<br />
there was no way anyone could see me.  I slowly took off my skirt<br />
and blouse and dropped them to the floor.  I was still looking at<br />
my newfound neighbor as I started to massage my breasts.  My<br />
nipples were getting hard with all the unspoken images running<br />
through my mind.  When I saw my neighbor sit back upright, I<br />
removed my bra and panties and sat back in my easy chair to see<br />
what else I could spy on.</p>
<p>     My chair felt luxurious as it wrapped around my bare<br />
buttocks.  There was enough room between the armrests to spread<br />
my legs wide and still have a wonderful view of my neighbors<br />
bedroom.   I run my hands down from my breasts and let them play<br />
through my pubic hair.  I was starting to get very wet and turned<br />
on by what I was doing.  I had never had any voyeuristic<br />
experience before, but the wetness between my legs told me that I<br />
was enjoying it immensely. </p>
<p>    My neighbor had found whatever he was looking for and had<br />
reached up and turned his light down a click in brightness.<br />
A tingle ran through my body as my neighbor reached up to his<br />
waist and in one quick movement, stripped off his jockey shorts.<br />
As he lifted off the bed to remove them I could see the cheeks of<br />
his firm, hard ass.  I stared at his muscular rear end and<br />
slipped a finger down between the lips of my pussy.  My pussy was<br />
soaking wet at the sight of this sexy body in front of me.  The<br />
fact that I was getting an unauthorized view of it was also<br />
turning me on. </p>
<p>     I was breathing very deeply and stroking my pussy when my<br />
neighbor suddenly lay back on the bed.  His back was still toward<br />
me but the sudden view of his fine backside and trim naked body<br />
sent another chill through my body.  I started to stroke my clit<br />
slowly, wetting it with juices flowing from my pussy.  My fingers<br />
were covered with now and it added to the pleasure I was feeling<br />
all over.</p>
<p>     My neighbor still had his back to me; he was laying on his<br />
right side and was propped up on his arm like he was reading a<br />
book.  His left arm was dangled down his side and he was stroking<br />
his hips slowly with his hand.    His hand disappeared in front<br />
of his body and I could just make out his ass moving back and<br />
forth in small, short movements.  </p>
<p>     It was obvious to me what he was doing.  The fact that I was<br />
watching secretly was turning me on like I had never been turned<br />
on before.  My fingers were stroking my clit and pussy furiously<br />
as the passion was building up between my legs.  I leaned back a<br />
little more and placed my legs up on the armrests of my big<br />
chair.  My legs were spread, my hot pussy was wickedly open as I<br />
fingered myself in pleasure.  </p>
<p>     I was very close to coming now as I continued to stroke and<br />
probe my cunt.  The ittle tremors of pleasure I was creating were<br />
making me shiver in ectasy.  My neighbor was pistoning his hips<br />
back and forth now a little more forcefully.  </p>
<p>     He moved so that he was laying on his back and my breath was<br />
taken away in a loud gasp as his cock was suddenly &#8216;There&#8217;, in<br />
full magnificent glory.  It was huge, bigger than any I&#8217;d ever<br />
seen before.  His hand was stroking it up and down in a rapid,<br />
fever pitched pace.  He was now arching his hips in time with<br />
each stroke on his red, hot cock.  He was practically fucking his<br />
hand and I was suddenly wishing that I was there instead of his<br />
hand.  I could practically feel his cock as it pistoned in and<br />
out of my dripping cunt.  Stabbing me with pleasure and filling<br />
me with wild abandoned ecstasy.<br />
     My orgasm was almost upon me when my neighbor suddenly<br />
stopped in mid thrust, his hips still off the bed and his hand<br />
was gripping his cock tightly at the base.  He coiled and gave<br />
one last thrust into the air.  A string of white cum exploded<br />
from the tip of his cock and shot into the air.  He spasmed<br />
again, and then a third time.  I watched his cock shooting his<br />
load of cum and bit my lips as my own body arched out of my<br />
chair.  My fingers slid into my cunt and penetrated deeply as an<br />
orgasm shook my body.  I felt dizzy as wave after wave of<br />
pleasure spun through me as I collapsed into my chair.</p>
<p>     My neighbor had fallen back onto his bed and seemed to be<br />
doing the same thing as I was.  Trying to regain his lost breath<br />
and calm down.  It seemed to me that he had had a wonderful come<br />
but I had never felt any pleasure to surpass what I had just<br />
felt.  </p>
<p>     After several minutes of resting there on his bed, my<br />
neighbor sat up and pulled on his shorts again.  He reached up<br />
and turned off his bedside lamp and his room was lit only by a<br />
light from another room.  He stood and walked over to his window<br />
and looked out.  I could see his silhouette in the window clearly<br />
as he stood there looking out.  I was sure that he couldn&#8217;t see<br />
me at all, even as close as our houses were because of the<br />
darkness of my room.  </p>
<p>     A sudden wicked thought ran through my mind and before I<br />
could change my mind, I reached up and clicked on the lamp next<br />
to my chair.  I couldn&#8217;t see his face but I was sure his jaw was<br />
dropping in shock as I was suddenly illuminated, with my legs<br />
still spread wide.  My pussy was still glistening with moisture<br />
and in full view for him to see.<br />
     The outline of my neighbor was frozen into place.  As he<br />
reached down and pulled open his window I clicked the light back<br />
off and disappeared into the darkness again.  I stood and walked<br />
to the window and I could feel the wetness from my pussy start to<br />
 run down my leg.  Little aftershocks from my orgasm were still<br />
making my legs shaky as I reached up and pulled my curtains<br />
closed.  The last view of my new neighbor was of him leaning out<br />
of his window, probably straining to get a better view of me but<br />
I remained in the dark.</p>
<p>     After I closed the curtains, I turned and let out a long<br />
tremendous sigh.  I was even more need of a shower and rest than<br />
when I had first returned home.  I stepped into the hot stream of<br />
water and felt a wave of tension flow from my body as the<br />
pulsating spray washed over me.  I stayed in the hot shower for<br />
almost 30 minutes and emerged clean and ready to hit the sack.</p>
<p>     My mind was filled with images of the scene I had just<br />
played with my new neighbor.  I could only imagine what was going<br />
through his mind.  I lay down on my bed and pictured his sculpted<br />
body through his window.  I was drifting off into sleep so I<br />
leaned over to turn off the light.  Out of the corner of my eye I<br />
noticed a light come on in my neighbor&#8217;s window.  I waited till I<br />
could see his figure in the middle of the room then I clicked off<br />
the light and bathed my bedroom in darkness.</p>
<p>     My neighbor looked up as my light went off and I could see<br />
him studying my dark window.  He moved over and sat down on the<br />
edge of his bed, still looking intently at my window.  Still<br />
sitting on the bed, he reached over to his lamp and then cast<br />
himself into the dark.  </p>
<p>     I sat there for several minutes, wondering what he was<br />
doing.  I had the feeling that he was still sitting there on his<br />
bed, watching my window, waiting.  </p>
<p>     With my breath held tightly, I reached up and turned my<br />
light back on.  I knew that I would be in perfect view for my<br />
neighbor.  I wondered briefly whether I&#8217;d have the courage to go<br />
onto to the next step.</p>
<p>     I stood up and walked to my closet.  I was out of his view<br />
so I quickly dropped my robe and put on a very sheer, very short<br />
baby doll nightgown, then put my robe back on and moved back into<br />
view.  I stretched luxuriously, making a big show of it while<br />
standing right next to my bed.  Keeping my back to the window, I<br />
let the robe fall open and down around my shoulders.  I turned<br />
around sat down on the bed, knowing that my open robe was very<br />
revealing.  My nipples were getting hard and I looked at the dark<br />
window next door and wondered if my neighbor was still there.  I<br />
was sure that he was and I was going to take full advantage of<br />
the situation.  </p>
<p>     I started to massage my breasts through the opening in my<br />
robe.  My baby doll nightgown was more like a sheer robe that<br />
opened in front.  As I kneaded my breasts and pinched my nipples,<br />
it started to open and fall away.  I closed my eyes and imagined<br />
that it was my wonderful neighbor&#8217;s hands that were moving under<br />
my robe.  I could feel myself becoming excited and slowly moved<br />
one hand from my breast down to my stomach.  As I stroked myself<br />
I could feel a familar wetness start again between my legs.  </p>
<p>     I was determined to put on a good show for my man next door.<br />
I moved a hand between my lips and let it play over my pubic<br />
hair.  I opened my legs slightly but kept my pussy blocked from<br />
his view with my hand.  I was sure he could tell I was fingering<br />
myself.  I slid a finger inside and felt the juicing starting to<br />
flow.  Slowly I pulled it out and brought it to my lips.  My<br />
tongue played over it and I sucked my finger into my mouth.  I<br />
could taste my wetness and it made me even more excited. </p>
<p>     I continued fingering my pussy and stroking my tits for<br />
several minutes.  I was getting very excited just thinking about<br />
the man who was watching in the dark next door.  A small orgasm<br />
shot through me as I imagined his fingers penetrating the lips of<br />
my pussy.  I pulled my legs up on the bed and lay back against<br />
the headboard of the bed.  </p>
<p>     My robe had now fallen completely off of my shoulders and<br />
was crumpled underneath me.  I slowly pulled the baby doll off<br />
and was now laying completely naked.  I moved over on my side so<br />
that was in the same position that I had watched my neighbor in.<br />
I was on my side, with my ass open to the window for him to see.<br />
I reached over to the table beside my bed and reached into the<br />
drawer to pull out a vibrator that I kept there.  I kept the<br />
vibrator out of my neighbors sight.  With my back still towards<br />
the window, I played the vibrator over my nipples and breasts.<br />
The vibrations caused little ripples of pleasure to flow through<br />
me and made my nipples even harder.  </p>
<p>     I moved the vibrator down between my legs and let it slide<br />
over my clit.  I jumped in shock as the tip touched me, I was<br />
getting very turned again and my pussy lips were opening as the<br />
pleasure started to build.  </p>
<p>     I was ready to include my neighbor in the next part of my<br />
act so I moved over to my back and slid across the bed till I was<br />
closer to the window.  I brought the vibrator up so that it was<br />
in full view, then brought the tip down to rest right on my clit.</p>
<p>I massaged my pussy with the vibrator for several minutes without<br />
actually penetrating it.  I dangled a leg off the side of the bed<br />
for a more tantalizing view and continued to pleasure myself with<br />
the vibrator.  My breast were heaving as another orgasm was<br />
building within me but I was determined to finish the drama I had<br />
started.  </p>
<p>     I pulled the vibrator from my clit and slid my legs off the<br />
bed until I was sitting directly in front of the window in<br />
complete view of my neighbor.  Then I reached over to the table<br />
and pulled out a tube of KY jelly.  Making a big show of it, I<br />
covered the vibrator completely with the KY, then I rubbed what<br />
was left on my fingers into the lips of my pussy.  My legs were<br />
spreading wider and I was completely exposed.</p>
<p>     I slowly lay back on the bed and opened my legs even wider.<br />
My pussy was wet and open now and I placed the vibrator right at<br />
the entrance to my cunt.  My breathing was becoming labored and I<br />
was dying to cum but I slowly pushed the vibrator until it forced<br />
open my pussy.  The vibrator was sending waves of pleasure<br />
through my but I kept it from penetrating me.  Then inch by inch, </p>
<p>I pushed it in till it filled me completely, stretching the lips<br />
of my cunt and making me tremble in pleasure.  I pulled it all<br />
the way out until just the tip remained inside me and then I<br />
shoved it all the way inside in one hard thrust.  I started to<br />
fuck my pussy wildly with the vibrator, moving my hips in rhythm<br />
 with each stroke.  I was thrashing about the bed now violently<br />
as my orgasm was buildng to a tremendous level.  The combination<br />
 of the vibrator, and the thought of the man next door with a<br />
perfect view of my wickedly spread legs brought me to a<br />
wonderful, totally earthshaking orgasm.  I arched my back toward<br />
the window, just as my neighbor had done earlier, as my body<br />
shook in pleasure.  </p>
<p>     After it was over I fell back on the bed, with my legs still<br />
spread toward the window.  The vibrator was still embedded deep<br />
inside my pussy and juice was dripping onto the bed.  I had never<br />
felt to totally nasty and wicked.  I felt like I could hardly<br />
move and it took a concentrated effort to rise up on my elbows<br />
and reach over to turn out the light.<br />
     After I clicked the light off I fell back on my side and<br />
looked toward the dark window next door.  Several seconds passed<br />
in silence as I recovered and watched the window.  I was sure<br />
that he had been watching but I couldn&#8217;t tell in the darkness.</p>
<p>     Just as I was about to lay back and go to sleep a light<br />
flared. My neighbor had struck a match to light a cigarette he<br />
had been there after all.  In the light of the match I could see<br />
him clearly, sitting in a chair in front of the window.  As he<br />
held the match out to blow it out, the light extended down his<br />
body and I could make out his cock, still semi-hard, and still<br />
covered with come.  It was glistening in the light just as my wet<br />
pussy had glistened before.  He brought the match up to his lips<br />
and blew it out.  The room dropped back into darkness and I could<br />
see no more movement.</p>
<p>     I could feel the vibrator start to fall from my pussy.  It<br />
slowly slid out, still sticky from the KY and from my pussy<br />
juices.  I didn&#8217;t have the strength to put it away.  I just lay<br />
my head back on my pillow and fell asleep dreaming about my new<br />
neighbor, and all the fun we were going have.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/watching-thru-window/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Hot July</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/hot-july/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/hot-july/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Sun, 07 Oct 2007 13:14:50 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sinful tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[text sex story]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/hot-july/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[Jenny was hot.
It was 90 degrees outside, the air conditioner had broken down,
and what&#8217;s more, she hadn&#8217;t had any sex for more than two weeks,
her boyfriend having gone away on a business trip.  It was the
middle of a sweltering Saturday afternoon, and she sat alone and naked in
her apartment, the heat making her body [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>Jenny was hot.</p>
<p>It was 90 degrees outside, the air conditioner had broken down,<br />
and what&#8217;s more, she hadn&#8217;t had any sex for more than two weeks,<br />
her boyfriend having gone away on a business trip.  It was the<br />
middle of a sweltering Saturday afternoon, and she sat alone and naked in<br />
her apartment, the heat making her body shine with sweat.</p>
<p>She thought about her boyfriend, and the night before he left.<br />
Her mouth filled with saliva as she remembered the taste of his<br />
cock on her lips.  She moaned and slid one hand down to her cunt,<br />
tenderly stroking her clit.  Her other hand cupped her full breasts,<br />
pinching the nipples erect.  Her cunt filled the air with the sweet<br />
smell of sex as she got excited.<span id="more-29"></span></p>
<p>Abrubtly she stopped her gentle masturbation.  Coming to a decision,<br />
she went into her bedroom to put on some clothes.  She put on some<br />
sheer nylons, clipping them to a garter belt.  Then she put on a thin<br />
tank top with no bra, her breasts straining against the cotton.  She<br />
added a tight denim skirt and some sandals, put on some sunglasses,<br />
and went out into the blazing sunshine to her car.  If her boyfriend<br />
wasn&#8217;t around to satisfy her desires, she thought to herself, she would<br />
just have to do whatever she could.</p>
<p>Across town, about five miles away, Jenny&#8217;s old boyfriend Mike sat<br />
in the middle of his non-airconditioned living room, listening to music,<br />
sweating, and trying to read a novel.  Damn heat! he thought to himself,<br />
brushing the sweat from his forehead.  He put his book down and ran his<br />
thumb underneath the waistband of his shorts, trying to cool off his<br />
sweating crotch.  Over the course of the day he had gradually removed<br />
items of clothing, until the white shorts were the only thing between<br />
him and complete nudity.  He went to the &#8216;fridge, hoping that there<br />
was one more beer left.</p>
<p>As he stood in front of the fridge, Mike heard a car pull up in front of<br />
the house.  Shortly, there was a knock at the door.  Mike opened it<br />
to find himself looking at Jenny.  Her tank top was now adhearing to<br />
her beautiful tits, the nipples poking through the thin cotton like<br />
finger tips.  Her ass was molded into her skirt, and the odor of her<br />
dripping pussy, which had not cooled off at all during the ten minute<br />
drive, hit Mike&#8217;s nose like a hammer.  His mouth watered, but he managed<br />
to keep the surge of lust he felt out of his voice.</p>
<p>&#8220;Well, Jenny!  How nice!  What are you doing here?&#8221;</p>
<p>Jenny almost swooned at the sight of Mike standing there, his muscular<br />
chest and legs completely exposed.  She gained a little control of<br />
herself, and said, &#8220;Well, I was just kind of bored, and wondered what<br />
you were up to.&#8221;</p>
<p>&#8220;Just sitting around,&#8221; Mike said.  &#8220;C&#8217;mon in.&#8221;</p>
<p>Jenny followed Mike into the dark living room.  He sat down on the couch<br />
and invited her to sit down.</p>
<p>Jenny was so excited now, she was almost visibly shaking.  She could<br />
contain herself no longer.  Two weeks of no sex, and the memory of all<br />
the wonderful nights (and days) she had spend with Mike, make her<br />
boil over.  Smiling seductively, she straddled Mike&#8217;s crotch, sitting<br />
on his lap facing him.  Her skirt rode up, and her bare pussy pressed<br />
against Mike&#8217;s now-hardening dick.</p>
<p>&#8220;Jenny,&#8221; Mike sputtered, &#8220;what&#8230;&#8221;  Her lips came down on his as she cut<br />
him off.  She wrapped her arms around his neck and kissing him long and<br />
passionately, her tongue driving deep into his mouth.  She almost died<br />
as she felt Mike&#8217;s cock through his shorts surge towards an iron-like<br />
erection.  Mike broke away from the kiss, moving his lips down to her<br />
neck.  He kissed her neck tenderly, and then nipped at it with his<br />
teeth, making Jenny gasp and squirm against him in delight.</p>
<p>After a minute, Jenny pushed away from him, smiled, and stood up in the<br />
middle of the floor.  Swaying her hips and half closing her eyes, she<br />
began to dance around the room.  She faced Mike and pulled her tank top<br />
down so that the deep cleavage was exposed.  Turning, she bent over and<br />
inched up her skirt, showing off her fine ass.  Mike just got a glimpse<br />
of the dark auburn hair surrounding her pussy, the same color as the hair<br />
on her head, before she turned around to face him again.</p>
<p>Mike watching her dance with mounting excitement.  He had always loved<br />
her body:  although just five feet tall, she had large, beautiful tits,<br />
a wonderfully rounded, firm ass, and clear blue eyes.  Her long auburn<br />
hair fell just to her tits.  Mike, remembering the feeling of her hair<br />
on his face, his chest, his cock, groaned.  He slid his hand under his<br />
shorts and began stoking his cock gently.</p>
<p>Jenny now began slowly removing her clothes.  First she pulled up her<br />
top just enough to expose one tit.  She slipped one finger into her<br />
mouth, and then moved it down to the exposed nipple, running it around<br />
and around until the nipple was as hard as a rock.  Pulling up the top<br />
some more, she repeated the move with her other nipple.  When both nipples<br />
were standing straight out, she removed her top and danced close,<br />
caressing her breasts with both hands, right in front of Mike.  Mike<br />
moaned but did not yet reach for her, knowing that more was to come.</p>
<p>After teasing Mike with her breasts, she backed off, unzipped her skirt<br />
slowly, and began inching it down.  When it was down to just above her<br />
pussy, with a few tufts of red hair sticking up over the waist band, she<br />
stopped.  Grinding her hips, she rubbed her hand up and down on her pussy,<br />
outside of the skirt.  The denim turned dark, wet with her juices.<br />
Finally, she turned around, pulled the skirt up over her ass, and bent<br />
over, grabing her ankles.  She spread her legs slightly and slipped one<br />
hand up into her pussy.  She gasped as a finger pryed apart the wet<br />
cunt lips, slipping deep inside.  Slowly, she began to hump her finger,<br />
moaning with self-induced rapture.</p>
<p>Mike could stand no more, and stood up, yanking off his shorts.  He<br />
stepped over to Jenny, his cock hard as pole, hanging over her white<br />
ass.  Bending down, he pulled her finger from her pussy, placed the<br />
head of his dick against the entrance of her sopping cunt, and pushed<br />
inside.</p>
<p>Jenny moaned and tried to push back against him, but Mike put his hand<br />
on her ass and prevented it.  Slowly he began pumping in and out, just<br />
the head of his cock and an inch or two of the hard shaft.  In and out.<br />
Jenny moaned in ecstasy and frustration, happy to at last be impaled on<br />
a hard dick, but wanting Mike deep inside.  Mike continued to tease her,<br />
building himself to a wild pitch of excitement.  Then, when he could<br />
stand no more, and his cock had actually grown an inch or two from the<br />
excitement, he slid all the way in her to the hilt.  The front of his<br />
sweat-slick thighs slapped against her firm ass with a loud smack,<br />
and Jenny bit her lip to keep from screaming out her pleasure.</p>
<p>Slowly, feeling Jenny&#8217;s cunt milk his cock, Mike began to fuck her.<br />
Jenny spread her legs and braced her palms against the floor.  Mike<br />
rapidly speeded up, grabbing her hips as he started long strokes, his<br />
cock going in deep, and then pulling out almost to the head.  He reached<br />
under her with one hand and gently caressed her tits, tenderly flicking<br />
her rock-hard nipples with his fingernails.  The combination of his<br />
hard, pile-driver strokes, and his tender hand on her tits, pushed<br />
Jenny to a fever pitch.</p>
<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you love it?&#8221; gasped Mike.</p>
<p>&#8220;Oh, YES!&#8221;</p>
<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you love it from behind?  I get so deep.  Don&#8217;t you love it when<br />
I&#8217;m DEEP inside?&#8221;</p>
<p>&#8220;Yes yes YES!  Don&#8217;t stop!  Fuck me, fuck me!&#8221;</p>
<p>Mike complied, fucking her harder and faster.  Jenny moaned and shoved<br />
her ass back at him just as hard, swiveling it around so as to feel Mike&#8217;s<br />
cock touch different parts of her cunt.</p>
<p>Suddenly, Mike thrust as deep as he could go, and held himself there.<br />
Sliding his hand down from her breasts to her clit, Mike homed in and<br />
started rubbing it frantically.</p>
<p>&#8220;Ooooohhhhhhhh, God!  Yes, like that!&#8221;  Jenny shouted.  Her ass started<br />
rolling around almost uncontrollably.</p>
<p>She grunted and moaned and yelled as Mike held himself rigid inside her,<br />
his hand rubbing her clit faster and faster.  Finally, when he sensed she<br />
was right on the edge, he started thrusting again.</p>
<p>The friction of Mike&#8217;s finger on her clit and his cock in her cunt was<br />
too much.  Screaming out in pleasure, Jenny came.  Her cunt clamped down<br />
hard on his thrusting cock, and with a gasp of pleasure, Mike cut loose.<br />
He come shot into her like a cannon.</p>
<p>&#8220;I can feel it!  I can feel it!&#8221;  she cried, her ass and tits shaking<br />
with her orgasm.  &#8220;Oh god, it&#8217;s so good!&#8221;</p>
<p>They stayed like that until Mike&#8217;s softened cock fell out of her dripping<br />
cunt.  But after two weeks, and in this heat that seemed to drive her<br />
hormones almost beyond control, one orgasm was not going to be enough for<br />
Jenny.  Mike sat down on the couch and gestured for Jenny to join him,<br />
but she had a lot more than a little post-coital cuddling on her mind.<br />
Smiling wickedly, she knelt down in front of him and lightly stroked his cock.</p>
<p>&#8220;A little on the horny side today, eh Jen?&#8221; Mike asked her, smiling.</p>
<p>Jenny didn&#8217;t say anything, her eyes glued to slowly stiffening cock in<br />
her hand.  Her other hand was lightly caressing her heavy breasts.<br />
Unlike so many women with large breasts, Jenny&#8217;s were very responsive<br />
and sensitive, and with very little caressing her nipples popped out,<br />
and her breath became fast.  She slowly stroked Mike&#8217;s cock up and<br />
down, getting it hard.  While Mike&#8217;s cock had softened, it hadn&#8217;t<br />
shrunk very much after his orgasm, and was still quite long.<br />
Smiling, Jenny put the semi-hard cock between her breasts, leaned<br />
forward so that her nipples pressed against Mike&#8217;s groin, and began<br />
to move her torso up and down.</p>
<p>Jenny looked up at Mike and smiled as she stroked his cock with her<br />
tits.  Then she leaned down and licked at the head, shortening<br />
the strokes so that she could get some of his cock in her mouth.<br />
In no time at all, Jenny&#8217;s teasing licks and firm breasts against<br />
his cock caused Mike to get completely hard.  His breath came in<br />
panting gasps, and he started thrusting harder against her breasts,<br />
desparately trying to get both more stimulation from her tits,<br />
and bury himself in her mouth.</p>
<p>Jenny continued with the breast fucking, teasing Mike with her mouth<br />
and tits until he was wild with desire.  When he could stand it no<br />
more, Mike pulled her up by her shoulders.</p>
<p>&#8220;Now!&#8221;  he moaned.  &#8220;I want to be inside you!&#8221;</p>
<p>Jenny smiled at him and shook her head.  &#8220;Nope,&#8221; she said.  &#8220;Now<br />
it&#8217;s your turn to do me!&#8221;</p>
<p>Mike groaned, but complied.  He let her go, stood up, and sat her<br />
down on the couch.  He kneeled between her legs, leaned over,<br />
and kissed her.  As the kissed, he pulled her hips forward to<br />
the edge of the couch, so that the underside of his cock rested<br />
against her wet slit.  Still kissing her, his hands stroked her<br />
whole body, and his cock rubbed up and down gently against her<br />
cunt, getting her more excited.</p>
<p>Slowly, Mike slid his tongue down Jenny&#8217;s body, licking and nipping<br />
as he went.  He swirled his tongue around her breast, circling in<br />
towards her nipple, but not touching it.  When her nipple was hard<br />
and her breast was covered with goosebumps, he closed his lips over<br />
the nipple, flicking it rapidly with his tongue.  Jenny squealed and<br />
pulled his head tight against her tit.  After a moment, Mike repeated<br />
the treatment on her other breast.  Finally, he pressed the two<br />
breasts together, licking and sucking at both nipples simaltaneously.<br />
Jenny writhed and gasped in delight.</p>
<p>A little faster now, Mike moved down towards her cunt.  He stopped with<br />
his tongue just above the hairly slit, watching as Jenny&#8217;s entire body<br />
seemed to tense, waiting for his tongue on her.  Then he moved over<br />
to her inner thighs, kiss, licking, and biting tenderly.  Jenny&#8217;s<br />
hands tangled themselves in Mike&#8217;s hair, trying half-heartedly to<br />
pull him up to her cunt.  Mike ignored her, licking slowly closer and<br />
closer to her cunt.</p>
<p>He licked around and around Jenny&#8217;s cunt, still not touching it,<br />
while his hands slid up to caress her breasts and pinch her nipples.<br />
Jenny moaned, and her hips started thrashing, trying to get Mike&#8217;s<br />
tongue and lips on her.  Finally, when it seemed as if she could stand<br />
it no more, Mike began licking her cunt.  Slow, long strokes at first,<br />
from the bottom to the top of the slit, stopping just short of the<br />
clit.  Lightly, then deeper into her cunt he licked.  After several<br />
minutes, when Jenny was almost yelling out, he grabbed her ass in<br />
both hands, put his lips over her clit, and sucked deeply.<br />
With a scream, Jenny came, her hands pushing his face into her,<br />
her head rocking back and forth, out of her mind<br />
with passion.  Her hair stuck to her sweat-soaked, flushed faced,<br />
and her body heaved and rolled.  Her scream rang in Mike&#8217;s ears,<br />
and he smiled slightly.</p>
<p>Jenny relaxed, her orgasm fleeing her.  Mike backed off her clit and<br />
began stimulating her again, his tongue lapping at her cunt, once<br />
again avoiding her clit.  &#8220;No!&#8221; Jenny moaned, and tried to pull Mike<br />
up on top of her.  He ignored her, grabbing her wrists and pinning<br />
them to her sides, his busy tongue never ceasing its caress.  Her<br />
hands held tight, Jenny began moaning loudly again, her hips rocking<br />
back and forth.  Once again, Mike closed his lips over her clit and<br />
strummed it to orgasm.  Jenny screamed, and her body thrashed about<br />
furiously, barely held in check by Mike&#8217;s restraining hands.  She<br />
humped her cunt wildly, almost forcing his lips off her clit.  Finally,<br />
she relaxed.</p>
<p>Mike release her hands and smiled up at her, his face wet with her<br />
juices, his hair tousled.  Jenny smiled weakly down at him, and then<br />
reached down and yanked him up so they were face to face.  She kissed<br />
him, reaching down and rubbing his now throbbing cock against her<br />
slit.  &#8220;I want to be on top,&#8221; she said.</p>
<p>Mike lay down on the couch, and Jenny straddled his waist.  She rubbed<br />
her cunt against his trapped cock, not quite entering him.  She<br />
leaned over and rubbed her tits against his face, and he eagerly began<br />
sucking them, once again pressing them together so that he could lap<br />
at both nipples simultaneously.  She moaned and pulled his head tighter<br />
against her ample chest.  Finally, when her nipples were hard as rocks,<br />
and he was thrusting his hips in a frenzy, desparately trying to enter<br />
her, she sat up.  Reaching down and grinning, she held his erect cock<br />
strait up.  Rising up, she placed the head against her slit, and rubbed<br />
it delicately against her clit.  Slowly, she started to ease down.</p>
<p>Mike could stand no more, and grasping her by the hips, he slammed her<br />
down and thrust up his hips, penetrating her as deeply as possible.<br />
They both moaned in delight.</p>
<p>&#8220;Do you like it deep like that?&#8221; he panted.</p>
<p>&#8220;Oh, YES!&#8221; she replied, beginning to move up and down on him.  She leaned<br />
back, her magnificent breasts thrust forward, and he reached up and fondled<br />
them delicately.  &#8220;Harder!&#8221; she moaned, and he began squeezing and pinching<br />
them, all the while thrusting faster and faster.  He could feel her cunt<br />
clench and squeeze at his cock and it drove him wild.  He started thrusting<br />
into her urgently, desparate to come.  Jenny put a hand on his chest and<br />
stopped him.  &#8220;Wait,&#8221; she said, panting.</p>
<p>Mike stopped, his face twisted with the effort of holding back.  Jenny<br />
slid up on his cock, and let it fall out of her.  &#8220;What&#8230;&#8221; Mike stuttered,<br />
but she shushed him.  Grinning devilishly, she placed the head of his<br />
cock against her asshole.  Leaning forward to kiss him, she wiggled her<br />
hips gently, and slowly slid him inside her tight ass.  Mike gasped<br />
at the tightness, and Jenny&#8217;s eyes rolled up in her head as she slid<br />
slowly all the way down.  When he was completely inside her, she<br />
looked down at him, placed her hands down on the bed, and began riding<br />
him slowly.</p>
<p>Slowly they picked up speed, Jenny rubbing her tits across Mike&#8217;s<br />
face, and Mike reaching down to fondle her clit while she rode her<br />
ass up and down on his cock.  He reached around with his other hand,<br />
pinching and squeezing her tight butt.  Soon, she was riding him<br />
almost as hard as before, and they sound of their moaning and yelling<br />
filled the hot air of the apartment.</p>
<p>Mike held himself in check, a hair away from coming, as he frantically<br />
stroked her clit and sucked her tits.  Finally, Jenny leaned down, bit<br />
down hard on Mike&#8217;s neck, and screamed her orgasm into his throat.<br />
Mike let go with a moan, his cock swelling and firing in her tight ass.<br />
Jenny screamed louder as she felt him come, her ass clenching tight<br />
around his cock, milking it.  Finally, they were quiet.</p>
<p>Mike kissed her face and stroked her her, his cock slowly softening<br />
inside her ass.  &#8220;Nice of you to drop by, Jenny.  Feel free to come<br />
by any time.&#8221;</p>
<p>Jenny smiled at him, stoking his lips tenderly.  &#8220;Maybe I will,&#8221;<br />
she replied.  &#8220;My boyfriend&#8217;s going to Cleveland in September.&#8221;</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/hot-july/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Long Island Couple</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/long-island-couple/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/long-island-couple/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Fri, 14 Sep 2007 15:40:11 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex explicit letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex text repository]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sinful tale]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/long-island-couple/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[I don&#8217;t remember exactly how you first approached me. I do remember the
business meeting when you first came in and I noticed how tall and interesting
you were.  Not classically handsome, but striking.  Such a welcome relief from
all the others.  Your sense of humor and your incredible Dutch accent were all
so very intriguing. [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>I don&#8217;t remember exactly how you first approached me. I do remember the<br />
business meeting when you first came in and I noticed how tall and interesting<br />
you were.  Not classically handsome, but striking.  Such a welcome relief from<br />
all the others.  Your sense of humor and your incredible Dutch accent were all<br />
so very intriguing.  We were gathered in a small resort on Long Island, in the<br />
dead of winter.</p>
<p>After the mandatory cocktail hour and the never-ending dinner we assembled as<br />
if on command in the bar and that was the first time we had a chance to really<br />
talk. It seemed no time before we were dancing, and you were asking probing<br />
questions.  I also remember you stroking my thigh under the tablecloth as the<br />
V.P. was grilling me for specific information about my area of the country.<br />
No fair, no fair, at all!!<span id="more-27"></span></p>
<p>At that time I still had no idea we would actually become lovers, and so soon.<br />
We already discussed the drawbacks of having &#8220;extra&#8221; contact with co-workers.<br />
But it was destined.  Soon a walk in the snow and a very long kiss.  Hands<br />
moving over my back and then you took my hand and said &#8220;we either need to stop<br />
now, or go to one of our rooms&#8221;.  A wise decision, in retrospect.</p>
<p>Being a provincial company they had segregated the males in one wing, the<br />
females in another and you of course had more luxurious accommodations in yet<br />
another area of the hotel.</p>
<p>Since you are the consummate gentleman we went to my room.  That was the<br />
beginning of an incredible night of lovemaking in every fashion.  You helped<br />
me undress and took off your own things only to immediately push me into a<br />
sitting position on the bed and then kneel in from of me and use your very<br />
talented tongue to explore all of me.</p>
<p>The electricity you caused made me shiver and still does thinking about it.  I<br />
wanted only to have you stay there with your dark hair showing between my legs<br />
for days.  And your lips covering my clit as you sucked on me and drove me<br />
over the brink more times that I could count.</p>
<p>You finally took pity on me and let me recover, only to fill me with passion<br />
again as you kissed my lips and explored my mouth with that tongue that drives<br />
me wild.   I do love how you kiss me.  And then it is my turn to please you,<br />
moving my lips down your body, finding all the sensitive places you have on<br />
your chest and sides and slowly toward the area I want so much to taste and<br />
tease and suck. As my lips moved across your body, you sighed and squirmed but<br />
I was relentless.  I love to tease, and tickle.</p>
<p>My hair brushes your tummy as I move my head down your long, lean body.  I<br />
breathe softly on your stiff cock and touch it with just the very tip of my<br />
tongue. You gasp as you feel the warmth wetness running over the head of your<br />
shaft.  My right hand seeks your balls and gently fondles them.  As my legs<br />
are near your head you reach to part them and pleasure me again.  I ask you to<br />
lie still so I can have my fun.  I&#8217;m not good at true 69 position, I lose<br />
control of myself.</p>
<p>Slowly I take the tip of your cock into my mouth and tease it with my tongue.<br />
Moving just a bit further down and beginning a light suction I take you<br />
further into the depths of desire. You press your hips upward to speed the<br />
entry and I move back to control the action.  You moan again and I press<br />
further taking all of you into the warmth of my lips.  Up and down and sucking<br />
harder, and harder with each movement.  My hand is still playing with you<br />
balls and a single finger press under you toward your ass.  You are throbbing<br />
now and I love it. Harder and harder I press up and down on you and suck as<br />
hard as I can.  Just as you are about to cum you pull my head away quickly.<br />
And I see your entire being shake with spasms of delight.</p>
<p>You pull me up to lie next to you.  Your arms comfort me as your breathe<br />
returns.  We kiss very softly and I seem to melt into your body.  I know<br />
you&#8217;re married and instinctively I also know it&#8217;s been a while since you&#8217;ve<br />
experienced passion like this. Your fingers reach to touch my boobs and you<br />
mention how much you like the definition of the nipples and how hard they are.<br />
You trace the areolas and cause them to become even harder.  Moving slightly<br />
you lower your head to suck on each one and your right hand moves down to play<br />
with my love nest.  I feel your finger play with my clit and I sigh.  You<br />
continue until I cannot feel anything except your mouth on my tit and your<br />
finger gently massaging my clit.  One, two no three times you make me cum like<br />
this.</p>
<p>My hands seek your cock again.  I want so much to have you inside of me,<br />
driving deep and filling me.  I run my fingers up the underside of your shaft<br />
and feel the response I desire.  You whisper that it&#8217;s too soon for you to be<br />
able to get hard enough to satisfy me.  I say , we&#8217;ll see about that.  And<br />
slowly my hands stroke you to full length and you are amazed.</p>
<p>You guide me onto you and I reach to place you at the entrance to my pussy.  I<br />
lower myself slowly savoring every inch of your manhood thrusting into my<br />
wanting area.  You again lift your hips and press even deeper into me.  I<br />
shake as I feel you filling me. Certainly I will be split in two but I don&#8217;t<br />
care.  I want to have you forcing that wonderful cock up and into me very<br />
deeply and very hard.  We begin a motion that is known worldwide and you guide<br />
my movements with your hands on my hips.  A little faster and I suddenly<br />
erupt, moaning louder and moving quicker as your hands dictate.  You feel my<br />
muscles tighten as I cum and you continue the ballet.  Harder and faster,<br />
deeper and quicker.  Oh Jesus, I moan and you continue the trusts as I<br />
continue to cum. I&#8217;m incapable of moving on my own and you know it.  You press<br />
your hands to indicate direction and timing and I am only an instrument for<br />
your use.  Use me, lover&#8230;..I love it so.  After I have had total enjoyment<br />
of your body you finally move past the point of control as well and cum<br />
groaning loudly as you do.  I collapse on your chest unable to move or think,<br />
knowing only that you have satisfied me totally.</p>
<p>Oh, God, how wonderful that felt and how very much I wanted you. Talk to me<br />
and love me, I pleaded with you for hours.  And you did.  We are not truly<br />
friends, we have not had time for that yet, but we are very well matched<br />
sexually, and I know there will be places in our lives to do this again.</p>
<p>The first time was so special as we explored and played and laughed at little<br />
things during our periods of small talk.  I will always remember this one<br />
night as being one of the best ever in my life.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/long-island-couple/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Cyber Meeting</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/cyber-meeting/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/cyber-meeting/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Tue, 07 Aug 2007 19:40:23 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[Uncategorized]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[free adult sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex story text only]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex text message]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/cyber-meeting/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[Cyber Meeting
By: abhishek singh
Hello all ISS readers! I am back again with a hot sizzling story. As you knows me IÐ¢m Abhishek Singh 18 male living in Delhi near mother dairy of Pandav Nagar. I will hope that u will enjoy the story. Mail me any comments, queries or anything on lusty_passion@hotmail.com or lusty_passion@rediffmail.com.
any female [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>Cyber Meeting<br />
By: abhishek singh<br />
Hello all ISS readers! I am back again with a hot sizzling story. As you knows me IÐ¢m Abhishek Singh 18 male living in Delhi near mother dairy of Pandav Nagar. I will hope that u will enjoy the story. Mail me any comments, queries or anything on lusty_passion@hotmail.com or lusty_passion@rediffmail.com.<br />
any female who wants some fun can mail me too.<br />
Julia and Rose were two college roommates, both girls came from big cities on opposite ends of the country. Their first day of college when they met in their dorm room for the first time they felt they hit it off well and would become good friends. Both girls were highly into computers, both of them brought a technical arsenal matching that of a NASA super computer. Their toys ranged from camera&#8217;s to joysticks to hot new graphics programs and high speed machines. It was most obvious these girls weren&#8217;t joking around when it came to their hobbies of web surfing. They both decided for the better of their relationship, so as not to have to fight over phone or computer usage, to keep both computers and get separate high speed Internet connections for each. They spent many a nights that year surfing the net giggling over Internet porn they&#8217;d happen upon and meeting people in chat rooms on the Internet.<br />
One night both girls sat quietly at their desks the occasional giggle coming from them as they typed away clicking madly. Each girl had decided to experiment and enter a chat for Lesbians and Bisexual women. Each girl had met someone they found to be very interesting. Night after night they met up with their &#8220;cyberdates&#8221; and chatted for hours into the night. The next each kept the topic of their chat to themselves in fear of revealing to their roommate the interest they had in the same sex.<br />
Rose would casually pass on little clues to Julia about who she was talking to so much on her computer, and Julia would do the same keeping the information they shared limited to general things. Then one day Julia let it slip she had been talking to another woman by saying &#8220;her&#8221; in one of her sentences when talking about her friend. Rose surprised but happy that she was talking to a woman also let out how she had been talking to a woman too. The two giggled and went on saying little things about their cyberdates each one happy for the other.<br />
Months went by and so did the nightly meetings, nothing personal had yet been passed between the girls and their cyberfriends except age, sex, and the common knowledge of their interest in women. So they decided to get a little more personal each girl told their cyberfriend how they would like to meet. The news that their cyberfriends lived in the same town came as a great and most welcome surprise to them. So they decided to meet at a local night club and see if they could recognize each other without the help of knowing before hand what the other looked like. So each girl dressed up in their sexiest night clubbing dresses a little stunned that they had both made plans on the same night but letting it go as a coincidence since it was a Friday night. They each made their way to their destinations in their cars.<br />
Julia reached her meeting spot first and entered the club crossing the crowded dance floor to head for the bar. Soon after Rose reached her destination and went in deciding to stay close by the door in a booth so as to see all the people who came in and try to spot her date. As the night went on and minutes turned to hours they became a little uncertain about meeting the person they came to meet. Julia deciding to take a break and head for the bathroom to freshen up when in midstream she bumped into Rose of all people who was on her way back to her booth from the bathroom. Surprise turned to glee in both of them seeing how they had met someone that night they knew and felt comfortable with. Not much was said as to why they were both there but they decided to sit together and talk while they waited since the night was still young.<br />
Hours passed by and their dates where nowhere to be seen, suddenly Rose turned to Julia and asked what brought her to this club on this particular night. Julia&#8217;s confession that she had come to meet her cyberfriend her came as a stunning surprise to Rose as she burst out, &#8220;Me too!&#8221; It didn&#8217;t take long for them to put two and two together and realize that the people they had met in the chat room was actually each other. Laughter burst from both of them in embarrassment as they went on confirming their sudden realization with details of their conversations.<br />
A bit of shyness and embarrassment also took hold as they recalled some of the hotter topics of their conversations. The two decided to make the best of the night and hang out at the club together having drinks and dancing the night away. Later on they each drove their cars back to the dorm arriving at the same time and walking up to the room together. After the long night of dancing they felt a dip in the hot tub would be a great way to relax and loosen up before bed. They both changed into their bikini&#8217;s and took their towels and head down to the hot tub. To their luck no one else was around and they had the place to themselves. After setting the tub&#8217;s temperature they both slipped in and sighed in unison as they relaxed in the hot water and let the jets work over their tired muscles. Rose turned to Julia and brought up how funny it was that of all the people on the Internet they managed to find each other. Julia agreed and they both laughed about it for while commenting about the oddity of it all and how slim the chances were.<br />
Then Rose mentioned the conversations they had, in particular the sexier ones about what they would do to each other. Rose then asked Julia if she felt the same way now that they knew who they were talking to. Julia a bit buzzed from the alcohol simply answered by reaching over and pulling Rose to her kissing her deeply.<br />
Rose&#8217;s eyes went wide as she got pulled into the deep kiss, the surprise let way to pleasure as the answer she got was the answer she was looking forward to even if it was a bit more forward than she expected. Rose then leaned over and began to kiss Julia softly on the neck and along her face then on her lips for a long deep passionate kiss. Her hands roamed all over Julia as they kissed and she pulled down Julia&#8217;s bathing suit top and massaged her breasts pinching and pulling her nipples while still kissing her.<br />
As they kissed Rose sucked Julia&#8217;s bottom lip a little, then as she broke off the kiss she moved down and lifted Julia&#8217;s breasts to her mouth kissing them. Then taking one of her nipples into her mouth Rose began to suckle it hard and passionately. Soft moans vibrated against the areola of Julia&#8217;s nipple as Rose suckled on it her hands pulled off Julia&#8217;s top completely and then moved down her body to pull her bikini bottoms aside and gently begin to rub Julia&#8217;s pussylips while still suckling on her nipple. She then switched to her other nipple and suckled on it equally as intense for a while. Rose&#8217;s fingers dipping into Julia&#8217;s pussy rubbing around inside hooking them so she could rub Julia&#8217;s g-spot and try to make her cum right on Rose&#8217;s hand. Then Rose stopped and pulled off her top to rub her breasts all over Julia&#8217;s as she took her into her arms and grabbed her ass massaging it while kissing and suckling her neck. Then Rose pulled off Julia&#8217;s bikini bottoms and lifted her up to sit her on the edge of the tub, meanwhile Rose slid off her bottoms so they were both naked.<br />
Then Rose kneeled between Julia&#8217;s legs and proceeded to eat her pussy like nothing Julia had ever experienced before. Suckling, licking, nibbling all over Julia&#8217;s labia and clit Rose&#8217;s tongue flickered over her sensitive clit while her fingers held Julia&#8217;s pussylips wide open. Rose&#8217;s fingers traced up and down her labia while she suckled on Julia&#8217;s swollen red clit. Then lightly Rose teased Julia&#8217;s asshole with her finger, rubbing the tight little rim in circles and dipping the tip of her finger in. Rose then moved her tongue down and licked Julia&#8217;s pussyhole dipping her tongue inside and licking around, then to try and drive her crazy Rose used the very tip of her tongue to flick against the tiny sensitive slit of Julia&#8217;s peehole.<br />
She continued this as Julia screamed in pleasure and ran her hands through Rose&#8217;s short thick black hair. Rose then run her nails along Julia&#8217;s inner thighs still eating her pussy and tongue fucking her till she couldn&#8217;t take anymore and began to scream loudly convulsing with multiple orgasms. So then Rose began to finger fuck Julia with two digits, her middle and fore finger, again and again deep and hard while Julia was cumming. Rose licked around her fingers against Julia&#8217;s labia and clit tasting her sweet cum as it ran in streams down the sides of her pussy coating Rose&#8217;s hand and mouth.<br />
After letting Julia settle down from cumming Rose pulled her down into her arms and held Julia close between her legs in the water kissing her softly as she panted and caught her breath. Soon after the two gathered their clothes and dried off to head back to their room. They decided to push the beds together in their dorm room and sleep with each other for the rest of the year making Rose and Julia&#8217;s freshmen year of college one to remember always.</p>
<p>Cyber Meeting</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/cyber-meeting/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Sister of my Mom</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/sister-of-my-mom/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/sister-of-my-mom/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Mon, 16 Jul 2007 19:12:15 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[dirty sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[fairy sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[free sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[free text sex story]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[how to write a sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sinful tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[text sex story]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/sister-of-my-mom/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[Sister of my Mom 

A Story By


Ravi

My Name is Ravi. I am 23 years old now. This happened to me when I was 18. That
time I was looking for a job after my college. I was staying in my Mom&#8217;s sister&#8217;s
(Aunt) house in the city attending interviews. My Uncle is a Sales Representative.
He will be [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>Sister of my Mom </p>
<p>
A Story By
</p>
<p>
Ravi
</p>
<p>My Name is Ravi. I am 23 years old now. This happened to me when I was 18. That<br />
time I was looking for a job after my college. I was staying in my Mom&#8217;s sister&#8217;s<br />
(Aunt) house in the city attending interviews. My Uncle is a Sales Representative.<br />
He will be out of town for at least 25 days a month. My aunt was 28 years old that<br />
time. She is really beautiful and sexy. Especially I love her boobs. Her boobs are<br />
really huge and those two can not be kept with in her Bra and Blouse. Most of the<br />
time when she is doing household work her saree can not cover her big boobs and<br />
her cleavage is always feast to my eyes. Strong and beautifully shaped thighs. Her<br />
tight ass is a bit big but goddamn sexy. All the males seeing her will definitely dreams<br />
about meeting her nude in a bed and fucking her real hard. No exceptions.
</p>
<p>
Then think about me. She is my fantasy gal. I know she is like mother to me. But<br />
couldn&#8217;t resist my Instincts and always I was dreaming about her. To tell you the<br />
truth I was dying to have sex with her but always scared and think about the<br />
relationship between us. Most of my masturbation sessions in the bathroom that<br />
time were thinking about her only. I was just waiting for the right time and<br />
opportunity to have sex her. I was getting excited just by seeing her. Believe me she<br />
is so sexy and her body is well shaped.
</p>
<p>
One Friday morning I was sitting in my Bedroom and reading a Sex magazine I got<br />
it from my friend. My uncle went on a tour. (as usual). Aunt yelled &quot;Ravi , can you<br />
help me?I have to go to the Groceries.&quot; I went down the hall to her room. She was<br />
standing with her back to the mirror, looking at it over the shoulder. All she had on<br />
was her black skirt and white bra. Aunt &#8217;s got a pretty good figure. It&#8217;s<br />
complimented by her beautiful hair. She&#8217;s average height (I&#8217;m a little taller now),<br />
with great legs, and large breasts. She has mostly 36D cup bras in her drawers. She<br />
is always trying to do something about her butt although it looks OK to me. She had<br />
both hands behind her back, working on the bra hooks. Her boobs were pointed<br />
straight at me as she looked over her shoulder. I stopped at the door.
</p>
<p>
&quot;Come here and hook this will you? I&#8217;m late.&quot; She turned her back to me, still<br />
holding the ends of the bra straps. I stepped up behind her with my heart fluttering.<br />
I had seen my Aunt in her bra before but always just for a second as she crossed<br />
the hall or pulled on a sweater. Now I was standing right next to her and able to see<br />
the bra in detail. The bra had four metal hooks and one was bent down. I slipped a<br />
fingernail under it and lifted enough to get it hooked. She turned around with a<br />
blouse in one hand, and gave me a quick kiss on the cheek. She put the blouse on<br />
and buttoned it. During that brief period I was able to look right at her boobs in the<br />
bra cups. The bra was rather structured with lots stitching for reinforcing. The<br />
bottom half of each cup was solid fabric. The top half had panels of lace. I could see<br />
skin thru the lace. She disappeared down the hall and left home to the groceries.
</p>
<p>
That was the first time in my life I saw a female like that. That too my fantasy lady.<br />
That morning I had an Interview. Later in the afternoon she got home just as I did.<br />
She asked, &quot;How did the interview go?&quot; I said &quot;OK, they said they would get back<br />
to me.&quot; Aunt said &quot;Come and tell me all about It.&quot; as she walked to her room. She<br />
sat down on the bed and pulled her saree off. I was standing near the door. She<br />
stood up and walked to her closet unbuttoning her blouse. I was tempted to leave as<br />
she took it off and hung it up. She said, &quot; Well, what did they say? What type of job<br />
is it?&quot; &quot;They gave me some stuff to read. They want someone to stock sheaves in<br />
the evenings.&quot; I said, not really thinking about it. I was more interested in watching<br />
her. She was now dressed much as I had seen her that morning, with just the skirt<br />
and bra on. She reached back and tried to unclip it. I held my breath. Would she<br />
really take it off while I was there? She continued to struggle with the clip, her back<br />
still to me.
</p>
<p>
&quot;Darn, the hook is still stuck. Can you get it?&quot; I stepped forward again, always<br />
ready to assist. It was easy to unclip the bent hook but I took my time. &quot;Well, did<br />
you get the job?&quot; She stepped into the recess of the closet and dropped the bra off<br />
her shoulders. I was off to the side a little so I could see the side of one breast under<br />
her arm as she reached up for a nightie. What a sight it was. Her breasts hung<br />
down some and swayed as she moved. &quot;They look&#8230; Ah they&#8217;ll call me next week.&quot; I<br />
stammered. Aunt pulled the nightie over her, covering up.&quot;That&#8217;s wonderful.<br />
Thanks for helping.&quot; As I turned to go she threw the bra at me &quot;That&#8217;s one of my<br />
favorites. Can you fix it?&quot; I looked at it for a second and said &quot; OK&quot; smiling at her.<br />
she laughed, undid the nightie, opening it, and retying it. She had opened the nightie<br />
wide, enough for me to see both breasts and her black panties. The breasts were<br />
tipped with wide pink circles around the nipples. They were beautiful, even for the<br />
fraction of a second I saw them. The nipples themselves were flattened into the<br />
breast. The pink rings were maybe two inches across. The boobs sagged a little and<br />
were big enough to touch together. I had to leave quickly, feeling rush of heat in my<br />
crotch.
</p>
<p>
The next day, Saturday, Aunt was home all day so I didn&#8217;t even have a chance to<br />
jack off with her bra. I had played with her silky panties before but never tried her<br />
bras. The silk and nylon of her panties rubbing against my cock turned me on and I<br />
usually would cum quickly. I had to be careful not to get my cum on them. While I<br />
was fixing the hook, I felt and touched the entire bra, concentrating on the inside of<br />
the cups. Aunt had an early dinner ready for me. She was in her nightie, her hair in<br />
a towel. Her eyes were her best features, next to her tits, at least to me. Today, she<br />
had even put on lipstick. She didn&#8217;t put much makeup on when it was really hot but<br />
it would be cool in the theater. I sat down to eat, thankful that she would be gone so<br />
I could jack off without interruption.
</p>
<p>
&#8220;Ravi, did you fix my bra? Can you bring it here?&quot; Shit, she wanted it back. No<br />
problem, I could play with another bra when she left. I could see her from the back,<br />
sitting at her dresser as I walked down the hall to my room for the bra. It looked<br />
like she had on panties and inskirt over them. She was naked from the waist up,<br />
facing the mirror, doing her nails. Wonderful. I got it and walked into her room.<br />
She now had her hands up, blowing on the nails to dry them. From where I stood,<br />
her arms blocked her reflection in the mirror. I walked up behind her. Looking<br />
down over her head, I could see the reflection of the breasts perfectly. She said<br />
&quot;My nails are wet. Can you carefully put it over my arms for me? Careful.&quot; She<br />
raised her hands.
</p>
<p>
It took me several tries to get the bra right side up and all the straps straight. All the<br />
while I was staring at her tits. I was getting hard inside my lungi. The bra finally fell<br />
in place and I hooked it without being asked. She stood up and turned to face me.<br />
&quot;Close but not quite.&quot; she laughed. I was already looking at her tits. Neither one<br />
was in the cup. Both were half pinched out at the bottom. It looked like it hurt. She<br />
still had her hands up in the air, like a surgeon. &quot;Could you please pull the bra<br />
down?&quot; I hesitated a little trying to decide what to touch. I grabbed the straps<br />
under her arms and pulled. It didn&#8217;t work, she just leaned into me. I pulled on the<br />
center, between the cups and on the side. She fell on me again. She was laughing<br />
now. I suddenly felt very hot as my face turned red.
</p>
<p>
She said &quot;I&#8217;m sorry. Reach in back and unhook me and put it on right.&quot; To do this I<br />
had to put my arms around her, pressing my chest against her boobs. I unhooked it<br />
quickly. &quot;The girls will love you.&quot; She said, stepping back. I put one hand under a<br />
breast and pushed up, pulling the cup down over it. This was the first time I had<br />
ever felt the bare flesh of a tit. It felt soft but heavy. The underside was warm,<br />
maybe moist with sweat. My forehead was sweating and my heart was pounding. <span id="more-12"></span>I<br />
had gotten a hard-on. I was starting to hurt inside my pants, all cramped up like<br />
that. I had to leave. Aunt said. &quot;You did very well. I&#8217;m glad you helped me&#8230; &quot; Did<br />
she plan to talk all day? I almost said I liked touching her but instead &quot;It&#8217;s OK. I<br />
liked helping. Anytime.&quot; I mentally kicked myself. Why did I say that? Anytime,<br />
anytime, sure I&#8217;m willing to play with your tits anytime. I nearly ran out of the room<br />
as she pulled a saree.
</p>
<p>
Needless to say, once Aunt left, I got one of her bras and lay in bed jacking off. I<br />
had picked one with lots of lace on the top and satin on the sides. I rubbed the<br />
material over my hard-on, imagining that I was doing it between her boobs. I could<br />
feel the shape of her tits and smoothness of the fabric. It was great. I don&#8217;t think I<br />
had ever been so excited. When I came, I shot cum all over. I pulled the bra away<br />
just in time. Afterward, sweating from the late afternoon heat, I lay replaying the<br />
afternoon in my mind. I hadn&#8217;t forgotten what she looked like with the inskirt. I<br />
wondered what she would look like without the inskirt.
</p>
<p>
Sunday evening around 7&#180;o clock suddenly there was a power failure in the house. I<br />
heard my aunt&#8217;s voice. &quot;Ravi! This power cut is only in our house. See outside.<br />
Everywhere else the power is there. I think the fuse went off in our house. Could<br />
You please fix the fuse?&quot;. Now she was in the doorway to my bedroom. I hid the<br />
Sex magazine and went nearer to her. In that darkness itself I can see her breasts<br />
clearly. I can see her as a silhouette. I got the guts suddenly and asked her &quot;Gimme<br />
the match box&quot; and at the same time I grabbed her breasts. I was trying to act like<br />
that was accidental. But after I held her breasts and felt those in my hand I totally<br />
lost my control. So I started squeezing her breast hard. Then I said &quot;Sorry. In the<br />
darkness I havn&#8217;t noticed that you are standing here&quot; and tried to take my hands<br />
off her.
</p>
<p>
There was no reply from her and now she held my hands on her breasts and didn&#8217;t<br />
allow me to take my hands. Now that was my turn to be shocked and I do not want<br />
to miss this chance. I hugged her and kissed in her neck. I was very much tensed<br />
up. But she was cool and kissed me on the lips. That first kiss was really brief<br />
though in my whole life that was the first time a woman kissed me. Now she held me<br />
close to her and rubbing by back. Literally I was shivering and I was out of control.<br />
Again she kissed in my mouth and asked me to relax. Now I was responding<br />
properly to her kiss. I wrapped my arms around her and held her tight. Her big<br />
boobs were on my chest and she was pressing her breasts against me. That feeling<br />
was arousing me and felt like I am going to have a ejaculation.
</p>
<p>
My cock was getting harder and harder and started hitting her body. Now she took<br />
my penis in her hand with my shorts and said &quot; Wow! Great size. Let us go to the<br />
bedroom. I need it inside me now&quot; and licked my ears. That drove me crazy and<br />
started working my hands on her Blouse hooks. &quot;Ravi! Come on. We will go to the<br />
bedroom&quot; &quot;Oh. Yes. I want U. I am dreaming about this for a long while. Give me<br />
all U got&quot; I was mumbling something like this and with my one hand I was keep<br />
squeezing her breast and my other hand was pressing her big buttocks. I was out of<br />
control and licking her face and ears and everywhere my face can reach on her<br />
that time.Now she held my hands and walked me to the Bedroom.
</p>
<p>
As soon as we entered in to the bedroom she started removing her dresses. I said<br />
&quot;Aunty! Please let me do that &quot; and unwrapped her saree first. She told me &quot;Ravi!<br />
Even now U are calling me aunt. That sounds strange. Call me by name&quot;. I was so<br />
excited and hugged her tight from the back and mumbled her name in her ears as<br />
&quot;Banu! Banu!&quot; and pressing her breasts very hard with the blouse &amp; Bra. Same<br />
time my cock became like a strong iron rod and now it was touching her tight ass.<br />
&quot;Ravi! Let us remove the cloths and enjoy. Be patience &quot;. Now I have unfastened<br />
her blouse hooks and she helped me to take off the blouse from her. She is only with<br />
Bra and petticoat. Now she removed my lungie and held my cok in her hand.&quot;Ravi!<br />
Before going any further U just sit on the bed.&quot; She commanded me. I obeyed to<br />
her command.
</p>
<p>
Now I am sitting on the edge of the bed. She sat down on the floor and started<br />
kissing my cock, rubbing it and caressed it. All of the sudden She took it in her<br />
mouth and twirled her tongue around it. she tightened her grip on the back of my<br />
leg trying to get a hold of herself. She moved her head in close, parting her pouty<br />
lips she pushed them down. I let out a little gasp as my Aunt&#8217;s lips touched my skin,<br />
cock flexed again, some pre-cum was forming on the tip, my dick was aching, Aunt<br />
bent in closer to my thigh, her breasts rubbing againest the inside of my shin.
</p>
<p>
She was sucking hard, her wet lips pressed tightly to my leg, she pressed her tongue<br />
, she felt her breasts rubbing againest my lower leg, her sensitive nipples hardened<br />
becuase of it, she unconciously moved her other hand a little further up the back of<br />
my leg, cupping the bottom of my ass cheek. Banu started to rock her body<br />
againest my leg, her pussy throbbing with desire, she took her lips away from my<br />
swollen lump, but ran her hot, wet tongue over it, leaving a trail of saliva behind.<br />
&quot;Ohh!&quot; She really could&#8217;t help herself, the little moan escaped from her lips as she<br />
looked over her step son&#8217;s cock. &quot;Good Ravi&quot; she was still looking at my cock, she<br />
started to rub her hand over my bottom, feeling my hard ass cheeks. I looked down<br />
at my Aunt, I took my hand and ran it through her hair, I moved my hand to the<br />
back of her head and lightly took hold of her hair, pulling her up slightly to the level<br />
of my cock, her full, red pouty lips were barely an inch away from my cock as it<br />
jerked about, waving in front of her face, the pre-cum dribbling down the front of<br />
the full cockhead.
</p>
<p>
She did&#8217;t hesitate she opened her mouth, and ran her tongue along my cockhead,<br />
licking the white sperm from it, she raised her hand and gripped my cock shaft<br />
tightly, she tugged on it, pulling my foreskin back and forth, more pre-cum<br />
appeared on the tip and again she shot her tongue out and licked away the white<br />
droplets. It was feeling great. She started sucking my cock with great favor. I was in<br />
heaven. She was doing this with great care and taste. She got my Dick in to her<br />
month fully until her throat. Her hands were working on my balls. My hands were<br />
working hard on her breasts. I inserted my hands in to her bra and tuning her<br />
nipples. &quot;Ugghhhh!&quot; I moaned as my Aunt ran her tongue along the shaft and back<br />
again, I pushed her head towards my dick, she opened her mouth wide and took my<br />
huge cock into her mouth, she felt it hit the back of her throat almost and she<br />
started to suck on it extremely hard, her hand pulling my fore skin back and forth<br />
as she did. She closed her eyes tight, tasting my hot prick as she ran her tongue<br />
across the bottom of it.
</p>
<p>
&quot;Uughh Aunt! Suck It&quot; I urged, my dick pulsing in my own Aunt&#8217;s mouth, I gripped<br />
the back of her head tighter as she eagerly sucked my cock, bobbing her head back<br />
and forth in a fast rhytm. She was&#8217;t thinking about anything else but sucking my<br />
cock, she gripped my cockshaft tighter, working it faster. It was to much for me, I<br />
looked down watching my Aunt suck on my hard meat, I could feel her wet saliva all<br />
over the shaft, I was meeting her bobbing head with my own small thrusts, rocking<br />
my hips back and forth. &quot;Aunt I&#8217;m gonna cum!!&quot; I moaned, I felt my cum-sac<br />
welling up with my spunk. Banu moved her hand from my ass, and brought it round<br />
to cup my balls, she started to massage my tight sac, her nails digging into the skin<br />
as she took hold. &quot;Uuughhhh!&quot; was all I could say as my sticky white cum shot out<br />
the tip of my cock into my Aunt&#8217;s waiting mouth, I held onto the back of her head<br />
with both hands as I erupted. She slurped my hot cum, working her tongue over my<br />
sensitive thread on the underside as she swallowed hard the cum gushing down her<br />
throat, gripping my weaving cock with both hands now as I rocked my body in<br />
orgasm, &quot;Ohhh&#8230;That&#8217;s it!&quot; I cried out.
</p>
<p>
Finally my cock stopped pumping out the milky jizz, but she kept sucking, her<br />
tongue licking every last drop of cum off my dick, her whole body was red hot, she<br />
felt like she was on fire, she imagined me fucking her, pushing my cock into her until<br />
she was screaming for him to stop, her pussy went crazy at the thought her whole<br />
body filled with erotic sensation&#8217;s, some animal instinct was overcoming her. She<br />
took my now deflating cock from her mouth, she squeezed my cock hard, forcing<br />
the last of my sticky cum onto the tip, she ran her tongue over it, taking in the last<br />
of my salty cum. Then she stood up and looked at me, I had a contented smile on<br />
my face. Some of my cum was leaking from her mouth and sprinkled on her boobs.
</p>
<p>
I was exhilarated and grabbed her from the floor. I put her on the bed. I evenly<br />
spred my cum sprinkles on her bra and started massaging her breasts. Now I pulled<br />
her petticoat shift her hips and now I had a good view of her wet hot pussy. The<br />
pubic hair was dark and thick. I took my face nearer to that heavenly triangle. The<br />
strong sweet musk from her cunt drove me mad. I stuck my face into her pussy and<br />
took a deep breath to absorb her scent. She moaned and said &quot; Ravi! Do it. Please<br />
eat my pussy. I have never enjoyed that &quot;. I ran my tongue up along the slit. I felt a<br />
pleasant shock. I went mad with lust. My tongue pnightied inside her cunt. At the<br />
same time I unfastened her Bra hooks and she co operated with me to remove the<br />
bra. I was feeling her breasts and pinching her nipples. my face was focussed on her<br />
pussy and my hands were playing too hard with her nipples. I was squeezing her<br />
nipples like tuning an old radio.
</p>
<p>
Her body was responding to my hands. Her legs became wider and the smooth<br />
pinky muscles of her pussy grabbed my tongue and pulled me in. I found the clit<br />
and my tongue began licked up, around and socked on it. Her Vagina started giving<br />
me fresh juice. I lapped and socked up the love juice Banu was giving me. She<br />
started to moan. &quot;Eat it. Huh! Great. Have it fully. &quot; I put my mouth in her pussy<br />
fucking hole and sucked it. Her whole body was feeling that electricity. She held my<br />
hair and pushed my face fully in to her cunt. I was licking and sucking like a dog<br />
drinking milk. She became ecstatic and I did not stop eating her pussy or pressing<br />
her breast. Now she had a orgasm and filled my face with her sexy juice. I didn&#8217;t<br />
give up and drunk all the juice and licked in and around her Clit, Vagina and pubic<br />
hair. &quot;Ravi! I never enjoyed this much. I only heard about oral sex and Ur uncle<br />
never used to do this to me. U showed me the real climax. Are u ready to fuck me<br />
now? &quot;
</p>
<p>
My reply to her was not in words. I was again feeling her breasts and pinching her<br />
nipples real hard and I focussed my attention to her boobs. I took them in my<br />
mouth and started sucking them . While doing this, I inserted a finger into her hot<br />
wet pussy. I kept fingering her and touched and pinched her clit. She held my dick<br />
in her hand and said &quot;Oh! My God! U are ready already. Thatz Quick. Ok. Take<br />
me.&quot; My fingering went on and after a while she started to cum. I had gotten a<br />
great hard on till now. She laid on her back and told me to fuck. She got her legs up<br />
in the air and wide open. She whispered &quot; Oh Ravi! Enough. Don&#8217;t let me beg U.<br />
Get inside me and Fuck me, Fuck me hard.&quot;
</p>
<p>
I got on top of her. The lips of the pussy were pink. I felt that sweetest hole with my<br />
fingers and then slowly guided my cock inside her. her hole was hot. Her head went<br />
back with pleasure and she moaned. &quot;Come on. Please! I can&#8217;t wait anymore&quot;. I<br />
started slowly and headed up with speed and steady. It was quiet an effort though.<br />
She held my arms tight and strted to jump under me. I was moving from up to<br />
down at I same time she was holding her hip up and pressing her butt against the<br />
bed to accompany my moves. Her breast was jumping up and down with every hit.
</p>
<p>
My cock was parted her pussy and she was already wet. So my movements became<br />
easy. She was not new to sex and already her pussy was accustomed to my Uncle&#8217;s<br />
cock. So we both were having great pleasure. We were sweating like hell because of<br />
our exotic and erotic sex. I began thrusting my cock in and out of her. I was shoving<br />
harder and harder. Her hot cunt felt wonderful. She was holding my butt tight and<br />
after a few moments she started &quot; Please slow down. It hurts Ravi.&quot; That time I<br />
was acting like wild buffalo. She was begging for me to slow down but she never<br />
stopped responding to my hits. Her legs were wide open in V shape and she was<br />
hugging me real tight. Both were breathing heavily.
</p>
<p>
While I was giving a real hard time to her pussy with my cock, I was sucking, licking<br />
and squeezing her breasts. Now she began to tighten her mouth of the pussy by<br />
holding her legs together. That was hard and great pleasure to me. It became more<br />
tight now and she got her orgasm. I sensed her she was bout to cum. Her whole<br />
body is stumbling and struggling with great happiness. With in few moments I felt<br />
her juices flowing in her already wet cunt. Now her pussy became like water filled<br />
tub. So whenever my cock entered in to it strange sounds started coming. Now I<br />
exploded my cum in her. Her cunt hole was filled with her juice and mine. It started<br />
overflow. More of the juices were oozing out of Banu&#8217;s pussy onto the bed sheets. I<br />
stayed inside her about 1 minute and then slowly pulled my dong out side. She was<br />
beautiful seeing her there naked. We both were damn tired and I laid down beside<br />
her.
</p>
<p>
This is the first time I came to my sense and started thinking, with in the past 20<br />
minutes. I was feeling guilty about our relationship. She is my mom&#8217;s sister. So she is<br />
like a stepmother to me. I said &quot;Sorry. Aunt! I made a mistake by having sex with U.<br />
This will never happen again. Shit. I am like a son to U. But I have fucked U without<br />
thinking the relationship&quot; She held my hand and said &quot;Never think that I am Ur<br />
aunt here after. What we did was not wrong. I never had a orgasm with Ur Uncle<br />
and he wouldn&#8217;t give a damn about satisfying me. All he he did was whenever he felt<br />
like fucking me, he used to go inside me and with in a few moments he will fill me<br />
with his cum and depart. That to only a couple of times in a month. I was<br />
desperately longing enjoy good sex. I knew that U were fantasying with me by how<br />
U were starring on my body. That is why I planned for this night and took off the<br />
fuse and had this ecstasy with U. Don&#8217;t be so hard on Urself. Just treat me as a<br />
woman not as Ur mom&#8217;s sister.&quot; I was so surprised by her open hearted talk. &quot;My<br />
Sweet Aunty!. Ok. I need U forever&quot; Now again I was holding her in my arms.
</p>
<p>
After the first fuck and her openhearted talk we both were exhausted. I put on my<br />
lungie, went and and fixed the fuse which she took off and kept it on the table.<br />
When I came back to Bedroom She was still laying down on the bed, fully naked.<br />
That was the first time I had an opportunity see her beautiful naked body. Wow!<br />
Curly hair. Sharp nose. Big and beautiful eyes. Sexy lips. Her throat looked like it is<br />
made of ivory. Slightly inclined but not loosened big cup shaped 36 size Breasts. Well<br />
shaped belly. The belly button itself looked like a cunt. &gt;From the belly button her<br />
pubic hair started. That pubic hair got dense and smooth like velvet when it started<br />
covering her Vulva. In the middle of that beautiful hair pond, there it started. That<br />
heavenly slit. Strong but really smooth thighs looked like it was made of butter.
</p>
<p>
I forgot about everything else and her breath taking Body occupied my whole mind.<br />
I told her &quot;Wow! Ur body is great. At the age of 28 and after got fucked by uncle<br />
for the past 7 years also U look fresh and acting like a Virgin in bed&quot;. &quot;Huh! for Ur<br />
age, U are too good in fucking, Ravi. Really I am not simply praising U. I never had<br />
sex like this before. I was dreaming about having successful sex with somebody. But<br />
I was worried about the society. But now no one will never ever dream that U and<br />
me are having sex, because of our relationship. So We are safe. Ok. Cut of this<br />
crap. Are U ready for the next round?&quot; She asked me and pulled me on the bed.
</p>
<p>
Now I have already removed my shorts and I was butt naked. She made me to lay<br />
on my back. She started caressing my body. Rubbing my whole body and tickling<br />
my cock. Then she came on top of me with her legs in the side of my body and put<br />
her Pussy directly on my face and started rubbing her juicy pussy on my face. I<br />
found that she is very much liked, me licking her cunt. So with out hesitation I<br />
started eating her pussy. She was pushing her pussy on my face. I reached her<br />
breasts and held them tight and squeezing them. Her hand was working on my dick.<br />
Now she was in ecstasy and lost control. She was rubbing my Dick real hard. It<br />
started paining for me even though that was a kind of happiness. Now she slid on<br />
my body and her pussy took position against my Cock. She was rubbing my dick<br />
with her Vagina.
</p>
<p>
My dick became as an iron rod again and standing. She held my dick in her hand<br />
and directed my cock to her wet juicy cunt. She sat on my laps now. Thatz it. My<br />
Cock entered in to her. Then she started moving up and down and started acting<br />
like a Grinder running. I kissed on her mouth and pressing her jumping breasts so<br />
hard. My cock was splitting her pussy in to parts and she was moving like she<br />
wanted to break my Dick. &quot;Ssssh. huh! Humma! That is good. Hold on to that<br />
Ravi&quot; She was mumbling. I was holding her body with my legs. Her body was<br />
shivering and shaking. I found that she was going to cum. I cooperated with her to<br />
get her orgasm. She was in climax and her body started leaking Sex juices and at<br />
the same time I gunned my cum in her. Both of our juices started flowing from her<br />
cunt and that made my Cock, balls and hip wet.
</p>
<p>
Now she just laid on me. The thought of having her naked next to me was really<br />
driving me crazy. What happened that night amazed me and still couldn&#8217;t believe it.<br />
I wrapped my arms around her body and slowly and smoothly rubbing it. All of the<br />
sudden the thought of having my cock in her mouth and getting a nice blow job<br />
occurred to me. I got up and sat on her chest. My Butt was on her Boobs and that<br />
felt like sitting on a Velvet soft couch. I started rubbing my dick on her throat.<br />
&quot;Ravi! What are U doing?&quot; She was asking me. &quot;Banu! Please take mine in Ur<br />
mouth. I like it very much. Could U please?&quot; &quot;Why not? Whatever U say. U like it<br />
very much. Huh! But please do not throb it in my mouth. U are really getting tensed<br />
up and loosing control during Oral sex. Last time when U were eating mine, U bit it<br />
once&quot;.
</p>
<p>
Now my Cock was getting harder and I rubbed it on her lips. She first took the<br />
head of my cock in her mouth and licking it with her wet hot lips and then she took<br />
it fully in to her mouth and started moving her head in and out. Wow. That felt real<br />
good and I was rubbing my bare butt on her breast. I grabbed her hair and held<br />
her head and started moving my hip. Now I was fucking in her mouth. Her mouth<br />
was full with my dick and I started moving pretty fast. She was having hard time in<br />
keeping my erected dick in her mouth and trying to spit it out. But I held her real<br />
hard and treated her mouth as pussy and hitting hard. In a few moments I filled<br />
her mouth with my cum and pulled mine out of her mouth. &quot;Ravi!Ur&#8217;s is reaching<br />
until my throat. So Please don&#8217;t be so wild&quot;.
</p>
<p>
After one hour we had one more round and slept hugging each other nude. Next<br />
day morning when I got up from bed time was 9:00 a.m. She was not with me on<br />
the bed. She was in the kitchen preparing Breakfast. She already took bath and<br />
wearing a Yellow See-through saree and matching yellow blouse with a black bra.<br />
Even her Blouse was too thin and itz showing her Black bra and wonderful<br />
cleavage. I made it again a glance on her boobs. Her nipples were hardened and<br />
straighten because of the satisfactory fuck she got it from me the previous night. I<br />
can see how straight her nipples were with in the blouse and bra. I got my morning<br />
woods by seeing her. I went behind her with out making noise and hugged her from<br />
the back, grabbed her boobs, smoothly kissed on her neck and rubbing my swollen<br />
Dick on her round ass. She turned and asked &quot;U are up now?&quot;. I am up and my<br />
Dick is also up. How about having a morning show? &quot; I asked her by showing my<br />
hardened Dick to her. &quot;Oh God! U are ready to drill me now! No. Go take bath and<br />
have Breakfast first. Then we will think about Morning show&quot;. I told her I want to<br />
fuck her now. &quot;Please Ravi! Having sex during day time is not advisable for us.<br />
Somebody may come home&quot; I insisted for one shot. She was bit hesitant though she<br />
agreed and said &quot;Ok. as U wish. But do not remove my cloths. Just shift my dress<br />
and have it. That way if some one is coming to the house also we can manage in a<br />
little time. Come on let us go to the bedroom. We have to make it fast.&quot;. &quot;No not in<br />
the bed room. Right here and right now&quot; &quot;Are U crazy? U want to have it here ?&quot;<br />
&quot;Shh. Don&#8217;t talk just lean on the Kitchen table and hold to the sink&quot;.
</p>
<p>
I shifted her Saree and Petticoat above her hips and and made her show the clean<br />
hot pussy to me. Now I said &quot;This time not on Ur pussy. I am going to screw Ur<br />
asshole&quot;. She was shocked, turned around and said &quot;No way! That will be really<br />
painful with Ur Cock&#8217;s size&quot;. But I was not listening to her. &quot;Just turn around and<br />
show me Ur Ass. &quot; She was reluctant &quot;Please no. Whatever U want to do, do with<br />
me except ass fucking. Try to understand me. I never got fucked in the ass&quot;. I said<br />
&quot;Yesterday U told me U never had oral sex and Me licking and eating Ur pussy was<br />
new to U. But U enjoyed it. Am I right? It will be like the same. U will love it&quot;I<br />
forced her to show her ass to me. She turned around and ready for getting fucked<br />
in her ass. Her ass was big and round.
</p>
<p>
I kissed her ass and started licking those two big muscle mountains. I moved my<br />
tongue in the crack of her ass. I slid my fingers in her pussy and got her juices on<br />
my fingers. I then wetted her asshole with her own juices. I pushed two wet fingers<br />
in her asshole and greased it properly. She was groaning. My cock stood firm, and<br />
she squeezed it. Turning me loose, she leaned over the table, her sweet, naked ass<br />
on display. I stared at her ass. Aunt looked extremely lewd to me. She cupped the<br />
cheeks of her ass, pulling them wide open. I gasped as I saw her puckered asshole,<br />
the curls of soft hair beneath, and the puffy sweetness of her cunt. &quot;It&#8217;s so pretty,<br />
Aunt,&quot; I grunted, my cock jerking up and down. &quot;You have a pretty ass. You look<br />
awfully tight, though.&quot;
</p>
<p>
I gulped wetly, and leaned down to her ass. I kissed a creamy asscheek, and She<br />
gurgled with delight. &quot;Oooh, lick it a little,&quot; she urged, wiggling her ass. &quot;Lick<br />
Aunt&#8217;s ass just a little.&quot; I, becoming eager, slipped my tongue out of my mouth and<br />
lapped the satiny cheeks of my Aunt&#8217;s ass, swirling my tongue along the backs of<br />
her thighs, tasting her flesh. She cried out with pleasure, her ass shaking. She used<br />
her fingers to hold the lovely cheeks wide open for me, her asshole puckering in and<br />
out. With an intake of air, I shoved my face into my Aunt&#8217;s ass, feeling my satiny<br />
inner cheeks. I kissed the pucker of my Aunt&#8217;s asshole, bringing a sob of delight<br />
from her. She shoved her ass into my face, and began to make soft cries of ecstasy<br />
when I licked my tongue against the crinkled ring. Placing my hands on my Aunt&#8217;s<br />
trembling thighs, I probed her asshole with the tip of my tongue. She hissed and<br />
mewled and squirmed into my face. &quot;Ohhh, darling, shove your tongue up! &#8220;<br />
Shaking her ass into my face, she held her breath as she felt I &#8217;s tongue stiffen,<br />
pushing at her tight asshole. As my tongue slipped past the ring, she cried out softly.<br />
I clutched my Aunt&#8217;s shaking thighs, pressing my open lips around my Aunt&#8217;s<br />
asshole, my chin pushing into the juicy slit of her cunt. I ran my tongue in and out of<br />
her asshole, stabbing as deep as I could. She gurgled and sobbed, wiggling her<br />
naked ass into my face. With me fucking her up the asshole with my tongue, her<br />
cunt was becoming wetter and wetter. In face, the slippery juices dripped past my<br />
chin and ran over my neck. &quot;Ahhh, darling, darling!&quot; she cried out, smashing her<br />
ass back against my face. I &#8217;s tongue was deep inside my Aunt&#8217;s ass when She<br />
suddenly shrieked. &quot;Oh, God! I&#8217;m coming, darling!&quot;
</p>
<p>
Her cunt convulsed, the rippling contractions causing her ass to suck my tongue. I<br />
pushed my tongue as hard and deep as I could into my Aunt&#8217;s fiery ass, and felt it<br />
grip tightly time and again as her orgasm boiled through her body. When she had<br />
finished coming, I slowly slipped tongue out of her ass. For a long while She<br />
remained over the table, her body shaking with a wonderful sensation. She was no<br />
longer resisting and kind of anticipating what comes next, letting her arms hang<br />
loosely. I fondled her ass, squeezing the creamy cheeks, opening them to see the<br />
flexing of her asshole. Glistening cunt juices coated her inner thighs. &quot;I know your<br />
cock is very hard,&quot; She finally whispered. &quot;It&#8217;s hard as hell, Aunt,&quot; I replied. I<br />
pushed the swollen head of my cock to my Aunt&#8217;s flesh. I rubbed the dripping piss<br />
hole up and down her thighs, over the cheeks of her ass. She shook and trembled<br />
with the feeling, shoving her ass back eagerly. I placed the head of my cock upon<br />
her asshole, and gasped with the steaming heat of it. &quot;Ooooh, that feels huge,&quot; she<br />
murmured as she felt the pressure against her asshole. I increased the pressure of<br />
my cock, staring down, seeing the ring of my Aunt&#8217;s asshole giving way. The more I<br />
pushed, the more She&#8217;s asshole stretched. She was holding her breath, feeling that<br />
wonderful pressure and sensation. It was strange, a very strange feeling, to have<br />
cock pushing at her asshole, but one she found exciting and delicious.
</p>
<p>
She moved her naked ass back, urging me to push my cock in. I pressed harder,<br />
and the swollen head of my cock penetrated the tight ring of my Aunt&#8217;s asshole.<br />
&quot;Ahhhh,!&quot; She cried out. &quot;You&#8217;re in me! &quot; I stared down, seeing the ring of my<br />
Aunt&#8217;s asshole stretched around the head of my cock. It was very tight, very hot. I<br />
gasped with pleasure as my Aunt&#8217;s asshole squeezed my prick, gripping it deliciously.<br />
She sobbed with rapture, finding my cock in her ass to feel very good. The<br />
sensations rippled her flesh as she pulled her creamy ass cheeks wider yet. She<br />
made a soft swallowing sound as her asshole clamped on the head of my cock.<br />
&quot;Ohhh,!&quot; she pleaded softly. I slipped my prick deeper, watching it with wide eyes.<br />
The heat in my Aunt&#8217;s asshole was very hot, searing the shaft of my cock. It was as<br />
hot as her juicy cunt, and so much tighter. I pushed my throbbing cock slowly<br />
inward, watching it disappear into her ass. I was breathless with excitement, with<br />
the rumbling sensations I was feeling.
</p>
<p>
She purred as I moved my cock deeper into her asshole. She could feel the<br />
throbbing the hardness of my shaft. Her asshole kept stretching and burning<br />
around my prick. I was now invading her un invented ass. I forced my way into her<br />
Virgin tight ass. The deeper it went, the better it felt. When I finally had my cock<br />
completely inside her asshole, she felt stuffed, very stuffed. My sweet balls were<br />
pushed against the slippery wetness of her hairy cunt, she could feel the powerful<br />
pulsations of my cock with the ring of her asshole. She found her clit with her hand<br />
to be straining out with hardness, and brushed it with her fingers. Her naked,<br />
creamy ass wiggled as she slipped her hand past her cunt and pulled my alls,<br />
smashing them upon the sensitive lips of her fiery cunt. &quot;God Ravi !&quot; she moaned. &quot;<br />
You feel so huge, so long and hard! &quot; I pulled back slowly, watching my cock slide<br />
inside the tight pucker. She cried out as I pulled, feeling the friction. One of her<br />
hands kept pulling at a shapely cheek of her ass, the other letting my balls slid in her<br />
fingers. When I had paused with the head of my cock inside her asshole, she gasped<br />
loudly and plunged her fingers into her bubbling, steaming cunt, fucking herself<br />
wildly a few moments, her naked ass shaking with excitement.
</p>
<p>
As I pushed my cock back into her ass, she cried softly as my sweet, hot balls<br />
rubbed into her now-wet palm again. She grasped them, squeezing as my cock filled<br />
her ass once more. &quot;Ooooh,!&quot; she sobbed. &quot;You be careful with me! Come on, Ravi<br />
, Finish it fast!&quot; I plunged inward, a soft slapping sound coming when my lower<br />
body smacked the hot cheeks of her curvy ass. She yelped with pleasure, enjoying<br />
the power of my hardness up her ass. Placing my hands on her hips, I pulled my<br />
cock back slowly, and rammed it in quickly and fast. She groaned with delight as my<br />
balls smacked against her juicy cunt. &quot;That&#8217;s it, I ! That&#8217;s the way ! Oooooh!&quot; She<br />
jiggled her ass, dancing from foot to foot, her tits smashed upon the table. She drew<br />
her other hand from between her thighs, rubbing her very long clit a few times, and<br />
clutched her ass cheeks once more. She spread her ass as wide as she could,<br />
opening it to my quickening thrusts. The wider she opened her ass, the deeper my<br />
cock went. Her pussy pulsated hotly, and juice seeped from the hairy lips, running<br />
along her inner thighs. Her clit strained out, very long and hard, throbbing<br />
deliciously. She wiggled her ass lewdly, crying out for me to fuck her faster and<br />
harder. The friction of my throbbing cock along the ring of her thoroughly<br />
stretched asshole seemed ready to burst into flames, flames of perverse, wanton<br />
ecstasy. She humped her ass back as I came lunging forward, grinding her sweet<br />
asscheeks against me.
</p>
<p>
She sobbed with increasing rapture, her almost naked body vibrant with passion.<br />
The feel of my cock up her asshole was better than she could have imagined. The<br />
depth might have surprised her, pleased her. The puckering of her asshole excited<br />
both her and me . Her asshole squeezed and flexed by its own accord, without<br />
direction from her already spinning mind. The wetness of her cunt seemed more<br />
pronounced than ever, the juices making the inside of her thighs slippery. Her<br />
bushy cunt was throbbing and her clit felt as if it were about to burst from her<br />
cunt. She shook her ass wildly. With my balls aching, loaded and full, I rammed my<br />
cock in and out of my Aunt&#8217;s fiery asshole. She sobbed and squealed in delight,<br />
arching back to meet my prick. My balls slapped time and again upon her juicy,<br />
hair-rimmed cunt, sending ripples of heated rapture through her body. I dug my<br />
fingers into my Aunt&#8217;s grinding hips hard. She clawed the cheeks of her ass, her<br />
fingers near my cock, holding herself lewdly open for me. &quot;I&#8217;m about to come!&quot; she<br />
shrieked.
</p>
<p>
&quot;OhOoooh, I feel it so deep in me! Ram it &#8230; ram that!&quot; I beat my cock in and out<br />
of her asshole, feeling it start to clutch and release him. My eyes became glazed with<br />
passion, my young body shaking as hard as my Aunt&#8217;s. My legs were getting weak<br />
as the ecstasy ran through him. &#8220; Aunt, I&#8217;m about to come, too! I can&#8217;t hold it back,<br />
Aunt!&quot; &quot;Oh, shoot it Ravi !&quot; she screeched. &quot;Squirt that hot juice! Ohhh, now,<br />
&#8211;now!&quot; She&#8217;s cunt exploded, the orgasm bursting throughout the whole expanse of<br />
her crotch. Her clit pulsated hard, the lips of her cunt gripping at my banging balls.<br />
Her asshole began to squeeze and suck my prick. With a yelp, I rammed my cock as<br />
deep as I could into my Aunt&#8217;s asshole, and sent rapid squirts of thick cum juice<br />
spraying between the soft walls of her greedy asshole. She cried with ecstasy as she<br />
felt my cum juice flooding her ass, her cunt flexing with tight, searing pulsations. A<br />
series of orgasms rumbled through her, one after the other, until she became so<br />
weak she slumped across the table, her hands falling from her ass, her body<br />
relaxing, gasping hotly. Her eyes were closed .I asked her &#8220;How do U feel? &quot;Oh, my<br />
god, are you all right&quot; I said. She got up and said &quot;My God! At one moment I<br />
thought U are going to tore my ass.&quot; That moment she felt tired and sat on the<br />
kitchen floor. I forced my juice covered cock in her mouth and made her gave a<br />
nice fresh blow job in that morning crisp.
</p>
<p>
Then one week we were enjoying a lot. That weekend my Uncle came back from his<br />
Tour. Two days without having her I was going crazy. My Uncle was telling<br />
Monday early morning he is supposed to leave again for a tour. Monday morning I<br />
got up early at 5:30. I couldn&#8217;t sleep at all. I heard my Uncle ws getting ready to go<br />
to work, he&#8217;d got up and I could hear him humming to himself, as he usually did<br />
while he was shaving. She heard the sink empty in the bathroom as her husband<br />
finished shaving. &quot;You awake yet Banu?&quot; I heard my Uncle asked. &quot;Just about&quot;<br />
she replied. &quot;I&#8217;m just gonna take a shower&quot; Uncle said, I heard the shower go on.<br />
Quickly I had a plan. I walked up to their Bed Room. &quot;Aunt, you awake?&quot; &quot;Yes<br />
Ravi, what did you want?&quot;. She replied. &quot;Could I come in?&quot; I asked. Before she<br />
could answer, I opened the door. I shut the bedroom door behind me, the room<br />
was quite dark the curtains still closed, but a fraction of light slipped through, it<br />
shone on the bed, I could see my Aunt lying under the sheets she looked as though<br />
she was lying on her chest. I walked over to the curtains, opening them to reveal<br />
bright morning sunshine. Banu turned over onto her front, pulling the covers of the<br />
duvet up around herself, barely keeping her head above the top.
</p>
<p>
I heard her husband, sing louder in the shower. &quot;Uncle taking a shower?&quot; &quot;Yes&quot;<br />
she replied. &quot;Well then, my cock-sucking Aunt&#8217;s all alone in this big double bed,<br />
thinking about my cock again?&quot;. I smiled very wickedly looking at my Aunt with<br />
hungry, horny eyes. &quot;Oh my god, &#8230;&#8230;&#8230;Ravi, No!&quot; I had grabbed hold of the corner<br />
of the duvet and was pulling it towards me, the sheet sliding down, off my Aunt&#8217;s<br />
naked body, Banu tried to hang onto the duvet, but I ripped it from her grasp,<br />
dropping it on the floor by the bed. I looked over my Aunt&#8217;s delicious body, her<br />
round, full breasts looked like they are fresh. Her hips were quite large, which just<br />
made her waist look even smaller than it was, I looked down at my Aunts bush, the<br />
dark black hair was trimmed around the edges into a diamond shape, her legs were<br />
spread slightly and I could see her pussy lips, they looked quite large, hanging down<br />
between her thighs, they a dark pink in colour. Her full, tanned thighs were<br />
smooth.Banu saw me looking over her body, studying her every curve, she could still<br />
hear her husband singing in the shower.A little sexual shiver ran up her spine at the<br />
thought. I came over to the bed and sat on the edge, right next to my naked Aunt,<br />
she had&#8217;t moved at all, her arms lay by her sides, her breast&#8217;s jiggled slightly as she<br />
breathed hard from the excitement. I placed my hand on her tummy, I started to<br />
move my fingers slightly, just rubbing them on my Aunt skin, feeling her breath in<br />
and out. Me touching her sent what felt like electrical charges running through her,<br />
her pulsed increased even more and she opened her full, pouty lips as she started to<br />
breath harder. &quot;You want me to fuck you Aunt, righ now, right here?&quot; I<br />
questioned, I began to move my hand up her flat stomach, pressing my fingers into<br />
her smooth skin, moving my hand up towards her breasts. &quot;Wh&#8230;.What?&quot; Banu<br />
gasped, I was pushing all the right buttons now, my touch was setting her pussy on<br />
fire. &quot;Last night I heard you demanded Uncle to fuck you, but he couldn&#8217;t do it<br />
right.&quot;. I stopped my hand just below my Aunt&#8217;s right breast, I moved a finger up<br />
onto it, tracing a small mole she had just below her nipple. &quot;Ohhhhh!&quot;. Banu<br />
moaned out, My finger rubbing on her breast caused her to arch her back, pushing<br />
her body upwards as another sexual sensation ran through her. &quot;Was that a yes?&quot;<br />
I said, I moved up onto her nipple now, teasing it between my fingers, I moved my<br />
other hand to the inside of her smooth thigh nearest him, again rubbing my fingers<br />
in small circular motions.
</p>
<p>
&quot;Uuuugghh!&quot; was all Banu could say in reply to her me. I work her nipple with my<br />
fingers, the pleasure was intense, she was getting very excited now, the thought of<br />
me doing this to her again made her pussy juices flow. I moved my hand further up<br />
her thigh, my fingers coming into contact with her black, wiry bush,I traced my<br />
fingers round the edge, feeling the heat coming from between her legs.I bent over<br />
my Aunt&#8217;s naked, sexy ody and licked her left nipple with my tongue, while still<br />
teasing her left with my fingers. &quot;Yes&#8230;..Yessssss! Fuck Me!&#8230;.I want you to<br />
fuuuccckkk me!&quot; Banu screamed, my wet tongue running over her sensitive nipple.<br />
had she ever felt this horny before? She did&#8217;t think so, her pussy was dribbling with<br />
anticipation eager for me to fill her with my massive cock and to fuck her wildly. I<br />
heard the shower go off in the bathroom, but still, she lay there letting me have my<br />
way with her body. &quot;Ravi&#8230;.your&#8230;Ohh!&#8230;your Uncle s going to be in..Uuhhh! here<br />
any second&quot; she whispered scared her husband might hear her. &quot;Well I&#8217;m not<br />
going, I&#8217;m going to fuck you right here, he can watch if he wants.&quot; I said defiantly.<br />
&quot;No&#8230;.we can&#8217;t&#8230;.no plea-ahhhh..se stop&quot;. Banu begged me, Uncle would be out<br />
any second, what would he do if he was confronted with this sight! I had traced my<br />
finger round my Aunt&#8217;s entire pussy bush, now I pushed his hand up further,<br />
through the dense hairs, using my thumb and index finger to spread her pussy lips<br />
wide,I started to push my forefinger into my Aunt&#8217;s wet, hot cunt,I felt her pussy<br />
spasming, the muscles tightening a bit then releasing,I moved my finger in deeper<br />
trying to locate the small nub of her clit.
</p>
<p>
Banu&#8217;s hips jerked off the bed, as me pushed my thick, long finger deep into her<br />
pussy, she dropped her head back, leaning againest the headboard, closing her eyes<br />
tight as the pleasure took hold. &quot;Banu! I will be back only after a week or so. &quot;.<br />
Uncle shouted out from in the bathroom. &quot;Yesssss&#8230;&#8230;Ohhhh.k&quot; Banu said trying to<br />
keep her voice normal, as she started to push her body back and forth onto my<br />
finger inserted in her pussy. &quot;I no more please!&quot; Banu murmured. &quot;I&#8217;m not going<br />
Aunt&quot; .I replied Banu panicked, if I was&#8217;t going to leave she&#8217;d have to, she just<br />
could&#8217;t let her husband see them doing this. she leaned up off the headboard and<br />
pushed me back off the bed and onto the floor, she jumped from the bed and ran<br />
out the bedroom door and down the hallway, her big, firm ass cheeks bouncing up<br />
and down in time with her jiggling breasts as she ran to the stairs, she have to get<br />
some clothes from upstairs before her husband asked her what she was doing<br />
running round the house naked. I got up off the bedroom floor and followed my<br />
Aunt.
</p>
<p>
Banu made it to upstairs, a pile of her clothes were stacked up on top of the table in<br />
the corner waiting to be ironed, she was just picking out a nightie when she felt<br />
some hands grab her hips, she felt something hard pressing into her naked ass<br />
cheeks, one of the hands moved there way from her hip and round towards her<br />
pussy, the other hand moved off her hip and was brushed along her spine towards<br />
her neck, her black, long, wavy air pushed to one side and then she felt hot, wet lips<br />
kissing her on the back of the neck, she liked that alot, the stimulation was getting<br />
her hot again. &quot;Mmmmmm!&quot; Banu groaned. &#8220;I think it&#8217;s time for fucking Aunt<br />
after a long two days wait&quot; .I said into her ear. &quot;Yes&#8230;.fuck me..now!&quot;. She<br />
demanded. The way I was touching her and where to touch her, particulary the<br />
way I was slowly rubbing her pussy, making her juices flow made her mind blow.<br />
&quot;Mmmmm! You Got it!&quot; Banu squealed, I had rubbed my finger over her swollen<br />
clit. The erotic sensations as I rubbed it again, led straight to her brain, as the force<br />
of her hidden desire rose to the surface. Her legs shook as again I started to rub on<br />
her clit in small circles, slowly at first then I became gradually faster, and faster.
</p>
<p>
Banu leaned forward, moving her legs apart, the Table was directly in front of her<br />
and she placed her hands on the edge, bending her legs slightly she lifted her sexy,<br />
pink ass high into the air and pushed back onto my cock as it strained againest my<br />
shorts, she rubbed her bottom slowly againest the hot, stiff bulge pressing<br />
inbetween her butt cheeks. &quot;Oh my! You feel like your ready to go!&quot; Banu gasped.<br />
My cock was rock hard, I was almost in pain as my big tool pushed hard through<br />
my thin shorts, as my horny Aunt moved her ass from side to side against it.Since<br />
I&#8217;d ripped the sheets from my Aunt&#8217;s bed and looked down upon her sweet, white<br />
body he&#8217;d had a full-on erection, and now here I was, my Aunt offering herself on a<br />
plate to me, teasing my cock with her ass. I placed my hands firmly on my Aunts<br />
sexy ass, bending down I ran my tongue from the small of her back down over the<br />
slope of her ass cheeks and then pushed my hot, wet tongue inbetween them,<br />
probing her crevice. &quot;Mmmmm&#8230;&#8230;please&#8230;.Uhh..stop teasing Aunt&#8230;&#8230;I<br />
ne..Ohhhhh!..need you insideeee me!&quot; Banu screamed, I was pulling open her ass<br />
cheeks firmly and again my tongue pushed between her firm ass cheeks, the tip<br />
brushing her small, pink asshole. &quot;Fucccckkkk.me now!&quot; she ordered. How could I<br />
refuse my cock-hungry Aunt? I took my hands away from her body, and pulled my<br />
shorts down, my cock springing from my shorts like an eager greyhound from the<br />
trap, it almost shot straight up, my cock had a weird curve in it, rather like a<br />
banana. &quot;My God!&quot; .Banu gasped She&#8217;d looked over her shoulder after I had taken<br />
my hands away and her eyes widened as she saw me rip down my shorts, my big,<br />
thick curved cock springing free, forcing up the front of my vest as it did, my face<br />
filled with eagerness to fuck my own Aunt. She thought he&#8217;d looked and felt big last<br />
night, but now I looked an even bigger boy she thought.
</p>
<p>
Banu lifted her ass higher into the air, her tits wobbled as she did, she was still<br />
slowly shaking her ass from left to right, her hairy, pussy lips slick with her juices<br />
were clearly visible to me she thought, her cunt throbbed harder as she waited for<br />
him to penentrate her with my fine cock. I took hold of my blood-veined shaft with<br />
my right hand, I moved forwards towards my Aunts expectant body, I placed my<br />
left hand on her shoulder, and gripping tight I pushed my cock-shaft down in line<br />
with my Aunt&#8217;s quivering, pink pussy lips, slowly I pushed the tip of my purple,<br />
bulbous cock-head in between her fleshy folds.<br />
&quot;Yessss!&#8230;.mmmmmm&#8230;.more&#8230;c&#8217;mon baby more!&quot; Banu begged, even feeling the<br />
tip of my cock pushing into her fuckhole was making her go wild. She bit down on<br />
her lip and closed her eyes tight as she felt him push more of his hard meat into her<br />
wet, hot passage. &quot;God! That feels so good!&quot; she exclaimed. Banu felt her pussy<br />
stretch to allowing my cock inside her. &quot;Uhhhhh&#8230;Where do you get a cock that<br />
size?&quot; she gasped, I took my hand off the shaft now as I fed more of himself into my<br />
Aunt, I placed my hand onto her hip as my Aunt rocked her body , pushing herself<br />
back onto my dick, her slick passage was making it alot easier. Banu pushed harder<br />
onto the drier and it started to move, the feet squeaking on the floor as she leaned<br />
on it. &quot;Yesssss!&quot; she hissed. My cock felt huge inside her, her pussy was stretched to<br />
it&#8217;s maximum by my amazing thickness, she could feel my shaft rubbing onto her clit<br />
making her crazy with desire. I felt I could&#8217;t insert my dick into my Aunt fully, I was<br />
simply to big, but I was in a whole world of pleasure, my Aunts pussy muscles<br />
tightened around my cock, clamping down on the shaft. &quot;Ohhhh&quot; I murmured, and<br />
then I started to fuck her. I pulled my cock out almost to the tip, my Aunts pussy<br />
juices smeared all over it and then thrust it back in, Banu&#8217;s ass cheeks wobbled<br />
crazily as I did. &quot;God!&#8230;Yes!&#8230;Yes!&quot; Banu moaned, her pussy was throbbing wildly<br />
she just could&#8217;t get enough of her my cock.
</p>
<p>
I quickened my strokes, pushing my hips forward, as I fed my meat into my Aunt&#8217;s<br />
accommodating cunt. Banu, felt her knees buckle as me again pushed my hard dick<br />
almost fully into her, the table pushed forward again, the feet squeaking loudly on<br />
the floor as Banu gripped harder on the edge of it, her knuckles going white as I<br />
pumped her slick pussy faster. &quot;Fuck Me!&quot; she screamed. &quot;Yes&quot;<br />
&quot;Uuuhhhhh&#8230;.harder&#8230;.fuck me&#8230;harder!&quot; Banu&#8217;s pussy was burning with desire,<br />
she&#8217;d never had such an intense sexual experiance in her life, every thrust of my<br />
massive cock sent her into spasms, she was pushing her round ass backwards in<br />
time to my manic thrusts into her, her ass cheeks slapping againest the tops of my<br />
hairy thighs. Banu was pushing the tableback, lifting the front off the ground, it<br />
banged againest the back wall of the room in time to me hammering my mighty dick<br />
into her. BANG! &quot;Yes!&quot; BANG! &quot;Yessss!&quot; BANG! &quot;YESSSSSS!&quot;. Banu cried We<br />
were going at it like wild animal, there was now some natural instinct at work,<br />
neither of us were going to stop until we had fulfilled our sexual needs.
</p>
<p>
I was ramming my cock into my Aunts juicy cunt at full speed now, I could feel the<br />
cum welling up in my sac, the horny feeling building inside me, I truly could&#8217;t believe<br />
I was doing this, not to my Aunt. &quot;Never&#8230;&#8230;uhh..stop&#8230;.Ohh!&#8230;fucking me!&quot;. Banu<br />
demanded. I did&#8217;t want to but I could feel I was on the verge of cumming. Banu<br />
also was near the edge, my dick rubbed intensly againest her swollen clit, every time<br />
I pushed in, she felt a wave of amazing sexual sensations wash over her. She leaned<br />
her head forward onto the top of the table, scattering all the towels and clothes<br />
onto the floor around them. I moved my hand from my Aunts hip, and along her<br />
hot, sweaty back to the spot between her shoulder blades, I began to gently push<br />
her down onto the table, her large breasts squashing againest the top, and her<br />
thighs pressed againest the Drawer door, now every time I, thrust my manhood into<br />
my Aunt&#8217;s pussy the drier lifted at the front from her weight on it cuasing her ass to<br />
rise into the air slightly. &quot;That&#8217;s It!&#8230;.Uh!&#8230;..Ugh!&quot;. Banu said, her body humped<br />
and bucked onto my cockshaft using the table to assist her as it rose into the air. I<br />
was trying to hold out, I really was, but with every thrust my sensitive red thread on<br />
the underside of my stretched dick was been stimulated, my cum-sac was now full<br />
of hot cum just ready to spew out. Banu also felt her orgasm building inside her, she<br />
was pushing her hands againest the back wall now, the table rocking wildly beneath<br />
her. I took hold of the bottom of my Aunt&#8217;s thighs and lifted her legs off the ground.<br />
&quot;Ohhhhh&quot; Banu groaned as my cock drove even deeper inside her. Banu started<br />
thrashing about wildly on top of the table, it was rocking back then forward in time<br />
to my furious thrusts, the feet underneath squeaked as they grinded along the floor.
</p>
<p>
&quot;Yesss!&#8230;&#8230;..Ugh!&#8230;Ugh!&#8230;..Yessssssss!&quot; Banu just could&#8217;t hold out out, the orgasm<br />
that had been building, shot threw her like a rocket, her whole body started to<br />
tremble as wave after wave of intense sexual ecstacy overtook her, her sticky,<br />
creamy juices flooded into her pussy covering my cock as I continued to bore into<br />
her. &quot;OH..Ohhh&#8230;.Ohhhhhh&#8230;..Ohhhhhh!&quot;. Banu moaned her face grimacing with<br />
the intense pleasure. As my Aunt came wildly, her pussy tightened around my thick<br />
cock-shaft, I held tightly onto her legs as I pumped my last few strokes into her now<br />
very slick, wet passage. &quot;Ughhhh!&quot; was all I grunted as my cock started releasing<br />
it&#8217;s massive load. &quot;Yesss&#8230;GO ON!&#8230;.GO ON!&#8230;Ughhh&quot;. Banu ordered. The hot cum<br />
rippled out the end of my cock-head, with my mighty final full thrust I pushed<br />
himself hard into my Aunt, my hairy, tight balls banging againest the backs of my<br />
Aunts, toned thighs. my Aunts body rocked forward on the table, the two back legs<br />
snapping finally under the strain, the table started to pitch over but was stopped by<br />
the wall, the top, back edge removing a large chunk of plaster from the wall. Banu<br />
collapsed on top of the table, riding out the last of her orgasm, she lay her head<br />
onto the cold metal surface, the sweat dripping from her forehead. She was<br />
breathing deeply, trying to recover from the fucking I had gave her. I slowly<br />
withdrew my wilting cock from my Aunt creamy, hot pussy, I looked down at my<br />
dick, covered on my own Aunts pussy-juice, I could&#8217;t help smiling, I&#8217;d done a very<br />
naughty thing I told himself but the fact it was so bad had made it even more<br />
intense and my Aunt knew that as well. I ran my hands down either side of my<br />
Aunts legs, then up again, he was still feeling horny, as though I had&#8217;t been fulfilled<br />
probably, I felt as though I could go again.
</p>
<p>
Banu also thought she&#8217;d done a very bad thing, and with me she thought, the<br />
intense sexual pleasure she&#8217;d felt was been replaced by some guilt about what she&#8217;d<br />
done. What if her husband had caught them? Then she remembered her husband<br />
was still in home probably almost ready to go to work, he took pride in his<br />
apperance so it took him a while choose his dress in the morning but he must be<br />
almost ready now. Banu spun round to face me, I stood their smiling at her. &quot;Did<br />
you enjoy that?&quot; I asked, running my eyes across her cock-teasing body. &quot;More<br />
than I should have done&quot; Banu admitted &quot;I think we broke the tabler&quot;. I said<br />
looking past her. The table was leaning againest the wall, a chunk of plaster<br />
scattered on the back edge. &quot;I Guess so&quot; . Banu smiled a wicked smile &quot;I thought<br />
the earth was moving&quot; she joked. &quot;Banu you up here?&quot; .It was my Uncle calling<br />
from the living room in the living room &quot;I&#8217;ll be right there&quot; She shouted. Banu<br />
grabbed a nightie off the floor and threw it on, covering her sexy curves.&quot;Stay here,<br />
I&#8217;ll be back in a minute&quot;. She again smiled wickedly &quot;See if we can&#8217;t get you good to<br />
go again&quot;. she walked off wiggling her curvy ass from side to side slightly more than<br />
she needed to, knowing I was watching. I felt my cock, rise slightly watching my<br />
Aunts ass as she went out of the room. My Uncle looked up as Banu entered, she<br />
gave him an innocent smile. &quot;You look like you&#8217;ve been getting some exercise&quot; He<br />
said looking at her pink, flushed face. &quot;No, I was err..Just moving the table&quot; .She<br />
lied. &quot;I thought I heard someone banging about back there&quot;. Her husband said,<br />
distracted by his paperwork, Banu couldn&#180;t help smiling a little. He shut his<br />
briefcase and came over to his wife. &quot;I gotta go&quot; he said. He kissed her on her<br />
cheek. &quot;What&#8217;s that perfume your wearing?&quot; he asked. Banu wasn&#180;t wearing any,<br />
the combination of sweat and sex was coming from her pores. &quot;It was something<br />
Ravi got me&quot;. she replied. &quot;You smell good, maybe we&#8217;ll have an early night tonight,<br />
you know wake the neighbors&quot; Banu smilied &quot;Yeah maybe&quot;. All she could think of<br />
was my cock pumping her full of my hot cum as she leaned over the table, her pussy<br />
twitched, and a hot flush swept over her.&quot;But I&#8217;ve got alot on today I might be to<br />
tired.&quot;. &quot;O.k. We&#8217;ll see, Hey Ravi! What you doing today?&quot;. I came into the living<br />
room, I stepped over to where my Aunt and Uncle were, standing next to my Aunt.<br />
&quot;Well I&#8217;ve got some hard preparation for the interviews to do today.&quot;, I said, I<br />
moved my hand over onto the back of my Aunts, covered thigh, I was close enough<br />
to my Aunt for my uncle not to be able to see, I moved my hand upwards, pressing<br />
my fingers againest her skin. Banu jolted upright at my touch, I was working my<br />
hand up the inside of her thigh. &quot;Well I&#8217;ve got to go, Hope you have a good day and<br />
I&#8217;ll see you later&quot;. He took off for the door, grabbing his car keys from the coffee<br />
table as he did. &quot;Yeah see you later Uncle&quot;. I said smiling, I&#8217;d slid my fingers in<br />
between my Aunts legs, pushing the thick cotton of the nightie againest her pussy<br />
lips, rubbing a little, Banu swooned a little, leaning back into my&#8217;s body, her nipples<br />
hardening as she felt herself getting aroused again. Bang! Uncle shut the door<br />
behind him as he left.
</p>
<p>
Banu turned around to face me, I was slightly taller than her and she had to look<br />
up to meet my eyes. &quot;You like living dangerously don&#8217;t you?&quot; she asked. I did&#8217;t<br />
reply, instead I pulled open my Aunt&#8217;s nightie, dropping it to the floor, revealing her<br />
naked body. &quot;I think I&#8217;ll do that hard studying now&quot;. I replied, moving my hands to<br />
his Aunt&#8217;s ripe breasts, I began to massage them. kneading them with my fingers.<br />
Banu could&#8217;t resist my&#8217;s advances, all her guilt was pushed to the back of her mind<br />
as she willing gave herself over to my again, she reached for the waist band on my<br />
shorts and pushed them down, again my hard cock sprung out towards her. &quot;Well<br />
you certainly eager&quot;. She gasped, still amazed by how well endowed I was. Banu<br />
reached for my hot, throbbing member and started to tug my foreskin back and<br />
forth, my purple cockhead appearing and disappearing as she started to slide her<br />
hand along. I was growing more and more eager to fuck my horny, dark haired<br />
Aunt again, her let go of her tits, moving my hands to the backs of her long legs I<br />
lifted her from the ground, she was incredibly light and I had no trouble carrying<br />
her over to the dining table. Banu let go of my cock as her lifted her off the ground,<br />
she raised her legs and wrapped them round my waist, interlocking her feet around<br />
my back as I strode over to the dining table, she knew what was coming. I dropped<br />
my Aunt onto the shiny, wood table, her ass cheeks squashing outwards, she kept<br />
her legs wrapped round my body and now she pulled me to her. Banu took hold of<br />
my hot, hard cock and guided it through her swollen, red pussy lips and up into her<br />
wet cunt, the muscles relaxing to allow my to insert my big fucking tool into her.<br />
&quot;Ummmmm!&quot; she uttered. I pushed forward hard, my dick impaling my Aunt as<br />
my meat went between her wet, hairy pussy lips. &quot;Ohhhh baby!&quot; she cried. Banu<br />
took hold of my ass cheeks and squeezed them hard, she threw her head back, her<br />
long, black hair slid off her face as she moaned out as my cock slid into her, filling<br />
her with my meat. &quot;Uggggghhhh&#8230;&#8230;.noww&#8230;FUCK ME!&quot;. she demanded. I did&#8217;t<br />
mess about, I started pumping my cock, fast and furious into his Aunts, hot cunt.
</p>
<p>
Banu lay back onto the dining table, she moved her arms up behind her head<br />
scattering the place mats, and napkins looking up at my body as I stood over her<br />
madly thrusting my cock into her. I leaned over my Aunt, taking hold of her right<br />
nipple with my teeth, I played with it, nibbling on it a little, making her hard nipple,<br />
redder, my wet tongue licked at it, leaving a trail of saliva. &quot;Ohhhhh..God!&quot; . Banu<br />
screamed as my, teased her nipple. Banu&#8217;s body was writhed across the top of the<br />
shiny, polished table, as me fucked her, she squeezed her thighs tight against my<br />
hips and dug the heels of her feet into my back. I took hold of my Aunts shoulders,<br />
forcefully pushing her body onto his swollen dick. &quot;Yess..YES!&#8230;.Yessss!&quot; .Banu<br />
groaned out, she raised her ass off the table, using her legs to pull herself up a bit,<br />
humping againest my throbbing monster. I ran my hand up her tummy and over<br />
her breasts and up to her face, her stuck one one my fingers into my Aunt&#8217;s open<br />
mouth and she bit down on it lightly, then she sucked on it a little, her eyes closed<br />
tight as my cock bored right into her, she felt like she would explode at any second,<br />
such were the intense feelings going through her. &quot;Ohhhh Baby&#8230;C&#8217;mon, fuck<br />
Aunt&quot;. Banu begged me. Seeing my Aunt moaning and groaning in front of him<br />
was nearly too much for me, I hammered my dick faster into my Aunt&#8217;s cunt,<br />
looking down to see my blood-veined cock disappear almost to the hilt into between<br />
her hairy, wet pussy lips. Banu was humping her ass off the table, grinding her<br />
pussy onto my pumping dick, moaning wildly, she flapped her arms spreading them<br />
wide over the table, unable to control herself. Banu felt her pussy muscles go very<br />
tight around my&#8217;s dick, she knew she was about to have a massive orgasm, her<br />
pussy started to spasm, her clit sending some amazing feelings up through her body.<br />
&quot;Yes!&#8230;YEs!&#8230;&#8230;YES!&#8230;&#8230;Ohhhhhh baby, OH BABY!&quot; . Banu&#8217;s screams filled the<br />
living room, she arched her back off the table as the intense orgasm swept through<br />
her, it was even better than before, her naked body pulsed with sexual desire.<br />
&quot;Fuck Me&#8230;.Ohhhhhh FUCK ME!&quot; she gasped. I felt my Aunt&#8217;s cunt spasming<br />
madly, her pussy muscles clamped down around my cock, milking my dick, I felt the<br />
cum shooting along my cockshaft and out into my Aunts cunt, mixing with her own<br />
juices. I kept hammering my dick into her with a neverending sac full of cum<br />
spewing out. &quot;Ugghhhh god&quot; . I groaned as the last of my cum shot from my dick.
</p>
<p>
Banu kept bucking her ass off the table, back onto my&#8217;s cock, milking the last of the<br />
cum from my balls, she ran a hand through her hair, she was breathing hard from<br />
the excitement and excertion of fucking me, she felt I lay my head on her tummy,<br />
she felt my hot, heavy breath on her skin, I was completly spent, my cum all<br />
ejaculated into my Aunt&#8217;s tight pussy, she felt my dick begin to shrink inside her, she<br />
moved a hand down and rubbed the top of my thick hair. I looked up at my Aunt,<br />
her eyes looked wild and hungary for more, she flashed him a wicked smile. &quot;I think<br />
I am going to call off all house hold work today&quot;. Banu said, feeling her pussy<br />
already begin to throb and tingle as she imagined all the things she could show me.<br />
After that we never think of time or place. Only we are behaving like Stepmother<br />
and son whenever my uncle is in Home. She is very happy and became more<br />
beautiful with my cum flowing inside her. Now she is 33 years old. but she is very<br />
attractive now a days. Until now she was taking Birth control pills whenever we are<br />
having sex. But she is not having pills when she is fucking with my uncle. In her<br />
married life she never had a baby for my uncle. She doubt that my uncle might be<br />
incapable of gives her a baby. But she tells me that my Uncle is not impotent and his<br />
sperm might not be good enough to make her pregnant. So recently she is asking<br />
me that she is going to have my baby and pretend like that is her husband&#8217;s baby.<br />
But I am reluctant and thinking about complication arises in future. She is insisting<br />
me to carry my baby in her. I do not know what to do. Anything might happen in<br />
near future. But this never stopped us enjoying sex. Now I got a job in Madras itself<br />
and settled in her home. No one is having a clue that we are living like a Husband<br />
and wife in home when my uncle is not around. My innocent uncle is relaxed and<br />
happy for I am staying in their home and keeping her company and helping her.<br />
But he doesn&#8217;t know that I am her Sex companion.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/sister-of-my-mom/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Learning to please</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/learning-to-please/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/learning-to-please/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Fri, 15 Jun 2007 19:24:38 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[Uncategorized]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[free sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[free sex text]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[free text sex story]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex story text only]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/learning-to-please/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[Learning to please
By: ISS
Beauty is an aphrodisiac. A warm, humid breath whispered from lungs pumped with hot blood. To feel it against the skin, is to know a wisdom in passion. What is there to know beyond knowing passion? In a whisper of breath, know the nature of beauty: it is the joy of pleasure, [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>Learning to please<br />
By: ISS<br />
Beauty is an aphrodisiac. A warm, humid breath whispered from lungs pumped with hot blood. To feel it against the skin, is to know a wisdom in passion. What is there to know beyond knowing passion? In a whisper of breath, know the nature of beauty: it is the joy of pleasure, of souls feeling a heat to the skin. In such a way, Alexis understood passion: that it is a physical energy for spiritual consumption. &#8220;I&#8217;ve felt my body sing while making love,&#8221; she was saying, &#8220;but too often that song drowns that of the soul.&#8221; &#8220;It &#8217;s easy to bring bodies to orgasm,&#8221; said Ilene. &#8220;Perhaps the song you want to hear is in the lingering notes of a body seeking release, in its yearning. What if the body craved release so badly that it looked to the soul as a lover?&#8221; There was no answer to Ilene&#8217;s question: the experience was the answer. &#8220;I would die to feel like that,&#8221; Alexis said. The thought was abstract, but it stroked her body&#8217;s length like a silken dress falling from her shoulders. &#8220;You&#8217;ve already begun,&#8221; Ilene replied in a smooth voice. &#8220;Needing is receiving. Let need be the giver. Would you like me to guide you to the feeling?&#8221; Alexis&#8217; paused. What did the question mean? Did Ilene intend to make love to her? &#8220;I don&#8217;t know,&#8221; she said flatly. Ilene smiled at her. &#8220;Don&#8217;t worry. I&#8217;m not going to touch you. This isn&#8217;t about my passion at all. But I can guide you to your passion. Beyond that: I can show you how to make your soul cum.&#8221; She looked directly into Alexis&#8217; eyes. &#8220;You feel it in your thighs now don&#8217;t you?&#8221; &#8220;Yes, a little,&#8221; Alexis said uncomfortably. &#8220;Why so inhibited by the simple need of your body&#8217;s pleasure? In fact, why not dwell in it and feel it as a pleasure in itself? It is a nice feeling, isn&#8217;t it?&#8221; &#8220;Very nice. But with you watching me so closely&#8230; I don&#8217;t know. It all is very strange.&#8221; &#8220;I&#8217;m your guide. I must watch to take you where the feelings are centered. Let&#8217;s break the inhibitions. Free your mind of stupid shames. Tell me about the feelings as they come to you. Be open and honest. with me. If I know where you are, I can help you take the next step. Will you do this<br />
<span id="more-7"></span><br />
thing?&#8221; &#8220;I&#8217;ll try. I just can&#8217;t help feeling embarrassed by it.&#8221; Ilene leaned closer to Alexis. Her voice was barley a whisper, &#8220;It would feel oh so very good to be touched right now, wouldn&#8217;t it?&#8221; Alexis closed her eyes. &#8220;Yes,&#8221; she said. &#8220;It&#8217;s been a while since I&#8217;ve made love.&#8221; &#8220;Has it been a while since you&#8217;ve touched yourself?&#8221; At this question, Alexis blushed. Again she closed her eyes to find a privacy denied in Ilene&#8217;s soft gaze. She didn&#8217;t want to answer. Almost every night, she felt her body demand the caressing touches, tracing her fingers down her stomach to her loins. Her fingers flicking her clitoris erect; finding the rhythm and pressure that made her senses dance; making herself cum deliberately slowly. Ah, deliberately slowly, allowing the sensuality bath her, flooding her with a liquid, oily heat that surged in orgasm. &#8220;No,&#8221; she said softly. &#8220;Open your eyes and watch me,&#8221; said Ilene. Alexis obeyed the request. Ilene stood before her and unbuttoned the first three buttons of her blouse. &#8220;Watch me,&#8221; she whispered to Alexis. &#8220;Did you touch yourself like this?&#8221; Her hand slid into the opened blouse. Through the white cotton, Alexis could see Ilene&#8217;s hand move over her bare breast, her fingers tracing small circles around her nipple, caressing the smooth skin with luxurious strokes&#8230; She watched Ilene remove her hand, the erect nipple poking a small peak in the cotton of her blouse. &#8220;Was it like that, Alexis?&#8221; &#8220;Yes,&#8221; she breathed. &#8220;Did the touching make you cum?&#8221; Ilene said. There was more in her voice now. A melting quality. &#8220;I masturbate, Ilene,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I told you, it&#8217;s been a long time since I&#8217;ve made love.&#8221; She tried to hide her embarrassment in snapping the words out. Nonetheless, she felt the warmth in her grow. Ilene was exciting her, eroding the wall she had built for her intimacy, cutting through the feelings that covered sensual feelings. Her voice lowered and softened, &#8220;and yes, it made me cum.&#8221; Ilene sat next to Alexis on the couch. &#8220;Now watch me,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I&#8217;m going to show you a lovely thing. I want you to look at my face for a few minutes. Watch my lips and eyes as they change. I&#8217;m going to give you a vision.&#8221; Alexis watched Ilene, watched as her eyes closed, as she seemingly retreated to another reality. Almost immediately, her breathing came in hushed sighs edged in urgency, became deeper and somehow more luxurious. Her lips opened slightly to allow her tongue the passage to lick, to keep them moist in the flow of air entering and exiting her lungs. In a barely audible voice, Ilene whispered. It was a low, lilting sound that filled Alexis&#8217; mind as the smallest wisps of air fills a moan. &#8220;Alexis, can you see what is happening?&#8221; &#8220;Yes, but I don&#8217;t understand&#8230;&#8221; &#8220;Don&#8217;t understand it; feel it. Ummm, delicious. Feel it as I feel it, a bath of sensuality. What is it you see?&#8221; Ilene parted her legs until she felt Alexis&#8217; thigh against hers. Alexis paused between words, &#8220;I &#8230; see &#8230; you &#8230; becoming &#8230; aroused &#8230;&#8221; She shook her head as if to shake off a dream. &#8220;I think I should be going.&#8221; &#8220;Please don&#8217;t leave,&#8221; Ilene said softly, almost as an aside. She rubbed her palms along her thighs slowly, then stopped abruptly. &#8220;Do you know how sweetly I feel the longing for a touch right now? How difficult it becomes not to touch myself?&#8221; She sat silently for a moment, swallowed deeply, then continued. &#8220;There,&#8221; she whispered smiling, &#8220;I&#8217;ve centered in the pleasure of it. Um, watch me make love to it, Alexis. Be with me for this, please.&#8221; Alexis silently nodded as she watched her friend&#8217;s face slip deeper into an unknown pleasure. Small drops of perspiration beaded on Ilene&#8217;s face. &#8220;I want you to know how I feel, Alexis. It is truly wonderful. Oh god, to feel a cock&#8217;s round head part my lips&#8230; Ah, that is the longing&#8230; wet and empty, my clitoris stiffens and stiffens as if to fill the emptiness&#8230; my stomach melts, the heat rising from my thighs in slight waves of pleasure&#8230; waves washing my breasts and nipples like the tantalizing licks of oh so many tongues&#8230; waves washing me closer&#8230; wave on wave becoming a caressing flood&#8230; a myriad of insistent fingers tracing sensual paths across my skin&#8230; like a lover whose desire is to see me burn&#8230; see me burn until my need consumes me&#8230; until the my lover speaks&#8230; and the words touch me&#8230; and their touch&#8230; is more than I can bare&#8230;&#8221; She paused, consuming the sensations, her hips rocking back and forth so slightly as to hardly be noticed. &#8220;&#8230; yes, it will be a voice, Alexis&#8230; a voice that will plunge deep inside of me&#8230; filling me like a cock gorged with blood and its own need&#8230; cumming in me&#8230; Ah, Alexis, can you see how close I am&#8230;?&#8221; &#8220;Yes,&#8221; Alexis said, strangely aware of the humid warmth in her own voice. The rhythm of her heart beating faster, her breath coming deeper. She knew Ilene had brought herself to the very edge of orgasm. She understood that her presence was not necessary. The walk along that maddening precipice was the pleasure Ilene sought. She had reached into herself and become a sensual moment frozen at the peek of passion. The promise of gratification sucked alive the delicate tissues between her thighs. They tormented her with a thousand tiny explosions of shear pleasure, each a delight beyond imagination, but not complete enough to bring the filling gratification complete release demanded. Sitting beside Alexis, Ilene was an island of complete pleasures; pleasures that sang to Alexis like sirens, sending loving and passionate kisses to her ears. In Alexis, the longing to walk with Ilene, along her beach, became the most exquisite desire. &#8220;I want to watch you cum, Ilene. You truly are a vision. What you are feeling lights your face like a soft, dim candle. I can almost feel the gentle pressure of your lips against your tongue, taste the sweetness as if it were mine&#8230;&#8221; Alexis blinked. It was a cry for reality. She could not reconcile the words coming from her mouth nor the voyeuristic intrigue with the woman she knew herself to be. Nonetheless, the sensual music of the sirens, of Ilene&#8217;s breasts heaving with breath, the lithe dance of her smooth skin moving beneath her clothing, moving with her muscles growing taunt to quivering, stroked continually her most intimate and hidden desires, licked between her thighs and along their length, to exude her heated lubrication with involuntary contractions. Indeed, cupped her breasts with an exacting pressure, a gentle pressure, kneading her nipples taunt and hard. With her slightest move, the fabric of her blouse grazed across these sensitive peaks as maddeningly as the expert brush of a feather. Seduced, she abandoned all but pleasure. She became immersed in her longing. Ilene shuddered and stiffened slightly, her lips parting. The moan she uttered rested upon Alexis like the weight of a phantom lover pressing close. Ilene shuddered again, this time it was more obvious than the last. Her mouth was drawn more tightly, opened a bit wider, her voice more urgent. In a moment she unclenched. She bit her bottom lip and became still like a sensual sculpture of polished stone whose soul reason for creation was to beg an appreciating touch. Soon Alexis could see her thighs quiver, her stomach roll from a firm, flat plain to a softer and slightly rounded arc, her breasts swelling with the pound of her blood, her lungs filling beyond capacity and exploding in a rush of air time and time again. &#8220;I&#8217;m still cumming,&#8221; she whispered, &#8220;still cumming, building in me&#8230; God, Alexis, watch it take me!&#8221; Her body knotted in spasms, her senses exploding in a  soundless cry. Arching from the couch, every muscle squeezed the moment for an eternity of pleasure. &#8220;N&#8230; Now,&#8221; she cried, throwing her head back. Her body clenched, she came again. For several seconds, she remained locked in a dimension were only orgasm existed. Her clothing, drenched with sweat, clung to her like a second skin as sensual delirium subsided to pleasure, and pleasure simply became satisction. Alexis now understood the edge: understood how her voice coaxed Ilene to cross it. Her own longing had passed that of those nights alone when she would lie nude in bed caressing herself. Then she felt her hands make a slow but sure journey to the warmth between her thighs, felt her fingers play along her opening lips until their velvet smoothness became silken with her wetness. It was without a touch that her body had become the living presence of need &#8211; - more than that, become a woman totally seduced by that need. Without a thought driving her actions, but a deep primal craving, her hands sought the softness of her breasts. The touch was electric with pleasure. She couldn&#8217;t help but moan at the moment of contact. There was a hunger in the feel of her fingers as they closed on her mounds. She was transported and alone. Her right hand unbuttoned her blouse. The cooler air touched her skin like a sensual liquid; her breasts blazed with the sensations, her nipples drawn to a hardness she had never felt before. Her hand continued lower. It unbuttoned her jeans and slowly pulled the zipper down. The need to touch herself had become an instinct. Soon, so soon, she would feel the flick of a finger against her clitoris, move it between her thumb and finger like an oily marble. Yes, soon she would insert a finger into herself, feel the slick walls close about it and feel the slow withdrawal as her body shivered, shivered as another finger inched inside her. Oh soon, there would be satisfaction, satisfaction and release. Oh God, the desire to cum poured through her like lava. As the palm of her right hand grazed across her stomach she bit her bottom lip. The sensations were blinding and deliriously beautiful. Her fingers played along the elastic edge of her panties, the euphoria of expectation coursing between her thighs. Only Ilene&#8217;s voice could find its way into this ecstasy and be heard, &#8220;How much do you want to cum, Alexis?&#8221; Alexis spoke from the depth of her passion, inhibitions no longer had any place in her mind, &#8220;It would take so very little&#8230; if I touch my cunt, even the slightest, I will explode&#8230;&#8221; &#8220;Put your hands by your side, Alexis. Don&#8217;t let this moment be robbed from you, Ilene said in a pleading voice. &#8220;I know that I could hold you in my arms even though it isn&#8217;t a woman you want. I know you want me to hold you, don&#8217;t you?&#8221; &#8220;Yes, I want you to kiss me. Just that, a kiss from you, wouldnt be enough,&#8221; Alexis very nearly sobbed as she place her hands at her side. She was consumed with an aching need more intense than any she had endured before. &#8220;I will do anything to cum,&#8221; she said. A tear formed in her pleading eyes. &#8220;I see a cock, long and thick, throbbing for your kiss. It&#8217;s smooth head tipped with a drop of pre-ejaculent shines like a star. Take the cock into yourself. Feel it slide into your cunt, spreading the lips with frictionless ease. Take it very slowly, Alexis&#8230; Very slowly let it fill you. Can you feel its size? Tell me how it enters you.&#8221; Alexis drew her words in pants of breath, &#8220;My&#8230; God&#8230;, I feel it&#8230;! Yes, I can squeeze it&#8230; Oh, Ilene, it&#8217;s pushing deeper&#8230;. Oh, dear Ilene, make&#8230; me&#8230;&#8221; Alexis&#8217; head tossed side to side, her eyes closed tight. &#8220;&#8230;And it is ecstasy as it withdraws,&#8221; Ilene soothed. &#8220;Ecstasy, Alexis. There, you are now, my sweet Alexis, I see your body twitch with every second. Ache for me, Alexis&#8230; I have the knowledge you want. Willou kiss me for it? Will you touch me for it?&#8221; &#8220;Anything&#8230;&#8221; Alexis panted, her body arching to receive, her muscles squeezing to implore release. &#8220;Put your hand in my lap, Alexis,&#8221; Ilene said softly. &#8220;Put your hand in my lap and feel me move against it.&#8221; Alexis placed her hand in Ilene&#8217;s lap. Ilene&#8217;s voice seduced her further: &#8220;Undo my jeans, darling.&#8221; Alexis&#8217; fingers trembled with the button and zipper, but soon Ilene&#8217;s request was met. Again, Ilene&#8217;s voice trailed over Alexis like warm kisses. &#8220;Do you know what I want you do now?&#8221; she asked Alexis could barely find the ability to speak, &#8220;&#8230; touch you&#8230; &#8221; she said, her tongue licking her lips. &#8220;Make me cum with you, Alexis. Put your finger in me. Feel how smooth and wet I am to the touch, how you excite me. Touch my clitoris, Alexis. Is it like those nights alone? Ah, your gentle fingers, show me how you cum, Alexis. Feel my cunt as if it is your own, my body as if it is your own. Ah, how you long to masturbate. How close it must be for you.&#8221; Alexis&#8217; fingers trembled as they smoothed along the folds of the lips between Ilene&#8217;s thighs. Their creamy, smooth warmth, still alive from numerous, intense orgasms, pushed against Alexis&#8217; touch and moved in a slow deliberate circle. &#8220;Show me how you masturbate, Alexis,&#8221; Ilene coaxed. Alexis&#8217; fingers found the rhythm of Ilene&#8217;s rotating hips. Her middle finger massaged Ilene&#8217;s clitoris with frantic flicks and strokes. &#8220;Please, Ilene&#8230; I must cum&#8230; please&#8230;&#8221; &#8220;Then cum. Open yourself completely. It&#8217;s so close&#8230; so close. Cum for me. Let me watch you cum.&#8221; Alexis felt her stomach knot. It rolled like a golden wheat field in a summer wind. Melting her muscles. Then clenching them. Like birds released long her legs, the dance of wings the frantic flutter of surging pleasure, soared through her spread thighs, entering her in a single thrust, licking alive the convulsing velvet walls with too many sensations for the mind to understand. This wasn&#8217;t a time for the mind. It broke upon the body in such a torrent of unspeakable pleasure that Alexis could only sob and laugh and pray it continued. She stiffened as the rush became a nova, filling her completely, bursting within her, bursting like a magnificent cock pumping her full, white cream erupting and flooding within her, pumping her full, filling her sensibilities as it sated her loins. And her cumming flowed from her, from her cunt in heated liquid, from her mouth scarcely able to form the word &#8220;Ilene&#8221;. As it had burst upon her, it subsided: slowly, an inch at a time. Her mind swam in an abstractly beautiful trance. She fought to find her breath again. Once again she was entered, this time the thrust filling her entire being. The pulsing majesty drove into her, and into her. The driving continued in an all filling thrust as if it were the final push of an endless and climaxing cock. As she arch from the coach, she felt her anus entered with a well lubricated rush. Cock against cock, the frictionless driving continued and continued. Her mouth dropped open to cry, but it filled with the taste of flesh and salt, the cream-white of a delicious jism bathing her tongue and throat. Alexis&#8217; body glistened with sweat as she convulsed, all of her seeking to milk the cumming of her soul. All of her delivered to the pleasure. Clenched, her body writhed with its filling, the lithe lines of her form rippling in delicious spasms. The inward plunging never ending, knotting and reknotting Alexis in ever more intense orgasm, left her weeping and sobbing in joy, in pleasure bathed joy; each end marking a new beginning until the very essence of beauty, pleasure and passion fused as one in an explosion of unspeakable genesis. When Alexis finally sank back into the couch and regained the ability to think and talk, she chose rather to luxuriate silently in the glow of complete satisfaction. &#8220;Are you alright?&#8221; asked Ilene. &#8220;Oh, yes, yes, yes,&#8221; Alexis sang. &#8220;Ummm, darling&#8230;,&#8221; Ilene whispered into Alexis&#8217; ear. &#8220;might I find in you a kiss for me?&#8221; She contracted her muscles, squeezing Alexis&#8217; finger oh so gently.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/learning-to-please/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
		<item>
		<title>Song Of Lust</title>
		<link>http://sinfultalesblog.com/song-of-lust/</link>
		<comments>http://sinfultalesblog.com/song-of-lust/#comments</comments>
		<pubDate>Wed, 23 May 2007 08:37:15 +0000</pubDate>
		<dc:creator>Administrator</dc:creator>
				<category><![CDATA[amateur sex text links]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[erotic sex letter]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[erotic sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[free text sex story]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sex tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[sinful tale]]></category>
		<category><![CDATA[text sex story]]></category>

		<guid isPermaLink="false">http://sinfultalesblog.com/song-of-lust/</guid>
		<description><![CDATA[Beauty is an aphrodisiac. A warm, humid breath whispered from lungs pumped with hot blood. To feel it against the skin, is to know a wisdom in passion. What is there to know beyond knowing passion? In a whisper of breath, know the nature of beauty: it is the joy of pleasure, of souls feeling [...]]]></description>
			<content:encoded><![CDATA[<p>Beauty is an aphrodisiac. A warm, humid breath whispered from lungs pumped with hot blood. To feel it against the skin, is to know a wisdom in passion. What is there to know beyond knowing passion? In a whisper of breath, know the nature of beauty: it is the joy of pleasure, of souls feeling a heat to the skin. In such a way, Alexis understood passion: that it is a physical energy for spiritual consumption. &#8220;I&#8217;ve felt my body sing while making love,&#8221; she was saying, &#8220;but too often that song drowns that of the soul.&#8221; &#8220;It &#8217;s easy to bring bodies to orgasm,&#8221; said Ilene. &#8220;Perhaps the song you want to hear is in the lingering notes of a body seeking release, in its yearning. What if the body craved release so badly that it looked to the soul as a lover?&#8221; There was no answer to Ilene&#8217;s question: the experience was the answer. &#8220;I would die to feel like that,&#8221; Alexis said. The thought was abstract, but it stroked her body&#8217;s length like a silken dress falling from her shoulders. &#8220;You&#8217;ve already begun,&#8221; Ilene replied in a smooth voice. <span id="more-3"></span>&#8220;Needing is receiving. Let need be the giver. Would you like me to guide you to the feeling?&#8221; Alexis&#8217; paused. What did the question mean? Did Ilene intend to make love to her? &#8220;I don&#8217;t know,&#8221; she said flatly. Ilene smiled at her. &#8220;Don&#8217;t worry. I&#8217;m not going to touch you. This isn&#8217;t about my passion at all. But I can guide you to your passion. Beyond that: I can show you how to make your soul cum.&#8221; She looked directly into Alexis&#8217; eyes. &#8220;You feel it in your thighs now don&#8217;t you?&#8221; &#8220;Yes, a little,&#8221; Alexis said uncomfortably. &#8220;Why so inhibited by the simple need of your body&#8217;s pleasure? In fact, why not dwell in it and feel it as a pleasure in itself? It is a nice feeling, isn&#8217;t it?&#8221; &#8220;Very nice. But with you watching me so closely&#8230; I don&#8217;t know. It all is very strange.&#8221; &#8220;I&#8217;m your guide. I must watch to take you where the feelings are centered. Let&#8217;s break the inhibitions. Free your mind of stupid shames. Tell me about the feelings as they come to you. Be open and honest. with me. If I know where you are, I can help you take the next step. Will you do this thing?&#8221; &#8220;I&#8217;ll try. I just can&#8217;t help feeling embarrassed by it.&#8221; Ilene leaned closer to Alexis. Her voice was barley a whisper, &#8220;It would feel oh so very good to be touched right now, wouldn&#8217;t it?&#8221; Alexis closed her eyes. &#8220;Yes,&#8221; she said. &#8220;It&#8217;s been a while since I&#8217;ve made love.&#8221; &#8220;Has it been a while since you&#8217;ve touched yourself?&#8221; At this question, Alexis blushed. Again she closed her eyes to find a privacy denied in Ilene&#8217;s soft gaze. She didn&#8217;t want to answer. Almost every night, she felt her body demand the caressing touches, tracing her fingers down her stomach to her loins. Her fingers flicking her clitoris erect; finding the rhythm and pressure that made her senses dance; making herself cum deliberately slowly. Ah, deliberately slowly, allowing the sensuality bath her, flooding her with a liquid, oily heat that surged in orgasm. &#8220;No,&#8221; she said softly. &#8220;Open your eyes and watch me,&#8221; said Ilene. Alexis obeyed the request. Ilene stood before her and unbuttoned the first three buttons of her blouse. &#8220;Watch me,&#8221; she whispered to Alexis. &#8220;Did you touch yourself like this?&#8221; Her hand slid into the opened blouse. Through the white cotton, Alexis could see Ilene&#8217;s hand move over her bare breast, her fingers tracing small circles around her nipple, caressing the smooth skin with luxurious strokes&#8230; She watched Ilene remove her hand, the erect nipple poking a small peak in the cotton of her blouse. &#8220;Was it like that, Alexis?&#8221; &#8220;Yes,&#8221; she breathed. &#8220;Did the touching make you cum?&#8221; Ilene said. There was more in her voice now. A melting quality. &#8220;I masturbate, Ilene,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I told you, it&#8217;s been a long time since I&#8217;ve made love.&#8221; She tried to hide her embarrassment in snapping the words out. Nonetheless, she felt the warmth in her grow. Ilene was exciting her, eroding the wall she had built for her intimacy, cutting through the feelings that covered sensual feelings. Her voice lowered and softened, &#8220;and yes, it made me cum.&#8221; Ilene sat next to Alexis on the couch. &#8220;Now watch me,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I&#8217;m going to show you a lovely thing. I want you to look at my face for a few minutes. Watch my lips and eyes as they change. I&#8217;m going to give you a vision.&#8221; Alexis watched Ilene, watched as her eyes closed, as she seemingly retreated to another reality. Almost immediately, her breathing came in hushed sighs edged in urgency, became deeper and somehow more luxurious. Her lips opened slightly to allow her tongue the passage to lick, to keep them moist in the flow of air entering and exiting her lungs. In a barely audible voice, Ilene whispered. It was a low, lilting sound that filled Alexis&#8217; mind as the smallest wisps of air fills a moan. &#8220;Alexis, can you see what is happening?&#8221; &#8220;Yes, but I don&#8217;t understand&#8230;&#8221; &#8220;Don&#8217;t understand it; feel it. Ummm, delicious. Feel it as I feel it, a bath of sensuality. What is it you see?&#8221; Ilene parted her legs until she felt Alexis&#8217; thigh against hers. Alexis paused between words, &#8220;I &#8230; see &#8230; you &#8230; becoming &#8230; aroused &#8230;&#8221; She shook her head as if to shake off a dream. &#8220;I think I should be going.&#8221; &#8220;Please don&#8217;t leave,&#8221; Ilene said softly, almost as an aside. She rubbed her palms along her thighs slowly, then stopped abruptly. &#8220;Do you know how sweetly I feel the longing for a touch right now? How difficult it becomes not to touch myself?&#8221; She sat silently for a moment, swallowed deeply, then continued. &#8220;There,&#8221; she whispered smiling, &#8220;I&#8217;ve centered in the pleasure of it. Um, watch me make love to it, Alexis. Be with me for this, please.&#8221; Alexis silently nodded as she watched her friend&#8217;s face slip deeper into an unknown pleasure. Small drops of perspiration beaded on Ilene&#8217;s face. &#8220;I want you to know how I feel, Alexis. It is truly wonderful. Oh god, to feel a cock&#8217;s round head part my lips&#8230; Ah, that is the longing&#8230; wet and empty, my clitoris stiffens and stiffens as if to fill the emptiness&#8230; my stomach melts, the heat rising from my thighs in slight waves of pleasure&#8230; waves washing my breasts and nipples like the tantalizing licks of oh so many tongues&#8230; waves washing me closer&#8230; wave on wave becoming a caressing flood&#8230; a myriad of insistent fingers tracing sensual paths across my skin&#8230; like a lover whose desire is to see me burn&#8230; see me burn until my need consumes me&#8230; until the my lover speaks&#8230; and the words touch me&#8230; and their touch&#8230; is more than I can bare&#8230;&#8221; She paused, consuming the sensations, her hips rocking back and forth so slightly as to hardly be noticed. &#8220;&#8230; yes, it will be a voice, Alexis&#8230; a voice that will plunge deep inside of me&#8230; filling me like a cock gorged with blood and its own need&#8230; cumming in me&#8230; Ah, Alexis, can you see how close I am&#8230;?&#8221; &#8220;Yes,&#8221; Alexis said, strangely aware of the humid warmth in her own voice. The rhythm of her heart beating faster, her breath coming deeper. She knew Ilene had brought herself to the very edge of orgasm. She understood that her presence was not necessary. The walk along that maddening precipice was the pleasure Ilene sought. She had reached into herself and become a sensual moment frozen at the peek of passion. The promise of gratification sucked alive the delicate tissues between her thighs. They tormented her with a thousand tiny explosions of shear pleasure, each a delight beyond imagination, but not complete enough to bring the filling gratification complete release demanded. Sitting beside Alexis, Ilene was an island of complete pleasures; pleasures that sang to Alexis like sirens, sending loving and passionate kisses to her ears. In Alexis, the longing to walk with Ilene, along her beach, became the most exquisite desire. &#8220;I want to watch you cum, Ilene. You truly are a vision. What you are feeling lights your face like a soft, dim candle. I can almost feel the gentle pressure of your lips against your tongue, taste the sweetness as if it were mine&#8230;&#8221; Alexis blinked. It was a cry for reality. She could not reconcile the words coming from her mouth nor the voyeuristic intrigue with the woman she knew herself to be. Nonetheless, the sensual music of the sirens, of Ilene&#8217;s breasts heaving with breath, the lithe dance of her smooth skin moving beneath her clothing, moving with her muscles growing taunt to quivering, stroked continually her most intimate and hidden desires, licked between her thighs and along their length, to exude her heated lubrication with involuntary contractions. Indeed, cupped her breasts with an exacting pressure, a gentle pressure, kneading her nipples taunt and hard. With her slightest move, the fabric of her blouse grazed across these sensitive peaks as maddeningly as the expert brush of a feather. Seduced, she abandoned all but pleasure. She became immersed in her longing. Ilene shuddered and stiffened slightly, her lips parting. The moan she uttered rested upon Alexis like the weight of a phantom lover pressing close. Ilene shuddered again, this time it was more obvious than the last. Her mouth was drawn more tightly, opened a bit wider, her voice more urgent. In a moment she unclenched. She bit her bottom lip and became still like a sensual sculpture of polished stone whose soul reason for creation was to beg an appreciating touch. Soon Alexis could see her thighs quiver, her stomach roll from a firm, flat plain to a softer and slightly rounded arc, her breasts swelling with the pound of her blood, her lungs filling beyond capacity and exploding in a rush of air time and time again. &#8220;I&#8217;m still cumming,&#8221; she whispered, &#8220;still cumming, building in me&#8230; God, Alexis, watch it take me!&#8221; Her body knotted in spasms, her senses exploding in a  soundless cry. Arching from the couch, every muscle squeezed the moment for an eternity of pleasure. &#8220;N&#8230; Now,&#8221; she cried, throwing her head back. Her body clenched, she came again. For several seconds, she remained locked in a dimension were only orgasm existed. Her clothing, drenched with sweat, clung to her like a second skin as sensual delirium subsided to pleasure, and pleasure simply became satisction. Alexis now understood the edge: understood how her voice coaxed Ilene to cross it. Her own longing had passed that of those nights alone when she would lie nude in bed caressing herself. Then she felt her hands make a slow but sure journey to the warmth between her thighs, felt her fingers play along her opening lips until their velvet smoothness became silken with her wetness. It was without a touch that her body had become the living presence of need &#8211; - more than that, become a woman totally seduced by that need. Without a thought driving her actions, but a deep primal craving, her hands sought the softness of her breasts. The touch was electric with pleasure. She couldn&#8217;t help but moan at the moment of contact. There was a hunger in the feel of her fingers as they closed on her mounds. She was transported and alone. Her right hand unbuttoned her blouse. The cooler air touched her skin like a sensual liquid; her breasts blazed with the sensations, her nipples drawn to a hardness she had never felt before. Her hand continued lower. It unbuttoned her jeans and slowly pulled the zipper down. The need to touch herself had become an instinct. Soon, so soon, she would feel the flick of a finger against her clitoris, move it between her thumb and finger like an oily marble. Yes, soon she would insert a finger into herself, feel the slick walls close about it and feel the slow withdrawal as her body shivered, shivered as another finger inched inside her. Oh soon, there would be satisfaction, satisfaction and release. Oh God, the desire to cum poured through her like lava. As the palm of her right hand grazed across her stomach she bit her bottom lip. The sensations were blinding and deliriously beautiful. Her fingers played along the elastic edge of her panties, the euphoria of expectation coursing between her thighs. Only Ilene&#8217;s voice could find its way into this ecstasy and be heard, &#8220;How much do you want to cum, Alexis?&#8221; Alexis spoke from the depth of her passion, inhibitions no longer had any place in her mind, &#8220;It would take so very little&#8230; if I touch my cunt, even the slightest, I will explode&#8230;&#8221; &#8220;Put your hands by your side, Alexis. Don&#8217;t let this moment be robbed from you, Ilene said in a pleading voice. &#8220;I know that I could hold you in my arms even though it isn&#8217;t a woman you want. I know you want me to hold you, don&#8217;t you?&#8221; &#8220;Yes, I want you to kiss me. Just that, a kiss from you, wouldnt be enough,&#8221; Alexis very nearly sobbed as she place her hands at her side. She was consumed with an aching need more intense than any she had endured before. &#8220;I will do anything to cum,&#8221; she said. A tear formed in her pleading eyes. &#8220;I see a cock, long and thick, throbbing for your kiss. It&#8217;s smooth head tipped with a drop of pre-ejaculent shines like a star. Take the cock into yourself. Feel it slide into your cunt, spreading the lips with frictionless ease. Take it very slowly, Alexis&#8230; Very slowly let it fill you. Can you feel its size? Tell me how it enters you.&#8221; Alexis drew her words in pants of breath, &#8220;My&#8230; God&#8230;, I feel it&#8230;! Yes, I can squeeze it&#8230; Oh, Ilene, it&#8217;s pushing deeper&#8230;. Oh, dear Ilene, make&#8230; me&#8230;&#8221; Alexis&#8217; head tossed side to side, her eyes closed tight. &#8220;&#8230;And it is ecstasy as it withdraws,&#8221; Ilene soothed. &#8220;Ecstasy, Alexis. There, you are now, my sweet Alexis, I see your body twitch with every second. Ache for me, Alexis&#8230; I have the knowledge you want. Willou kiss me for it? Will you touch me for it?&#8221; &#8220;Anything&#8230;&#8221; Alexis panted, her body arching to receive, her muscles squeezing to implore release. &#8220;Put your hand in my lap, Alexis,&#8221; Ilene said softly. &#8220;Put your hand in my lap and feel me move against it.&#8221; Alexis placed her hand in Ilene&#8217;s lap. Ilene&#8217;s voice seduced her further: &#8220;Undo my jeans, darling.&#8221; Alexis&#8217; fingers trembled with the button and zipper, but soon Ilene&#8217;s request was met. Again, Ilene&#8217;s voice trailed over Alexis like warm kisses. &#8220;Do you know what I want you do now?&#8221; she asked Alexis could barely find the ability to speak, &#8220;&#8230; touch you&#8230; &#8221; she said, her tongue licking her lips. &#8220;Make me cum with you, Alexis. Put your finger in me. Feel how smooth and wet I am to the touch, how you excite me. Touch my clitoris, Alexis. Is it like those nights alone? Ah, your gentle fingers, show me how you cum, Alexis. Feel my cunt as if it is your own, my body as if it is your own. Ah, how you long to masturbate. How close it must be for you.&#8221; Alexis&#8217; fingers trembled as they smoothed along the folds of the lips between Ilene&#8217;s thighs. Their creamy, smooth warmth, still alive from numerous, intense orgasms, pushed against Alexis&#8217; touch and moved in a slow deliberate circle. &#8220;Show me how you masturbate, Alexis,&#8221; Ilene coaxed. Alexis&#8217; fingers found the rhythm of Ilene&#8217;s rotating hips. Her middle finger massaged Ilene&#8217;s clitoris with frantic flicks and strokes. &#8220;Please, Ilene&#8230; I must cum&#8230; please&#8230;&#8221; &#8220;Then cum. Open yourself completely. It&#8217;s so close&#8230; so close. Cum for me. Let me watch you cum.&#8221; Alexis felt her stomach knot. It rolled like a golden wheat field in a summer wind. Melting her muscles. Then clenching them. Like birds released long her legs, the dance of wings the frantic flutter of surging pleasure, soared through her spread thighs, entering her in a single thrust, licking alive the convulsing velvet walls with too many sensations for the mind to understand. This wasn&#8217;t a time for the mind. It broke upon the body in such a torrent of unspeakable pleasure that Alexis could only sob and laugh and pray it continued. She stiffened as the rush became a nova, filling her completely, bursting within her, bursting like a magnificent cock pumping her full, white cream erupting and flooding within her, pumping her full, filling her sensibilities as it sated her loins. And her cumming flowed from her, from her cunt in heated liquid, from her mouth scarcely able to form the word &#8220;Ilene&#8221;. As it had burst upon her, it subsided: slowly, an inch at a time. Her mind swam in an abstractly beautiful trance. She fought to find her breath again. Once again she was entered, this time the thrust filling her entire being. The pulsing majesty drove into her, and into her. The driving continued in an all filling thrust as if it were the final push of an endless and climaxing cock. As she arch from the coach, she felt her anus entered with a well lubricated rush. Cock against cock, the frictionless driving continued and continued. Her mouth dropped open to cry, but it filled with the taste of flesh and salt, the cream-white of a delicious jism bathing her tongue and throat. Alexis&#8217; body glistened with sweat as she convulsed, all of her seeking to milk the cumming of her soul. All of her delivered to the pleasure. Clenched, her body writhed with its filling, the lithe lines of her form rippling in delicious spasms. The inward plunging never ending, knotting and reknotting Alexis in ever more intense orgasm, left her weeping and sobbing in joy, in pleasure bathed joy; each end marking a new beginning until the very essence of beauty, pleasure and passion fused as one in an explosion of unspeakable genesis. When Alexis finally sank back into the couch and regained the ability to think and talk, she chose rather to luxuriate silently in the glow of complete satisfaction. &#8220;Are you alright?&#8221; asked Ilene. &#8220;Oh, yes, yes, yes,&#8221; Alexis sang. &#8220;Ummm, darling&#8230;,&#8221; Ilene whispered into Alexis&#8217; ear. &#8220;might I find in you a kiss for me?&#8221; She contracted her muscles, squeezing Alexis&#8217; finger oh so gently.</p>
]]></content:encoded>
			<wfw:commentRss>http://sinfultalesblog.com/song-of-lust/feed/</wfw:commentRss>
		<slash:comments>0</slash:comments>
		</item>
	</channel>
</rss>

